This is a work of fiction. All the characters and events portrayed in this
book are fictional, and any resemblance to real people or incidents is purely
coincidental.
Copyright © 2003 by Andre Norton
Daybreak—2250 a.d. (also published as Star Man's Son) copyright © 1952 by
Harcourt, Brace & Co. No Night Without Stars copyright © 1975 by Andre
Norton
All rights reserved, including the right to reproduce this book or portions
thereof in any form.
A Baen Books Omnibus
Baen Publishing Enterprises
P.O. Box 1403
Riverdale, NY 10471
www.baen.com
ISBN: 0-7434-3595-8
Cover art by Bob Eggleton
First printing, March 2003
Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
Norton, Andre.
Darkness and dawn / by Andre Norton.
p. cm.
"Previously published in parts as Star Man's son and No night without
stars"—Jkt.
ISBN 0-7434-3595-8 (pbk.)
1. Regression (Civilization)—Fiction. 2. Nuclear warfare—Fiction. 3. Extinct
cities
—Fiction. 4. Science fiction, American. I. Norton, Andre. Star Man's son, 2250
A.D.
II. Norton, Andre. No night without stars. III. Title: Star Man's son. IV.
Title: No
night without stars. V. Title.
PS3527.O632 D375 2003
813'.52—dc21
2002038393
Distributed by Simon & Schuster
1230 Avenue of the Americas
New York, NY 10020
Production by Windhaven Press, Auburn, NH
Printed in the United States of America
Time Traders
Time Traders II
Warlock
Janus
Darkness and Dawn
A night mist which was
almost fog-thick still wrapped most of the Eyrie in a cottony curtain. Beads of
moisture gathered on the watcher's bare arms and hide jerkin. He licked the wetness
from his lips. But he made no move toward shelter, just as he had not during
any of the long black hours behind him.
Hot anger had brought
him up on this broken rock point above the village of his tribe. And something
which was very close to real heartbreak kept him there. He propped a pointed
chin—strong, cleft and stubborn—on the palm of a grimy hand and tried to pick
out the buildings which made straight angles in the mist below.
Right before him, of
course, was the Star Hall. And as he studied its rough stone walls, his lips
drew tight in what was almost a noiseless snarl. To be one of the Star Men,
honored by all the tribe, consecrated to the gathering and treasuring of
knowledge, to the breaking of new trails and the exploration of lost lands—he,
Fors of the Puma Clan, had never dreamed of any other life. Up until the hour
of the Council Fire last night he had kept on hoping that he would be given the
right to enter the Hall. But he had been a child and a fool to so hope when all
the signs had read just the opposite. For five years he had been passed over at
the choosing of youths as if he did not exist. Why then should his merits
suddenly become diamond-bright on the sixth occasion?
Only—his head dropped
and his teeth clenched. Only—this was the last year—the very last year for him.
Next year he would be over the age limit allowed a novice. When he was passed
over last night—
Maybe—if his father had
come back from that last exploring venture—If he himself didn't bear the stigma
so plainly—His fingers clutched the thick hair on his head, tugging painfully
as if he would have it all out by the roots. His hair was the worst! They might
have forgotten about his night sight and too-keen hearing. He could have
concealed those as soon as he learned how wrong it was to be different. But he
could not hide the color of his close-cropped hair. And that had damned him
from the day his father had brought him here. Other men had brown or black, or,
at the worst, sun-bleached yellow, covering their heads. He had silver white,
which showed to all men that he was a mutant, different from the rest of his
clan. Mutant! Mutant!
For more than two
hundred years—ever since the black days of chaos following the Great Blow-up,
the nuclear war—that cry had been enough to condemn without trial. Fear caused
it, the strong, instinctive fear of the whole race for anyone cursed with a
different physique or unusual powers.
Ugly tales were told of
what had happened to the mutants, those unfortunates born in the first year
after the Blow-up. Some tribes had taken drastic steps in those days to see
that the strain of human—or almost human—lineage be kept pure.
Here in the Eyrie, far
apart from the infection of the bombed sectors, mutation had been almost
unknown. But he, Fors, had Plains' blood—tainted, unclean—and, since he could
remember at all, he had never been allowed to put that fact from him.
While his father had
lived it had not been so bad. The other children had yelled at him and there
had been fights. But somehow, his father's confidence in him had made even that
seem natural. And in the evenings, when they had shut out the rest of the
Eyrie, there had been long hours of learning to read and write, to map and
observe, the lore of the high trails and the low. Even among the Star Men his
father had been a master instructor. And never had it appeared doubtful to
Langdon that his only son Fors would follow him into the Star Hall.
So even after his father
had failed to return from a trip to the lowlands, Fors had been confident of
the future. He had made his weapons, the long bow now lying beside him, the
short stabbing sword, the hunting knife—all with his own hands according to the
Law. He had learned the trails and had found Lura, his great hunting cat—thus
fulfilling all the conditions for the Choosing. For five years he had come to
the Fire each season, with diminishing hope to be sure, and each time to be
ignored as if he did not exist. And now he was too old to try again.
Tomorrow—no, today—he
would have to lay aside his weapons and obey the dictates of the Council. Their
verdict would be that he live on sufferance—which was probably all a mutant
could expect—as a worker in one of the cave-sheltered Hydro farms.
No more schooling, no
fifteen or twenty years of roving the lowlands, with further honored years to
look forward to as an instructor and guardian of knowledge—a Star Man, explorer
of the wilderness existing in the land where the Great Blow-up had made a world
hostile to man. He would have no part in tracing the old cities where forgotten
knowledge might be discovered and brought back to the Eyrie, in mapping roads
and trails, helping to bring light out of darkness. He couldn't surrender that
dream to the will of the Council!
A low questioning sound
came out of the dark and absently he answered with an assenting thought. A
shadow detached itself from a jumble of rocks and crept on velvet feet, soft belly
fur dragging on the moss, to him. Then a furred shoulder almost as wide as his
own nudged against him and he dropped a hand to scratch behind pricked ears.
Lura was impatient. All the wild scents of the woods were rich in her widened
nostrils and she wanted to be on the trail. His hand on her head was a
restraint she half resented.
Lura loved freedom. What
service she gave was of her own choosing, after the manner of her kind. He had
been so proud two years ago when the most beautifully marked kitten of Kanda's
last litter had shown such a preference for his company. One day Jarl
himself—the Star Captain—had commented on it. How that had raised Fors'
hopes—but nothing had come of the incident, only Lura herself. He rubbed his
hot cheek against the furry head raised to his. She made again the little
questioning sound deep in her throat. She knew his unhappiness.
There was no sign of
sunrise. Instead black clouds were gathering above the bald top of the Big
Knob. It would be a stormy day and those below would keep within shelter. The
moisture of the mist had become a drizzle and Lura was manifestly angry at his
stubbornness in not going indoors. But if he went into any building of the
Eyrie now it would be in surrender—a surrender to the loss of the life he had
been born to lead, a surrender to all the whispers, the badge of shameful
failure, to the stigma of being mutant—not as other men. And he could not do
that—he couldn't!
If Langdon had stood
before the Council last night—
Langdon! He could
remember his father so vividly, the tall strong body, the high-held head with
its bright, restless, seeking eyes above a tight mouth and sharp jaw.
Only—Langdon's hair had been safely dark. It was from his unknown Plainswoman
mother that Fors had that too-fair hair which branded him as one apart.
Langdon's shoulder bag
with its star badge hung now in the treasure room of the Star Hall. It had been
found with his battered body on the site of his last battle. A fight with the
Beast Things seldom ended in victory for the mountaineers.
He had been on the track
of a lost city when he had been killed. Not a "blue city," still
forbidden to men if they wished to live, but a safe place without radiation
which could be looted for the advantage of the Eyrie. For the hundredth time
Fors wondered if his father's theory concerning the tattered bit of map was
true—if a safe city did lie somewhere to the north on the edge of a great lake,
ready and waiting for the man lucky and reckless enough to search it out.
"Ready and
waiting—" Fors repeated the words aloud. Then his hand closed almost
viciously on Lura's fur. She growled warningly at his roughness, but he did not
hear her.
Why—the answer had been
before him all along! Perhaps five years ago he could not have tried it—perhaps
this eternal waiting and disappointment had been for the best after all.
Because now he was ready—he knew it! His strength and the ability to use it,
his knowledge and his wits were all ready.
No light yet showed
below. The clouds were prolonging the night. But his time of grace was short,
he would have to move fast! The bow, the filled quiver, the sword, were hidden
between two rocks. Lura crawled in beside them to wait, his unspoken suggestion
agreeing with her own desires.
Fors crept down the
twisted trail to the Eyrie and made for the back of the Star Hall. The bunks of
the Star Men on duty were all in the forepart of the house; the storage room
was almost directly before him. And luck was favoring him as it never had
before, for the heavy shutter was not bolted or even completely closed as his
exploring fingers discovered. After all—no one had ever dreamed of invading the
Star Hall unasked.
Moving as noiselessly as
Lura he swung over the high sill and stood breathing in a light flutter. To the
ordinary man of the Eyrie the room would have been almost pitch dark. But, for
once, Fors' mutant night sight was an aid. He could see the long table and the
benches without difficulty, make out the line of pouches hanging on the far
wall. These were his goal. His hand closed unerringly on one he had helped to
pack many times. But when he lifted it from its hook he detached the gleaming
bit of metal pinned to its strap.
To his father's papers
and belongings he might prove some shadowy claim. But to that Star he had no
right. His lips twisted in a bitter grimace as he laid the badge down on the
edge of the long table before clambering back into the grayness of the outer
world.
Now that the pouch swung
from his shoulder he went openly to the storage house and selected a light blanket,
a hunter's canteen and a bag of traveler's corn kept in readiness there. Then,
reclaiming his weapons and the impatient Lura, he started off—not toward the
narrow mountain valleys where all of his hunting had been done, but down toward
the forbidden plains. A chill born of excitement rather than the bite of the
rising wind roughened his skin, but his step was sure and confident as he
hunted out the path blazed by Langdon more than ten years before, a path which
was not watched by any station of the outpost guards.
Many times around the
evening fires had the men of the Eyrie discussed the plains below and the
strange world which had felt the force of the Great Blow-up and been turned
into an alien, poisonous trap for any human not knowing its ways. Why, in the
past twenty years even the Star Men had mapped only four cities, and one of
them was "blue" and so forbidden.
They knew the traditions
of the old times. But, Langdon had always insisted even while he was repeating
the stories to Fors, they could not judge how much of this information had been
warped and distorted by time. How could they be sure that they were of the same
race as those who had lived before the Blow-up? The radiation sickness, which
had cut the number of survivors in the Eyrie to less than half two years after
the war, might well have altered the future generations. Surely the misshapen
Beast Things must once have had a human origin—or had they? Men were playing
with the very stuff of life before the Blow-up. And the Beast Things clung to
the old cities where the worst mutations had occurred.
The men of the Eyrie had
records to prove that their forefathers had been a small band of technicians
and scientists engaged in some secret research, cut off from a world which
disappeared so quickly. But there were the Plainsmen of the wide grasslands,
also free from the taint of the beast, who had survived and now roamed with
their herds.
And there might be
others.
Who had started the
nuclear war was unknown. Fors had once seen an old book containing jotted
fragments of messages which had come out of the air through machines during a
single horrible day. And these broken messages only babbled of the death of a
world.
But that was all the men
of the mountains knew of the last war. And while they fought ceaselessly to
keep alive the old skills and learning there was so much, so very much, they no
longer understood. They had old maps with pink and green, blue and yellow
patches all carefully marked. But the pink and green, blue and yellow areas had
had no defense against fire and death from the air and so had ceased to be.
Only now could men, venturing out from their pockets of safety into the
unknown, bring back bits of knowledge which they might piece together into
history.
Somewhere, within a mile
or so of the trail he had chosen, Fors knew that there was a section of
pre-Blow-up road. And that might be followed by the cautious for about a day's
journey north. He had seen and handled the various trophies brought back by his
father and his father's comrades, but he had never actually traveled the old
roads or sniffed the air of the lowlands for himself. His pace quickened to a
lope and he did not even feel the steady pour of the rain which streamed across
his body plastering even his blanket to him. Lura protested with every leap she
made to keep pace with him, but she did not go back. The excitement which drew
him on at such an unwary speed had spread to the always sensitive mind of the
great cat who made her way through the underbrush with sinuous ease.
The old road was almost
a disappointment when he stumbled out upon it. Once it must have had a smooth
surface, but time, disuse, and the spreading greedy force of wild vegetation
had seamed and broken it. Nevertheless it was a marvel to be examined closely
by one who had never seen such footing before. Men had ridden on it once
encased in machines. Fors knew that, he had seen pictures of such machines, but
their fashioning was now a mystery. The men of the Eyrie knew facts about them,
painfully dug out of the old books brought back from city lootings, but the
materials and fuels for their production were now beyond hope of obtaining.
Lura did not like the
roadway. She tried it with a cautious paw, sniffed at the upturned edge of a
block, and went back to firm ground. But Fors stepped out on it boldly, walking
the path of the Old Ones even when it would have been easier to take to the
bush. It gave him an odd feeling of power to tread so. This stuff beneath his
hide boots had been fashioned by those of his race who had been wiser and
stronger and more learned. It was up to those of his breed to regain that lost
wisdom.
"Ho, Lura!"
The cat paused at his
exultant call and swung the dark brown mask of her face toward him. Then she
meowed plaintively, conveying the thought that she was being greatly misused by
this excursion into the dampness of an exceedingly unpleasant day.
She was beautiful
indeed. Fors' feeling of good will and happiness grew within him as he watched
her. Since he had left the last step of the mountain trail he had felt a
curious sense of freedom and for the first time in his life he did not care
about the color of his hair or feel that he must be inferior to the others of
his clan. He had all his father had taught him well in mind, and in the pouch
swinging at his side, his father's greatest secret. He had a long bow no other
youth of his age could string, a bow of his own making. His sword was sharp and
balanced to suit his hand alone. There was all the lower world before him and
the best of companions to match his steps.
Lura licked at her wet
fur and Fors caught a flash of—was it her thoughts or just emotion? None of the
Eyrie dwellers had ever been able to decide how the great cats were able to
communicate with the men they chose to honor with their company. Once there had
been dogs to run with man—Fors had read of them. But the strange radiation
sickness had been fatal to the dogs of the Eyrie and their breed had died out
forever.
Because of that same
plague the cats had changed. Small domestic animals of untamable independence
had produced larger offspring with even quicker minds and greater strength.
Mating with wild felines from the tainted plains had established the new
mutation. The creature which now rubbed against Fors was the size of a mountain
lion of pre-Blow-up days, but her thick fur was of a deep shade of cream,
darkening on head, legs, and tail to a chocolate brown—after the coloring set by
a Siamese ancestor first brought into the mountains by the wife of a research
engineer. Her eyes were the deep sapphire blue of a true gem, but her claws
were cruelly sharp and she was a master hunter.
That taste possessed her
now as she drew Fors' attention to a patch of moist ground where the slot of a
deer was deep marked. The trail was fresh—even as he studied it a bit of sand
tumbled from the top into the hollow of the mark. Deer meat was good and he had
few supplies. It might be worth turning aside. He need not speak to Lura—she
knew his decision and was off on the trail at once. He padded after her with
the noiseless woods walk he had learned so long before that he could not
remember the lessons.
The trail led off at a
right angle from the remains of the old road, across the tumbled line of a wall
where old bricks protruded at crazy points from heaped earth and brush. Water
from leaves and branches doused both hunters, gluing Fors' homespun leggings to
his legs and squeezing into his boots.
He was puzzled. By the
signs, the deer had been fleeing for its life and yet whatever menaced it had
left no trace. But Fors was not afraid. He had never met any living thing, man
or animal, which could stand against the force of his steel-tipped arrows or
which he would have hesitated to face, short sword in hand.
Between the men of the
mountains and the roving Plainsmen there was a truce. The Star Men often lived
for periods of time in the skin-walled tents of the herders, exchanging
knowledge of far places with those eternal wanderers. And his father had taken
a wife among the outlanders. Of course, there was war to the death between the
human kind and the Beast Things which skulked in the city ruins. But the latter
had never been known to venture far from their dank, evil-smelling burrows in
the shattered buildings, and certainly one need not fear meeting with them in
this sort of open country! So he followed the trail with a certain reckless
disregard.
The trail ended suddenly
on the lip of a small gully. Some ten feet or so below, a stream—swollen by the
rain—frothed around green-grown rocks. Lura was on her belly, pulling her body
forward along the rim of the ravine. Fors dropped down and inched behind a
bush. He knew better than to interfere with her skillful approach.
When the tip of her
brown tail quivered he watched for a trembling of Lura's flat flanks which
would signalize her spring. But instead the tail suddenly bristled and the
shoulders hunched as if to put a brake upon muscles already tensed. He caught her
message of bewilderment, of disgust and, yes, of fear.
He knew that he had
better eyesight than almost all of the Eyrie men, that had been proved many
times. But what had stopped Lura in her tracks was gone. True, upstream a bush
still swayed as if something had just pushed past it. But the sound of the
water covered any noise and although he strained—there was nothing to see.
Lura's ears lay flat
against her skull and her eyes were slits of blazing rage. But beneath the rage
Fors grasped another emotion—almost fear. The big cat had come across something
strange and therefore suspect. Aroused by her message Fors lowered himself over
the edge of the gully. Lura made no attempt to stop him. Whatever had troubled
her was gone, but he was determined to see what traces it might have left in
its passing.
The greenish stones of
the river bank were sleek and slippery with spray, and twice he had to catch
hurriedly at bushes to keep from falling into the stream. He got to his hands
and knees to move across one rock and then he was at the edge of the bush which
had fluttered.
A red pool, sticky but
already being diluted by the rain and the spray, filled a clay hollow. He
tasted it with the aid of a finger. Blood. Probably that of the deer they had
been following.
Then, just beyond, he
saw the spoor of the hunter that had brought it down. It was stamped boldly
into the clay, deeply as if the creature that made it had balanced for a moment
under a weight, perhaps the body of the deer. And it was too clear to mistake the
outline—the print of a naked foot.
No man of the Eyrie, no
Plainsman had left that track! It was narrow and the same width from heel to
toe—as if the thing which had left it was completely flat-footed. The toes were
much too long and skeleton-thin. Beyond their tips were indentations of—not
nails—but what must be real claws!
Fors' skin crawled. It
was unhealthy—that was the word which came into his mind as he stared at the
track. He was glad—and then ashamed of that same gladness—that he had not seen
the hunter in person.
Lura pushed past him.
She tasted the blood with a dainty tongue and then lapped it once or twice
before she came on to inspect his find. Again flattened ears and wrinkled,
snarling lips gave voice to her opinion of the vanished hunter. Fors strung his
bow for action. For the first time the chill of the day struck him. He shivered
as a flood of water spouted at him over the rocks.
With more caution they
went back up the slope. Lura showed no inclination to follow any trail the
unknown hunter might have left and Fors did not suggest it to her. This wild
world was Lura's real home and more than once the life of a Star Man had
depended upon the instincts of his hunting cat. If Lura saw no reason to risk
her skin downriver, he would abide by her choice.
They came back to the
road. But now Fors used hunting craft and the trail-covering tricks which
normally one kept only for the environs of a ruined city—those haunted places
where death still lay in wait to strike down the unwary. It had stopped raining
but the clouds did not lift.
Toward noon he brought
down a fat bird Lura flushed out of a tangle of brush and they shared the raw
flesh of the fowl equally.
It was close to dusk,
shadows falling early because of the storm, when they came out upon a hill
above the dead village the old road served.
Even in the pre-Blow-up
days when it had been lived in, the town must have been neither large nor
impressive. But to Fors, who had never before seen any buildings but those of
the Eyrie, it was utterly strange and even a bit frightening. The wild
vegetation had made its claim and moldering houses were now only lumps under
the greenery. One water-worn pier at the edge of the river which divided the
town marked a bridge long since fallen away.
Fors hesitated on the
heights above for several long minutes. There was a forbidding quality in that
tangled wilderness below, a sort of moldy rankness rising on the evening wind
from the hollow which cupped the ruins. Wind, storm and wild animals had had
their way there too long.
On the road to one side
was a heap of rusted metal which he thought must be the remains of a car such
as the men of the old days had used for transportation. Even then it must have
been an old one. Because just before the Blow-up they had perfected another
type, with an entirely different propulsion system and non-metallic bodies.
Sometimes Star Men had found those almost intact. He skirted the wreckage and,
keeping to the thread of battered road, went down into the town.
Lura trotted beside him,
her head high as she tested each passing breeze for scent. Quail took flight
into the tall grass and somewhere a cock pheasant called. Twice the scut of a
rabbit showed white and clear against the green.
There were flowers in
that tangle, defending themselves with hooked thorns, the twining stems which
bore them looped and relooped into barriers he could not crash through. And all
at once the setting sun broke between cloud lines to bring their scarlet petals
into angry life. Insects chirped in the grass. The storm was over.
The travelers pushed
through into an open space bordered on all sides by crumbling mounds of
buildings. From somewhere came the sound of water and Fors beat a path through
the rank shrubbery to where a trickle of stream fed a man-made basin.
In the lowlands water
must always be suspect—he knew that. But the clear stream before him was much
more appetizing than the musty stuff which had sloshed all day in the canteen
at his belt. Lura lapped it unafraid, shaking her head to free her whiskers
from stray drops. So he dared to cup up a palmful and sip it gingerly.
The pool lay directly
before a freak formation of rocks which might have once been heaped up to form
a cave. And the mat of leaves which had collected inside there was dry. He
crept in. Surely there would be no danger in camping here. One never slept in
any of the old houses, of course. There was no way of telling whether the
ghosts of ancient disease still lingered in their rottenness. Men had died from
that carelessness. But here—in among the leaves he saw white bones. Some other
hunter—a four-footed one—had already dined.
Fors kicked out the
refuse and went prospecting for wood not too sodden to burn. There were places
in and among the clustered rocks where winds had piled branches and he returned
to the cave with one, then two, and finally three armloads, which he piled
within reaching distance.
Out in the plains fire
could be an enemy as well as a friend. A carelessly tended blaze in the wide
grasslands might start one of the oceans of flame which would run for miles
driving all living things before it. And in an enemy's country it was instant
betrayal. So even when he had his small circle of sticks in place Fors
hesitated, flint and steel in hand. There was the mysterious hunter—what if he
were lurking now in the maze of the ruined town?
Yet both he and Lura
were chilled and soaked by the rain. To sleep cold might mean illness to come.
And, while he could stomach raw meat when he had to, he relished it broiled
much more. In the end it was the thought of the meat which won over his
caution, but even when a tread of flame arose from the center of his wheel of
sticks, his hand still hovered ready to put it out. Then Lura came up to watch
the flames and he knew that she would not be so at her ease if any danger
threatened. Lura's eyes and nose were both infinitely better than his own.
Later, simply by
freezing into a hunter's immobility by the pool, he was able to knock over
three rabbits. Giving Lura two, he skinned and broiled the third. The setting
sun was red and by the old signs he could hope for a clear day tomorrow. He
licked his fingers, dabbled them in the water, and wiped them on a tuft of
grass. Then for the first time that day he opened the pouch he had stolen
before the dawn.
He knew what was inside,
but this was the first time in years that he held in his hand again the sheaf
of brittle old papers and read the words which had been carefully traced across
them in his father's small, even script. Yes—he was humming a broken little
tune—it was here, the scrap of map his father had treasured so—the one
which showed the city to the north, a city which his father had hoped was safe
and yet large enough to yield rich loot for the Eyrie.
But it was not easy to
read his father's cryptic notes. Langdon had made them for his own use and Fors
could only guess at the meaning of such directions as "snake river to the
west of barrens," "Northeast of the wide forest" and all the
rest. Landmarks on the old maps were now gone, or else so altered by time that
a man might pass a turning point and never know it. As Fors frowned over the
scrap which had led his father to his death he began to realize a little of the
enormity of the task before him. Why, he didn't even know all the safe trails
which had been blazed by the Star Men through the years, except by hearsay. And
if he became lost—
His fingers tightened
around the roll of precious papers. Lost in the lowlands! To wander off the
trails—!
Silky fur pressed
against him and a round head butted his ribs. Lura had caught that sudden nip
of fear and was answering it in her own way. Fors' lungs filled slowly. The
humid air of the lowlands lacked the keen bite of the mountain winds. But he
was free and he was a man. To return to the Eyrie was to acknowledge defeat.
What if he did lose himself down here? There was a whole wide land to make his
own! Why, he could go on and on across it until he reached the salt sea which
tradition said lay at the rim of the world. This whole land was his for the
exploring!
He delved deeper into
the bag on his knee. Besides the notes and the torn map he found the compass he
had hoped would be there, a small wooden case containing pencils, a package of
bandages and wound salve, two small surgical knives, and a roughly fashioned
notebook—the daily record of a Star Man. But to his vast disappointment the
entries there were merely a record of distances. On impulse he set down on one
of the blank pages an account of his own day's travel, trying to make a drawing
of the strange footprint. Then he repacked the pouch.
Lura stretched out on
the leaf bed and he flopped down beside her, pulling the blanket over them
both. It was twilight now. He pushed the sticks in toward the center of the fire
so that the unburnt ends would be consumed. The soft rumble of the cat's purr
as she washed her paws, biting at the spaces between her claws, made his eyes
heavy. He flung an arm over her back and she favored him with a lick of her
tongue. The rasp of it across his skin was the last thing he clearly
remembered.
There were birds in the
morning, a whole flock of them, and they did not approve of Lura. Their
scolding cries brought Fors awake. He rubbed his eyes and looked out groggily
at a gray world. Lura sat in the mouth of the cave, paying no attention to the
chorus over her head. She yawned and looked back at Fors with some impatience.
He dragged himself out
to join her and pulled off his roughly dried clothes before bathing in the
pool. It was cold enough to set him sputtering and Lura withdrew to a safe
distance. The birds flew away in a black flock. Fors dressed, lacing up his
sleeveless jerkin and fastening his boots and belt with extra care.
A more experienced
explorer would not have wasted time on the forgotten town. Long ago any useful
loot it might have once contained had either been taken away or had moldered
into rubbish. But it was the first dead place Fors had seen and he could not
leave it without some examination. He followed the road around the square. Only
one building still stood unharmed enough to allow entrance. Its stone walls
were rank with ivy and moss, its empty windows blind. He shuffled through the
dried leaves and grass which masked the broad flight of steps leading to its
wide door.
There was the whir of
disturbed grasshoppers in the leaves, as a wasp sang past. Lura pawed at
something which lay just within the doorway. It rolled away into the dusk of
the interior and they followed. Fors stopped to trace with an inquiring finger the
letters on a bronze plate.
"First National
Bank of Glentown."
He read the words aloud
and they echoed hollowly down the long room, through the empty cage-like booths
along the wall.
"First National
Bank," he repeated. What was a bank? He had only a vague idea—some sort of
a storage place. And this dead town must be Glentown—or once it had been
Glentown.
Lura had found again her
round toy and was batting it along the cracked flooring. It skidded to strike
the base of one of the cages just in front of Fors. Round eyeholes stared up at
him accusingly from a half-crushed skull. He stooped and picked it up to set it
on the stone shelf. Dust arose in a thick puff. A pile of coins spun and
jingled in all directions, their metallic tinkle clear.
There were lots of the
coins here, all along the shelves behind the cage fronts. He scooped up
handfuls and sent them rolling to amuse Lura. But they had no value. A piece of
good, rust-proof steel would be worth the taking—not these. The darkness of the
place began to oppress him and no matter which way he turned he thought he
could feel the gaze of that empty skull. He left, calling Lura to follow.
There was a dankness in
the heart of this town, the air here had the faint corruption of ancient decay,
mixed with the fresher scent of rotting wood and moldering vegetation. He
wrinkled his nose against it and pushed on down a choked street, climbing over
piles of rubble, heading toward the river. That stream had to be crossed some
way if he were to travel straight to the goal his father had mapped. It would
be easy for him to swim the thick brownish water, although it was still roily
from the storm, but he knew that Lura would not willingly venture in. He was
certainly not going to leave her behind.
Fors struck out east
along the bank above the flood. A raft of some sort would be the answer, but he
would have to get away from the ruins before he could find trees. And he chafed
at the loss of time.
There was a sun today,
climbing up, striking specks of light from the water. By turning his head he
could still see the foothills and, behind them, the bluish heights down which
he had come twenty-four hours before. But he glanced back only once, his
attention was all for the river now.
Half an hour later he
came across a find which saved him hours of back-breaking labor. A sharp break
in the bank outlined a narrow cove where the river rose during the spring
freshets. Now it was half choked with drift, from big logs to delicate, sunbleached
twigs he could snap between his fingers. He had only to pick and choose.
By the end of the
morning he had a raft, crude and certainly not intended for a long voyage, but
it should serve to float them across. Lura had her objections to the
foolishness of trusting to such a crazy woven platform. But, when Fors refused
to stay safely ashore, she pulled herself aboard it, one cautious paw testing
each step before she put her full weight upon it. And in the exact middle she
squatted down with a sigh as Fors leaned hard on his pole and pushed off.
The weird craft showed a
tendency to spin around which he had to work against. And once his pole caught
in a mud bank below and he was almost jerked off into the flood. But as the
salty sweat stung across his lips and burned in his blistered palms he could
see that the current, though taking them downstream, was slowly nudging them
toward the opposite bank.
Sun rays reflected by
the water made them both warm and thirsty, and Lura gave small whines of
self-pity all the rest of the hour. Still, she grew accustomed enough to the
new mode of travel to sit up and watch keen-eyed when a fish rose to snap at a
fly. Once they slipped past a mass of decayed wreckage which must have been the
remains of a boat, and twice swept between abutments of long-vanished bridges.
This had been a thickly settled territory before the Blow-up. Fors tried to
imagine what it had looked like when the towns had been lived in, the roads had
been busy with traffic, when there had been boats on the river—
Since the current was
taking them in the general direction of the route eastward he did not struggle
too quickly to reach the other side. But when a portion of their shaky raft
suddenly broke off and started a separate voyage of its own, he realized that
such carelessness might mean trouble and he worked with the pole to break the
grip of the current and reach the shore. There were bluffs along the river,
cutting off easy access to the level lands behind them and he watched anxiously
for a cove or sandbank which would give them a fair landing.
He had to be satisfied
with a very shallow notch where a landslide had brought down a section of the
bank containing two trees which now formed a partial barrier out from the
shore. The raft, after much back-breaking labor on his part, caught against
these, shivered against the pull of the water, and held. Lura did not wait, but
was gone in a single leap to the solid footing of the tree trunks. Fors grabbed
up his belongings and followed, none too soon, as the raft split and whirled
around, shaking into pieces which the river carried on.
A hard scramble up the
greasy clay of the bank brought them into open country once more. Grass grew
tall, bushes spread in dusty blotches across the land tamed by centuries of the
plow and the reaper.
Lura let him know that
it had been too long since their last meal and she intended to do something
about supplies. She set off across the faint boundaries of the old fields with
grim purpose in every line of her graceful feline body. Grouse scuttled from
underfoot and there were rabbits everywhere, but she disdained to notice such
small game. She pushed on, with Fors half a field behind her, toward a slope
which was crowned with a thick growth of trees.
Halfway up she paused,
the tip of her tail quivered, the pink rosette of her tongue showed briefly
between her teeth. Then she was gone again, fading away into the tall grass as
silently and effortlessly as the breeze might pass. Fors stepped back into the
shade of the nearest tree. This was Lura's hunt and he must leave it to her.
He looked out over the
waving grass. It seemed to be some form of stunted grain, not yet quite ripe,
for it had a seed head forming. The sky was blue with small white clouds
drifting across it as if the storm winds had never torn them, although at his
feet lay a branch splintered and broken by yesterday's wind.
A hoarse bellowing
brought him out of his half dream, bow in hand. It was followed by the spitting
squall which was Lura's war cry. Fors began to run up the slope toward the
sound. But hunter's caution kept him to such shelter as the field afforded so
he did not burst rashly out onto the scene of the combat.
Lura had tackled
big game! He caught the sun flash on her tawny fur as she leaped away from an
inert red-brown body just in time to escape the charge of a larger beast. A
wild cow! And Lura had killed her calf!
Fors' arrow was already
in the air. The cow bellowed again and tossed her wickedly horned head. She
made a shambling run to the body of her calf, snorting in red rage. Then
crimson froth puffed from her wide nostrils and she stumbled to her knees and
fell on her side. Lura's round head shot up above a stand of thick grass and
she moved out to the side of her prey. Fors came from the trees where he had
taken cover. He would have echoed Lura's rasping purr had it been in his power.
That arrow had gone straight and true to the mark he had set it.
It was a pity to have to
waste all that meat. Enough to keep three Eyrie families for a week lay there.
He prodded the cow with a regretful toe before starting to butcher the calf.
He could, of course, try
to jerk the meat. But he was unsure of the right method and he could not carry
it with him anyway. So he contented himself with preparing what he could for the
next few days while Lura, after feasting, slept under a bush, rousing now and
then to snap at the gathering flies.
They made camp that
night a field or two beyond the kill, in the corner of an old wall. Piles of
fallen stone turned it into a position which could be defended if the need
arose. But neither slept well. The fresh meat they had left behind drew night
rovers. There was a scream or two which must have come from Lura's wild
relatives and she growled in answer. Then in the early dawn there was a baying
cry which Fors was unable to identify, woods learned as he was. But Lura went
wild when she heard it, spitting in sheer hate, her fur rising stiff along her
backbone.
It was early when Fors
started on, striking across the open fields in the line set by his compass.
Today he made no effort to keep cover or practice caution. He could see no
menace in these waste fields. Why had there been all the talk back in the Eyrie
about the danger in the lowlands? Of course, one did keep away from the
"blue" patches where radiation still meant death even after all these
years. And the Beast Things were always to be dreaded—had not Langdon died in
their attack? But as far as the Star Men had been able to discover those
nightmare creatures kept to the old cities and were not to be feared in the
open. Surely these fields must be as safe for man as the mountain forests which
encircled the Eyrie.
He took an easy curve
and came out suddenly on a sight which brought him up—blinking. Here was a
road—but such a road! The broken concrete was four times as wide as any he had
seen—it had really been two roads running side by side with a stretch of earth
between them, two wide roads running smoothly from one horizon to another.
But not two hundred
yards from where he stood gaping, the road was choked with a tangle of rusting
metal. A barrier of broken machines filled it from ditch to ditch. Fors
approached it slowly. There was something about that monstrous wall which was
forbidding—even though he knew that it had stood so for perhaps three hundred
years. Black crickets jumped out of the weeds before him and a mouse flashed
across a stretch of clear stone.
He rounded the jumble of
wrecked machines. They must have been traveling along the road in a line when
death had struck mysteriously, struck so that some of the machines had rammed
others or wavered off to pile up in wild wreckage. Others stood solitary as if
the dying driver had been able to bring them to a safe halt before he
succumbed. Fors tried to pick out the outlines and associate what he saw with
the ancient pictures. That—that was certainly a "tank," one of the
moving fortresses of the Old Ones. Its gun still pointed defiantly to the sky.
Two, four, five more he counted, and then gave up.
The column of machines
stretched out in its forgotten disaster for almost a mile. Fors brushed along
beside it in the waist-high weeds which bordered the road. He had an odd
distaste for approaching the dead machines more closely, no desire to touch any
of the bits of rusted metal. Here and there he saw one of the
alternative-powered vehicles, seeming almost intact. But they were dead too.
All of it was dead, in a horrible way. He experienced a vague feeling of
contamination from just walking beside the wreckage.
There were guns on the
moving forts, guns which still swung ready, and there had been men, hundreds of
men. He could see their white bones mixed with the rust and the debris driven
in by years of wind and storm. Guns and men—where had they been going when the
end came? And what was the end? There were none of the craters he had been told
were to be found where bombs had fallen—just smashed machines and men, as if
death had come as a mist or a wind.
Guns and men on the
march—maybe to repel invaders. The book of air-borne messages treasured in the
Eyrie had spoken once or twice of invaders coming from the sky—enemies who had
struck with paralyzing swiftness. But something must have happened in turn to
that enemy—or else why had the invaders not made the land their own? Probably
the answer to that question would never be known.
Fors reached the end of
the blasted column. But he kept on walking along the clean earth until he
topped a rise and could no longer sight the end of a wasted war. Then he dared
once more to walk the road of the Old Ones.
About half a mile
farther on the shadow of a woodland swallowed up the road. Fors' heart lifted
when he saw it. These open fields were strange to a mountain-born man but he
felt at home in a thick coat of trees such as the one before him now.
He was trying to
remember the points on the big map which hung on the wall of the Star House,
the map to which was added a tiny mark at the return of each roving explorer.
This northern route crossed the wedge end of a portion of territory held
loosely by Plainsmen. And the Plainsmen had horses—useless in the mountains and
so untamed by his people—but very needful in this country of straight
distances. To have a horse at his service now—
The cool of the woods
lapped him in and he was at home at once, as was Lura. They padded on, their
feet making but the faintest whisper of sound. It was a scent carried by a tiny
puff of breeze which brought them up—Wood smoke!
Fors' thought met Lura's
and agreed. She stood for a long moment, testing the air with her keener
nostrils, and then she turned aside, pushing between two birches. Fors scraped
after her. The guiding puff of wind was gone, but he could smell something
else. They were approaching a body of water—not running water or the sound of
its passing would be heard.
There was a break in the
foliage ahead. He saw Lura flatten herself out on a rock surface which was
almost the same color as her own creamy hide, flatten and creep. And he
hunkered down to follow her example, the gritty stone biting knees and hands as
he wormed out beside her.
They were belly down on
a spur of rock which overhung the surface of a woods-hemmed lake. Not far
beyond a thread of stream trickled away and he could spot two islands, the
nearest joined to the mainland by a series of stepping stones. On the shores of
this islet crouched someone very busy over a cooking fire.
The stranger was no
mountaineer, that was certain. In the first place his wide-shouldered, muscular
bronze body was bare to the waist and at least three shades darker in skin tint
than the most deeply tanned of the Eyrie men. The hair on his round skull was
black and tightly curled. He had strongly marked features with a wide-lipped mouth
and flat cheekbones, his large dark eyes set far apart. His only clothing was a
sort of breechclout kilt held in place by a wide belt from which hung the
tassel-ornamented scabbard of a knife. The knife itself, close to eighteen
inches of blue steel, flashed in his hand as he energetically cleaned a
fresh-caught fish.
Stuck upright in the
ground close to his shoulder were three short-shafted spears, a blanket of
coarse reddish wool draped over the point of one. Smoke rose from the fire laid
on a flat stone, but there was no indication as to whether the stranger had
merely halted for a meal or had been camping on the islet.
As he worked the
fisherman sang—a low, monotonous chant, which, as he listened to it, affected
Fors queerly, sending an odd shiver up his backbone. This was no Plainsman
either. And Fors was just as sure that he was not spying on one of the Beast
Things. The few mountaineer men who had survived a meeting with them had
painted a far different picture—they were never to be associated with peaceful
fishing and an intelligent, pleasant face.
This dark-skinned
newcomer was of a different breed. Fors rested his chin on his folded arms and
tried to deduce from the evidence this stranger's background—as was the duty of
an explorer.
The lack of clothing,
now—that meant that he was accustomed to a warmer climate. Such an outfit could
only be worn here before fall closed in. He had those spears and—yes—that was a
bow lying with its quiver beyond. But it was much shorter than the one Fors
carried and did not appear to be made of wood but from some dark substance
which reflected light from the sun.
He must come from a land
where his race was all-powerful and had nothing to fear for he camped in the
open and sang while he cooked as if he did not care if he attracted attention.
And yet he did this on an island, more easily defended from attack than the
shore itself.
Just then the fisherman
impaled the cleaned fish on a sharpened twig and set it to broil while he got
to his feet and hurled a baited line back into the water. Fors blinked. The man
on the island must tower a good four or five inches over the tallest of the
Eyrie men and his thatch of upstanding hair could not account for more than two
inches of that difference. As he stood there, still humming, his hands
skillfully adjusted the fishing line, he presented a picture of strength and
power which would daunt even a Beast Thing.
The odor of the fish
carried. Lura made a faint slurruping sound as it reached them. Fors hesitated.
Should he hail the dark-skinned hunter, make the peace sign, and try to
establish friendly relations or—
That question was
decided for him. A shout tore the serene silence of the lake. The dark hunter
moved—so fast that Fors was left gasping. Spears, blanket, bow—and the broiled
fish—vanished with their owner. A bush quivered and then was still. The fire
burned—on a deserted pebbled beach.
A second shout bore down
wind, reinforced by a trampling crash, and down to the edge of the lake trotted
a band of horses, mares mostly, each with a small foal running at her side.
Urging them on were two riders, bent nearly flat on the backs of their mounts
to escape the low sweeping branches of the trees. They herded the mares to
water and waited for them to drink.
Fors almost forgot the
dark hunter. Horses! He had seen pictures of them. But living horses! The
age-old longing of his race—to possess one of those for his own—made a strange
ache in his thigh muscles, as if he were already mounted upon one of the sleek
backs.
One of the horse guards
dismounted and was rubbing down the legs of his animal with handfuls of grass
pulled up from the bank. He was undoubtedly a Plainsman. His sleeveless
jerkin laced across the chest was almost twin to the one Fors wore. But his
leggings were of hide and polished by hours of riding. He wore his hair
shoulder length as the sign of free birth and it was held out of his eyes by a
broad band on which was painted the sign of his family clan and tribe. The long
lance which was the terrible weapon of the horsemen hung in its loops at his
saddle and in addition he wore at his belt the curved, slashing sword which was
the badge of his nation.
For the second time Fors
wondered whether he should make overtures. But that, too, was quickly answered.
Out of the trees came a second pair of riders, both older men. One was a chief
or sub chieftain of the Plainsmen, for the metal badge in his headband had
caught the sun. But the other—
Fors' body jerked as if
an arrow had thudded home between his shoulder blades. And Lura, catching his
dismay, voiced one of her noiseless snarls.
That was Jarl! But Jarl
was the Star Captain—now exempt from travel in the lowlands. He had not been
exploring for two years or more. It was his duty to remain at the Eyrie and
portion out the tasks of other Star Men. But there he was, riding knee to knee
with the Plainsman chief as if he were any apprentice rover. What had brought
Jarl down to the lowlands against all rule and custom?
Fors winced—there was an
answer to that. Never before had the sanctuary of the Star House been violated.
His crime must have brought Jarl out of the hills. And if he, Fors, were
captured—what would be the penalty for such a theft? He had no idea but his
imagination could supply quite a few—all of them drastic. In the meantime he
could only remain where he was and pray that he would not be detected before
the herders moved.
Luckily most of the
horses had drunk their fill and were turning away from the lake. Fors watched
them longingly. With one of them to lend four feet and save his two, he could
be well beyond Jarl's reach before the Star Captain knew of his presence. He
had too great an opinion of Jarl's skill not to believe that the man from the
Eyrie could cross his trail within a day or so.
The second herder urged
the last mares away from the water while his companion mounted. But Jarl and
the chief still sat talking and looking out idly across the lake. Fors silently
endured the bites of flies which seemed to have accompanied the horses, but
Lura growled again softly. She wanted to leave, knowing full well that if she
did not want her trail followed it would not be. Fors could not hope for such
results himself, so he hesitated until the cat's impatience or some change in
the air current changed their luck as it carried Lura's scent down to the
peaceful herd.
Within seconds there was
wild confusion. Mares squealed, wild-eyed with fright for their foals, tramping
up the bank and bursting between the riders—dashing ahead to get away from that
dangerous place. The Plainsmen had been caught off guard. One was borne along
with the rush, fighting to regain mastery of his own mount—the other could only
ride after the rout.
Lance in hand the chief
went after them. But Jarl remained where he was for a long moment, searching
the shoreline of the lake with narrowed eyes. Fors flattened against the rock,
sending a stern warning to Lura to do likewise. Fortunately Jarl was on the
opposite side of the water and the Star Captain could not match the keen sight
of his quarry. But how much protection that offered he had no means of telling.
Hardly daring to draw
the shallowest of breaths, cat and boy inched back. Jarl stayed, alert,
watching. Then came the thunder of hoofs, just as Fors' boots struck earth. He
was off at his best woods' pace, heading north, away from the camp which must
lie somewhere on the other side of the lake. He wanted a horse, needed a horse,
but not enough that he dared brave Jarl to get one. Fors had a very hearty
respect for the abilities of the Star Captain.
As he sped away he
wondered what the hunter on the island had done and whether he, too, was now
putting some miles between himself and the Plains camp.
At least he had
that broiled fish to take with him. Fors munched a handful of parched corn from
his emergency rations as he trotted along and some shreds of dried meat, giving
the rest to Lura who downed it in a single gulp. Half-ripe berries snatched
from bushes as he passed were sauce of a sort. But there still remained a
feeling of emptiness in his middle which grew with the lengthening shadows of
the afternoon.
They had used the feeder
stream of the lake as a guide, but the thinning of the trees around them now
and the appearance of open patches suggested that the end of the wood was
close. Fors paused and tried to plan. He was at home in the forest country and
knew how to conceal his trail there. On the other hand, in the open, out in the
once cultivated fields, one would make better time and be able to cover a good
many miles before the daylight failed entirely. The hunters of the plains—if
human—were mounted men and any pursuit would be easily seen. And there were
plenty of scattered clumps of trees and running tongues of brush to give him
shelter in a pinch. He decided to venture out.
A brown animal with a
black mask about its eyes surveyed him critically from a pile of rocks but was
gone in a flash when Lura's head came out of a tall stand of grass. That was
the only living thing they saw until they skirted the rotting timbers of a
farmhouse, missing a tumble into its half-exposed cellar only by chance.
A sound answered Fors'
yelp and his hand swept to the hilt of his sword. He skidded around, bare steel
out. An ugly naked pink snout, still smeared with earth and slime, protruded
from a tangle of brush, and the wicked tusks below it caught and held the
light. Fors hurled pouch and bow from him and half crouched, waiting for that
most dangerous of all rushes, the attack of a wild boar.
It came with all the
deadly ferocity he had expected, the tusks slashing for his legs. He struck,
but the creature dodged so that, though a red and dripping line leaped out
along its head and shoulder, it was not sent kicking. It grunted loudly, and
there came answers. Fors' mouth dried—he was facing a whole pack of swine!
Behind him was a pile of
the collapsed timbers which had once been the wall of a small building, but
they were pulpy with rot and they dipped dangerously toward the cellar. If he
jumped for them he might well crash through.
From the bushes came a
squall of rage and pain. The boar tossed its tusked head and blew foam. Its
eyes in the black-and-white spotted face were red and evil. Another squeal came
from the herd, this time followed by an answering snarl. Fors loosed a thankful
breath.
Lura was keeping the
herd occupied. Under her ripping claws the younger and weaker ones would
certainly break and scatter. But not this old leader. It was wily and there
were scars and bare patches enough on the hide to mark it victor in other
battles. It had always won before so it was confident now. And—the charge came
again!
Fors leaped to the left,
slashing down as he moved out of danger. That stroke cut across the grinning
devil's mask of the boar, chopping off an ear and shearing the sight out of one
red eye. It shook its head, sending a spray of blood flying, and squealed in
rage and pain. Under the prod of pain it lost its cunning, wishing now only to
tusk and trample the dancing figure before it—to root the life of the enemy
away—
As Fors saw the heavy
shoulders tense he took a step backward, groping for firm footing on which to maneuver.
And in so doing he nearly lost the fight. His heel caught and was held as if a
trap had snapped on it. He was still trying to pull loose as the boar charged
for the third time.
And that pull unbalanced
him so that he fell forward almost on top of the mad creature. There was a red
dagger of pain across his leg and a foul stench filled his nostrils. He stabbed
wildly. Then his steel struck bone and slip deep beneath the mangy hide. Blood
fountained over both of them, then the sword was wrenched from Fors'
blood-slippery hand as the boar pulled away. It staggered out into the full
sunlight and fell heavily, the hilt of the sword protruding behind its powerful
shoulder. Fors rocked back and forth, his face twisted with pain as his fingers
tried to rip the cloth away from a nasty, freely bleeding slash down the
outside of his left thigh.
Lura emerged from the
bushes. There were unpleasant stains on her usually fastidiously kept coat and
she moved with an air of general satisfaction. As she passed the boar she
snarled and gave the body a raking clout with one front paw.
Fors worked his heel
free from the rotten board which had clamped it and crawled toward the Star
pouch. He needed water now—but Lura would sniff that out for him. The worst
would be going lame for a while. He would be lucky if he did not have to stay
where he was for a day or two.
Lura did find water, a
spring a little beyond the farmhouse. And he crawled to it painfully. With dry
twigs he kindled a fire and set a tiny pan of the clear water to boil. Now he
was ready for the worst—boar's tusks were notoriously dirty and deadly.
Setting his teeth he cut
and tore away the cloth of his leggings until the skin around the still oozing
slash was bare. Into the bubbling water he dropped a minute portion of the
wound salve from the Star pouch. The secret of that salve belonged to the
Healer of the tribe and the Captain of the Star Men alone. It was wisdom from
the old days which had saved many lives. A wound anointed with it did not rot.
Fors let the water cool
until he could just bear it and then poured more than half of it into that
ragged tear in skin and muscle. His fingers were shaking when he thrust them
into the water left in the pan, holding them there for a minute before tearing
open the packet of the bandage. With an end of the soft material he washed and
dabbed delicately along the cut. Then he smeared some of the unheated paste
across it and bound a pad tightly over it. The bleeding had almost stopped, but
the wound was like a band of stinging fire from hip socket to ankle bone. His
eyes grew misty as he worked, following the instructions which had been drilled
into him since his first hunting trip.
At last he could put out
the fire and lie quietly. Lura stretched out beside him and put a velvet-gloved
paw on his arm. She purred soothingly, once or twice drawing her rough tongue
across his flesh in her favorite caress. The burning in his leg eased, or else
he was growing accustomed to the torment. He stared into the sky. Pink and gold
streamed across it in wide swaths. It must be close to sundown. He would have
to have shelter. But it was a struggle to move and his leg had stiffened so
that even when he got up and clutched at bushes to pull himself along he made
slow progress.
Lura went down the slope
and he stumbled after her, glad that only tall grass covered most of it. She
headed for the farmyard, but he did not call her back. Lura was hunting shelter
for them both and she would find it, if any such existed.
She did bring him to the
best housing they had had since they had left the Eyrie, a stone-walled,
single-roomed building. He had no idea for what purpose it had been built. But
there was only one door, no windows, and part of the roof was still in place.
It could be easily defended and it was shelter.
Already small scavengers
were busy about the bodies of the pigs. And with the dark the scent of blood
would draw more formidable flesh eaters. He had not forgotten the quarrels over
the bodies of the cow and calf. So Fors pushed loose stones into a barrier
about his door and decided upon a fire. The walls would hide it from all but
birds flying overhead.
He ate sparingly of
dried corn. Lura jumped the barrier and went hunting on her own, questing
through the twilight. But Fors nursed his point of fire and stared out into the
gathering darkness. Fireflies made dancing sparks under the straggling limbs of
ancient orchard trees. He watched them as he drank from the water in his
canteen. The pain in his leg was now a steady throb which arose into his head
and settled in his temples—beat—beat—beat—
Then Fors suddenly
realized that that steady rhythm was not born of pain and fever. There was an
actual sound, hanging on the night air, low and carrying well. The measured
note bore no resemblance to any natural noise he had heard before. Only,
something in it suggested the odd crooning song of the fisherman. If something
not unlike the same series of notes was being tapped out on the head of a drum
now—
Fors jerked upright. Bow
and sword were within reach of his hand. The night, which was never as dark for
him as it was for others, was peaceful and empty—save for that distant signal.
Then it stopped, abruptly, almost in mid-note, with a suggestion of finality.
He guessed that he would not hear it again. But what could it mean?
Sound carried well in
these lowlands—even if listeners did not have his keenness of ear. A message
sent by such a drum might carry safely across miles.
His fingernails dug into
the flesh of his palms. There was a trace of sound again—coming from the far
south—a disturbance in the air so faint it might only be born of his
imagination.
But he did not believe
that. The drummer was receiving an answer. Under his breath Fors counted off
seconds—five, ten, fifteen, and then again silence. He tried to sort out his
impressions of the fisherman—and again came to the same conclusion. He was not
native to these lowlands, which meant that he was probably a scout, an explorer
from the south. Who or what was now moving up into these lands?
Even before dawn it
began to rain, a steady, straight downpour which would last for hours. Fors'
wound was stiff and he had trouble crawling back into the corner of the hut
where the broken roof still afforded some protection. Lura rolled against him
and the warmth of her furry body was a comfort. But Fors was unable to drop
back into the restless, dream-broken sleep which had held him most of the
night.
It was the thought of
the day's travel still before him which plagued him. To walk far would reopen
the gash and he thought that he had a touch of fever. Yet he had to have food
and better shelter. And that drumming—Being disabled he wanted to get out of
the near vicinity of the drummer—fast.
As soon as it was light
enough for him to distinguish a black line on white paper he got out his scrap
of map, trying to guess his present position—if it were on that fragment at
all. There were tiny red figures printed between certain points—the measured
miles of the Old Ones who kept to the roads. By his reckoning he might yet be
at least three days' journey from the city—if, of course, he was now where he
believed himself to be. Three days' journey for a strong and tireless traveler,
not for a crippled limper. If he had a horse now—
But the memory of Jarl
with the horse herders put that thought out of his mind. If he went to the
Plains camp and tried to trade, the Star Captain would hear of it. And for a
novice to steal a mount out of one of the well-guarded herds was almost
impossible even if he were able-bodied. But he could not banish his wish—even
by repeating this argument of stern commonsense.
Lura went out hunting.
She would bring back her kill. Fors pulled himself up, clenching his teeth
against the pain that such movement gave his whole left side. He had to have
some sort of crutch or cane if he wanted to keep going. There was part of a
sapling among the wood within reach. It appeared almost straight, so he hacked
it down with his knife and trimmed off the branches. With this aid he could get
around, and the more he moved the more the stiffness seemed to loosen. When
Lura returned with a plump bronze-feathered turkey in her jaws, he was in a
better frame of mind and ready to eat breakfast.
But the pace at which
they started was not a speedy one. Fors hissed between set teeth when now and
again his weight shifted too heavily on the left leg. He turned instinctively
into what once had been the lane tying the farmstead to the road, and brushed
between the encroaching bushes, leaning heavily on his cane.
Rain made sticky mud of
every patch of open ground and he was afraid of slipping and falling. Lura kept
up a steady low whine of complaint against the weather and the slowness of
their travel. But she did not go off on her own as she might have done had he
been himself. And Fors talked to her constantly.
The lane came to the
road and he turned into that since it went in the direction he wished. Soil had
drifted across the concrete and made mud patches which gave root to spiked
plants; but, even with that, it was better footing for an almost one-legged man
than the wet ground. Lura scouted ahead, weaving in and out of the bushes and
tall grass along the side of the old thoroughfare. She tested the wind for
alien scents, now and then shaking head or paws vigorously to rid them of
clinging raindrops.
All at once she bounded
out of the brush to Fors, pushing against him with her body, forcing him gently
back toward the ditch which ran nearby. He caught the urgency of her warning
and scrambled to cover with all the speed he could muster. As he lay against
the greasy red clay bank with his palms spread flat, he felt the pounding long
before he heard the hoofs which caused it. Then the herd came into sight,
trotting at an easy pace down the old road. For a moment or two Fors searched
for the herders and then he realized that none of the horses wore the patches
of bright paint which distinguished ownership among the Plainsmen. They must be
wild. There were several mares with foals, a snorting stallion bearing the
scars of battle on his shoulder, and some yearlings running free.
But there was one mare
who had no foal. Her rough, ungroomed coat was a very dark red, her burr-matted
tail and mane black. Now and again she dropped to the back, stopping to snatch
a mouthful of herbage, a trick which at last earned her a sharp nip from the
stallion. She squealed, lashed out with ready hoofs, and then ran swiftly,
breaking ahead of the rest of the band. Fors watched her go with regret. If he
had had his two feet under him she might have been a possible capture. But no
use thinking of that.
Then the herd rounded a
curve and was out of sight. Fors took a moment's breather before he pulled
himself back on the road. Lura was there before him, kneading her front paws on
a mat of grass, staring after the vanished horses. To her mind there was no
difference between one of those foals and the calf she had pulled down. Both
were meat and meant to be eaten. It was in her mind to trail along behind such
a wealth of food. Fors did not argue with her. He still thought of the mare who
ran free and followed her own will.
They came up again with
the herd before the hour was past. The road made a sudden dip into a valley
which was almost cup-shaped. At the bottom rich grass grew tall and there the
herd grazed, the watchful stallion standing guard halfway up the rise.
But what caught Fors'
eyes was the shell of a building which stood almost directly below. Fire had
eaten out its interior so that only the crumbling brick of the outer walls
remained. He studied it carefully and then tried to identify the horses beyond.
The mare was apart from
the herd, grazing close to the building. Fors wet his lips with his tongue tip.
There was just a chance—a very wild chance—
It would depend largely
upon Lura's co-operation. And that had never failed him yet. He turned to the
great cat and tried to form a mind picture of what must be done. Slowly he
thought out each point. Twice he went through it and then Lura crouched and
withdrew into the grass.
Fors wiped sweat and
rain from his forehead and started crawling in turn, edging down into a maze of
fallen bricks. They could never do it if the wind was not just right. But
fortune was favoring to that extent. He swung himself up on a ledge above the
widest gap in the broken wall and unwound from his waist the light tough cord
all mountain men carried. The weighted noose at the end was in his hand. Good,
the rain had not affected it. Now—!
He whistled, the clear
call of one of the Eyrie country birds. And he knew, rather than saw, that Lura
was in position and ready to move. If the wind would only hold—!
Suddenly the mare tossed
up her head, snorted, and stared suspiciously at a clump of bushes. At the same
time the stallion reared and thundered forth a fierce challenge. But he was
almost the full length of the valley away, and he stopped to send the rest of
his harem out of danger before he came to the mare. She wanted to follow but
plainly the hidden menace now lay between her and freedom. She whirled on two
feet and pounded back in the direction of the ruin where Fors waited. Twice she
tried to go with her mates and both times she was sent back on the opposite
course.
Fors coiled his rope. He
had only to wait and trust to Lura's skill. But the seconds that he was forced
to do that were very long. At last the mare, her eyes white-rimmed with terror,
burst through the gap in the masonry. Fors cast and as quickly snubbed the rope
about a girder of rusting steel protruding from the brickwork. The heart of the
metal was still sound enough to hold, even against the frantic plunges of the
terrified horse. The scream of the aroused stallion, thundering down to the
rescue, shook Fors. He did not know much about horses but he could imagine that
there was danger now.
But the stallion never
reached the ruin. Out of the bushes, directly at his head, leaped Lura, leaped
and raked with cruel claws. The stallion reared, trumpeting like a mad thing,
slashing out with teeth and hoofs. But Lura was only a flash of light fur
covering steel springs and she was never there when the stallion struck. Twice
more she got home with a wicked, slashing paw, before the horse gave up the
battle and fled back down the valley, following the herd. The mare cried after
him. He turned, but Lura was there, and her snarled warning sent him on again
dripping blood.
Fors leaned back weakly
against a pile of rubble. He had the mare all right, a rope about her neck, a
rope which would hold her in spite of all her plunges and kicks. But here was
no gentled mount already broken to ride. And how was he, with a bad leg, to
conquer the fear-maddened animal?
He made the rope fast,
looking ruefully at the burns on his hands. Just now he could not get near her.
Might be well to let her become used to captivity for an hour or so—to try to
win her—But would she ever lose her fear of Lura? That was another problem to
be solved. Only—it must be done, he could not go on in this one-legged way. He
certainly was not going to beg shelter from the Plains camp and so fall into
Jarl's hands. He believed that he could make his own way in the lowlands—now
was the time to prove that!
After a time the mare
ceased to fight for freedom and stood with drooping head, nervous shudders
running along her sweat-encrusted limbs and flanks. Fors stayed where he was but
now he began to talk to her, using the same crooning tone with which he called
Lura. Then he ventured to limp a few steps closer. Her head went up and she
snorted. But he continued to talk to her, making an even monotone of his voice.
At last he was close enough to touch her rough coat and as he did so he almost
jumped. Still faintly sketched on the hide was a dab or two of fading paint!
Then this was a Plainsman's mount from one of the tame herds. Fors gulped
weakly. Such luck was a little uncanny. Now, seeing that, he dared to stroke
her nose. She shivered under his touch and then she whinnied almost
inquiringly. He patted her shoulder and then she nudged him playfully with her
nose. Fors laughed, tugging at the ragged forelock which bobbed between her eyes.
"So now you
remember, old lady? Good girl, good girl!"
There remained the
problem of Lura and that must be solved as quickly as possible. He unfastened
the rope and pulled gently. The mare came after him willingly enough, picking
her way daintily through the piles of fallen brick.
Why hadn't she scented
the cat on his clothes? Unless the rain had dampened it—But she had shown no
fright at his handling.
He whistled the bird
call for the second time, after he had snubbed the mare's lead rope around a
small tree. The answer to his summons came from down valley. Apparently Lura
was following the herd. Fors stood talking to his captive as he waited. At last
he ventured to rub down her flanks with tufts of grass. Then he felt her start
and tremble and he turned.
Lura sat in the open,
her tail curled neatly over her forepaws. She yawned, her red tongue pointing
up and out, her eyes slitted, as if she had very little interest in the mare
which her hunting companion chose to fondle so stupidly.
The mare jerked back to
the full length of the rope, her eyes showing white. Lura took no notice of the
open terror. The mare reared and gave a shrill scream. Fors tried to urge Lura
back. But the big cat paced in a circle about the captive, eyeing her speculatively
from all angles. The mare dropped back on four feet and shook her head, turning
to keep her attention ever upon the cat. It seemed as if she were now puzzled
when the attack she had expected had not come.
Maybe some message
passed between the animals then. Fors never knew. But when Lura finished her
inspection, she turned away indifferently and the mare stopped trembling.
However, it was more than an hour before Fors improvised a bridle from the rope
and a saddle pad from his blanket. He climbed upon the bricks and managed to
throw his good leg over the mare's back.
She had been well
trained by the Plainsman who had owned her and her pace was so even that Fors,
awkward and inexperienced at riding as he was, could keep his seat. He headed
her back on the road which had brought him to the valley and they came up into
the rolling fields once more.
In spite of the nagging
ache of the wound Fors knew a surge of exultation and happiness. He had won
safely out of the Eyrie, after plundering the Star House. He had dared the
lowlands, had spent one night in the heart of a dead town, had crossed a river
through his own skill. He had spied successfully at the woods lake, faced the
savage boar from which even the best of the mountain hunters sometimes fled, and
now he had a horse under him. His weapons were to hand and the road open before
him.
Judged unfit for the
Star, cast aside by the Council was he? His even teeth gleamed in a grin which
bore some likeness to Lura's hunting snarl. Well, they would see—see that
Langdon's son, White Hair the Mutant—was as good as their best! He would prove
that to the whole Eyrie.
Lura drifted back and
the mare side-stepped as if she were still none too pleased to have the big cat
venture so close. Fors jolted out of his daydreams, paid heed to his
surroundings.
There were piles of
rubble scattered through the brush, skeletons of old buildings, and, all at
once, the mare's unshod hoofs raised a different sort of noise. She was picking
her way across pavements in which were set long straight lines of rusted
tracks. Fors pulled her up. Ahead the ruins were closer together and grew
larger. A town—maybe even a small city.
There was something
about these ruins which made him uneasy. The farms which had been recaptured by
wild vegetation had none of this eerie strangeness about them. He knew again
the faint sickness, neither of body nor spirit, which had gripped him on the
road when he had traveled beside the wrecked convoy. Now he wiped one hand
through the mare's coarse mane as if he would like to rub away an unpleasant
smear. And yet he had touched nothing in this place. There was an evil miasma
which arose mistlike even through the steady drizzle of rain.
Mist—there was real
mist, too! Ahead he saw coils of dirty white drifting in, wreathing the tangled
bulk of rotting wood and tumbled brick and stone. A fog was gathering, thicker
than the mountain ones he had known, thick and somehow frightening. His fingers
left the horse hair and flipped against his sore leg. The stab of pain which
followed made him cry out. This fog would put an end to travel for the day as
far as he was concerned. Now he needed a safe place to hole up in where he
could light a fire and prepare another treatment for his wound. And he wanted
to be out of the rain for the night.
He did not like the
ruins, but now they might hold what he needed and it was wiser to penetrate
farther into them. But he held the mare to a slow walk and it was well that he
did. For soon a break in the pavement opened before them—a gaping black hole
rimmed with jagged teeth of broken concrete. They made a detour, edging as far
from the crumbling lip as the ruins would allow. Fors began to regret leaving
the stone hut on the farm. His constant pain he could no longer ignore. Perhaps
it would have been better to have rested for a day or two back there. But if he
had done that he would not now be riding the mare! He whistled softly and
watched her ears point up in answer. No, it was worth even the grinding in his
flesh to have such a mount.
Twice more the pavement
was broken by great holes, the last being so large that it had the dimensions
of a small crater. As Fors rode slowly around it he crossed a strip of muddy,
but hard-beaten earth which came up out of its shadowed maw. It had the appearance
of a well-worn and much-used path. Lura sniffed at it and snarled, her back fur
roughened, and she spat with a violent hissing sound. Whatever made that path
she counted an enemy.
Any creature which Lura,
who would tackle a wild cow, a herd of roving swine, or a stallion, so
designated was not one which Fors cared to meet in his present crippled state.
He loosened rein and urged the mare to a brisker pace.
Some distance beyond the
crater they came to a small hill on which stood a building of white stone, and
it still possessed a roof. The slope of the hill was clear of all save a few
low bushes and from the building Fors guessed one could have an almost
unhampered view of the surrounding territory. He decided quickly in its favor.
It was a disappointment to
discover that the roof covered only a part and that the center was open to the
storm—being a small amphitheater in which rows of wide seats went down to a
square platform.
However, there were
small rooms around the outer rim, under the roof, and in one of these he made
camp. He tied the mare to one of the pillars forming the aisle to the
amphitheater and contented her with grass pulled from the hill and some of his
parched corn which she relished. She could have been hobbled and left to graze
but the memory of that worn path by the crater kept him from doing that.
Rain had collected in
broken squares of the pavement and Lura drank eagerly from one such pool while
the mare sucked noisily at another. From the drift of wind-driven branches
caught among the pillars Fors built a fire, placed behind a wall so that it
could not be observed from below. Water boiled in his pan and he went through
the ordeal of redressing the gash in his leg. The salve was working, for the
flesh was sore and stiff but it was clean and without infection, and the edges
were already closing, though undoubtedly he would be scarred for the rest of
his life.
Lura made no move to go
hunting, although she must have been hungry. In fact, since she had skirted the
crater she had kept close to him, and now she lay beside the fire, staring into
the flames broodingly. He did not urge her to go out. Lura was more woodswise
than any man could hope to be and if she did not choose to hunt there was good
reason for her decision. Fors only wished that she could reveal to him the
exact nature of the thing she both hated and feared. That hatred and fear came
through to him when their minds held fleeting touch, but the creature which
aroused such emotions remained a secret.
So they went hungry to
bed since Fors determined to use what was left of the corn to bind the mare to
him. He kept the fire burning low for he did not want to lie in the dark here
where there were things beyond his knowledge.
For a time he listened
for the drumming of the night before. He fully expected to hear it again. But
the night was still. It had stopped raining at last, and he could hear insects
in the grass outside. There was the murmur of a breeze through the foliage on
the hill.
It made Fors uneasy,
that faint sad soughing. Lura was not asleep either. He sensed her restlessness
even before he heard the pad of her paws and saw her move toward the door. He
crawled after her, trying to spare his leg. She had halted at the outer portico
of the building and was looking down into the blackness of the ruined city.
Then he saw what held her—a pin point of red to the north—the telltale flicker
of flame!
So there was other life
here! Plainsmen for the most part kept clear of the ruins—in memory of the old
days when radiation killed. And the Beast Things—did they possess the secret of
fire? No man knew how much or how little they had in the way of intelligence or
perverted civilization.
The urge to get the
mare, to crawl up on her back and cross the rubble to that distant fire, was
strong. Fire and companionship in this place of the restless dead—they pulled
at Fors now.
But before he so much as
filled his lungs again he heard it—a low chorus of yapping, barking, howling
which rose higher and higher to a frenzied bedlam. Lura's hair was stiff under
his hand. She hissed and snarled, but she did not stir. The cries were coming
from some distance—from the direction of the fire. Whatever manner of beast
made them had been drawn by that.
Fors shuddered. There
was nothing he could do to aid the fire maker. Long before he could find his
slow way through the ruins the end would have come. And now—now—there was only
blackness down there! The flicker of friendly red was gone!
Fors dragged himself out
into the morning sun. Although he had slept poorly, he was content that his
wound was healing. And, after he once got to his feet, he managed better, being
able without too much effort to take the mare out to graze on the hillside.
Lura had been on duty before he roused, as the body of a plump turkey laid on
the floor by the remains of the fire testified. He broiled it and ate, knowing
all the time that when he was done he must mount and ride across the shattered
town searching out the site of that fire which had vanished in the night.
And he did not want to
take that ride. Because he did not want to, he finished quickly, gathering up
his supplies with nervous haste. Lura came back and sat in the broad beam of
sunlight washing her fur. But she was on her feet instantly as Fors got up on
the mare and turned into the heart of the ruins.
They clattered out into
a burned area where the black stain of a vast, devouring fire had not faded.
There were flowers growing there among the sooty stones, yellow, white, and
blue. And a ragged, red-leafed weed overran old cellars. Cat and horse moved
slowly through the desolation, testing their footing.
On the far edge of the
burned space they found the scene of that night battle. Black birds whirred up
from almost under their feet, birds which had been feasting on scraps more
powerful scavengers had left them. Fors dismounted and limped up to the
trampled grass, reluctant to make investigation.
Two well-picked piles of
bones lay on the bloodstained ground. But the skulls were not those of his own
race. Those long narrow heads with the cruel yellow teeth he had never seen
before. Then the glint of metal caught his eyes and he picked up a broken
spear, the haft snapped raggedly off not far from the head. And that spear he had
seen before! It belonged to the fisherman of the islet.
Fors moved around the
circle of the battlefield. He came across one more of the strange skeletons,
but, save for the spear, there was no other trace of the hunter. Lura exhibited
a violent distaste for the bones—as if the odd scent which clung to them was
utterly offensive. And now she stood on her hind legs and sniffed inquiringly
up the side of a heap of bricks and stone.
So that was what had
happened! The hunter had not been overwhelmed by a rush out of the dark. He had
had time to clamber up where the night-running things could not attack in
force, had been able from above to fight them off and leave the wounded and
dead to the tearing teeth of their own companions. And he must have
escaped—since his bones were not in evidence.
Fors kicked through the
underbrush a last time just to be sure. Something round and brown rolled away
from his toe. He reached for a small, well-polished drum fashioned of dark
wood, the stretched head of hide cured to an almost metallic smoothness. The
signal drum! Impulsively he tapped the head, and started at the low throbbing
note which echoed through the ruins.
When he rode on the drum
went with him. Why he did not know, except that he was fascinated by such a
message-sending device unknown to his own people.
Within a half hour the
ruins lay behind. Fors was glad to be out in the clean freedom of the country
again. All morning he rode at a leisurely pace, watching for any signs which
the hunter might leave. He was sure that the man was striking north with almost
as definite a purpose as the one which drew him in that direction. And, with
the drum gone, there would be no more signals.
The next two days were
quiet. There was no indication that the Plainsmen had ever ventured into this
territory and the land was a hunters' paradise teeming with game. Fors wasted
none of his precious arrows but left the chase to Lura who enjoyed every moment
of it. He varied his diet with berries and the ripe grain which grew wild in
the ancient fields.
They avoided two more
small towns, cutting around when they saw the first ruins. The dank, moldy
places had little appeal and Fors had once or twice speculated as to what might
have happened that night had he been the one caught in the open by the hunting
pack, too crippled to climb to the safety the unknown had found. Now his leg
was less painful, he walked a part of each day, stretching the muscles and
toughening tender flesh. Most of the ache was gone and soon he would be able to
move as freely as ever.
On the morning of the
fourth day they came out upon a waste of sand- and wind-carved dunes and saw
the great lake of legend. There was no end to the gray-blue expanse of water—it
must be almost as large as the distant sea. High piles of bleached driftwood
lay along the shore. There must have been a recent storm for the bodies of fish
lay there too. Fors' nose wrinkled as he plowed through the sand, the mare
sinking deeply as she followed him. Lura, investigating the fish, strayed some
yards behind.
So—this much was
true—this was the lake. And somewhere along its shore must lie the city his
father had sought. Right or left, east or west—that was the question. He found
shelter from the wind behind a dune and squatted down to consult the scrap of
map. When they had avoided that last town they had gone west—so now—east. He
would keep to the shore and see—
It was hard to travel in
the sand, and after some time he gave up in disgust and edged inland to the
more solid earth. Within two yards he was on a road! And, since the roadway
hugged the shoreline, he held to it. Shortly the familiar mounds of debris
closed in. But this was the remains of no small town. Even in his inexperience
he could judge that. In the morning sun far ahead he saw battered towers rising
in the sky. This was one of the cities, the great cities of huge sky-reaching
towers! And it was not a "blue" one either. He would have seen the
sign of that taint on the sky in the night.
His city—all his!
Langdon had been right—this was an untouched storehouse waiting to be looted
for the benefit of the Eyrie. Fors allowed the mare to amble on at her own pace
as he tried to recall all the training rules. Libraries—those were what one was
to look for—and shops, especially those which had stores of hardware or paper
or kindred supplies. One was not to touch food—no matter if it was found in
unbroken containers. Experimentation of that kind had brought death by
poisoning too many times in the past. Hospital supplies were best of all, but
those had to be selected by the trained expert. Danger lay too in unknown
drugs.
For his looting he had
best take only samples of what was to be found—books, writing supplies, maps,
anything which would prove that he knew how to select intelligently. And with
the mare he ought to be able to pack out quite a lot.
Here were signs of fire
too. He rode across a bare stretch where the rough footing was all black ash.
But the towers stood taller and they did not appear to be too badly damaged. If
this city had been bombed, would they be standing at all? Maybe this was one of
the places which had perished in the plagues which followed the war. Maybe it
had died slowly with the ebbing life of its people—and not suddenly in
explosion.
The road they had been
following was now a narrow gorge between tall ranks of broken buildings, the
upper stories of which had fallen into the street in mounds which almost
blocked it completely at places. Here were numerous surface machines in which
the Old Ones had ridden in comfort. And here, also, were bones. That single
skull he had found in the old bank had had the power to shake him a little, but
here lay a nation of dead and soon he ceased to notice them at all, even when
the mare trod on brittle ribs or kicked rolling skulls aside. Yes, now it was
very apparent that the men of this city had died of plague, or gas, or even of
the radiation sickness. But sun and wind and animals had cleared away the
foulness of that death, leaving only a framework without power to harm.
As yet Fors did not
attempt to explore those caverns which had once been the lower floors of the
buildings. Now he only wanted to get on into the very heart of the place, to
the foundations of those towers which had guided him all morning. But before he
could reach that goal a barrier was laid across his road.
There was a gash
breaking the city in two, a deep valley which nursed a twisted river in its
middle. Bridges spanned it. He came to the lip of one such span and he could
see two others. But before him was a mass of rusting wreckage piled into a
fantastic wall. Machines—not in one and twos or even in tens, but in
hundreds—were packed as they must have crashed and telescoped into one another,
driven by men who feared some danger behind enough to drive in crazy flight.
The bridge was now one gigantic crack-up. Fors might be able to scramble across
but the mare could not. It would be best to descend into the valley and cross
there—because as far as he could see the other bridges were also choked with
rust-eaten metal.
There was a side road
down into the valley, and machines filled it too. Men had taken that same trail
when the bridge jammed. But the three of them—horse, cat and man—worked their
way through to reach the river level. Tracks were rust-red lines and on them
were trains—the first he had ever seen. Two had crashed together, the engine of
one plowing into the other. Those who had tried to escape by train had been
little better off than their brothers in the stalled cars above. It was
difficult for Fors to imagine what that last wild day of flight must have
been—the trains, the machines. He knew of them only from the old books. But the
youngsters of the Eyrie sometimes stirred up nests of black ants and watched
them boil up and out. So this city must have boiled—but few had been able to
win out.
And those who had—what
became of them in the end? What could help a handful of panic-stricken refugees
scattered over a countryside, perhaps dropping dead of the plague as they fled?
Fors shivered as he picked his way along beside the wrecked trains. But finding
a narrow path through the jumble proved lucky. There had been barges on the
river and they had drifted and sunk to form a shaky bridge across the water.
Horse, man, and cat started over it, testing each step. There was a gap in the
middle through which the stream still fought its way. But the mare, under the
urging of Fors' heels in her ribs, jumped it and Lura went sailing over with
her usual agility.
More dark streets with
blank-eyed buildings lining them, and then there was a road leading up at a
sharp angle. They took it to find themselves at last close to the towers. Birds
wheeled overhead, crying out in thin sharp voices, and Fors caught a glimpse of
a brownish animal slithering out of sight through a broken doorway. Then he
came up to a wall which was part glass, miraculously unbroken, but so besmeared
by the dust and wind-driven grime of the years that he could not see what lay
behind it. He dismounted and went over, rubbing his hands across that strange smoothness.
The secret of fashioning such perfect glass was gone—with so many other secrets
of the Old Ones.
What he saw beyond his
peephole nearly made him retreat, until he remembered the Star Men's tales.
Those were not the Old Ones standing within the shadowed cavern, but effigies
of themselves which they put up in shops to show off clothing. He pasted his
nose to the glass and stared his fill at the shapes of three tall women and the
draperies of rotting fabric still wreathed about them. None of that would, he
knew, survive his touch.
It always turned to dust
in the grasp of any explorer who tried to handle it.
There were other deep
show windows about him but all had been denuded of their glass and were empty.
Through them one could get into the stores behind. But Fors was not yet ready
to go hunting, and probably there would be little there now worth carrying
away.
The building to his left
was topped with a tall tower which reached higher into the heavens than any
other around it. From the top of that a man might see the whole city, to
measure its size and environs. But he knew that the Old Ones had movable cars
rising in such buildings, the power for which was dead. There might not be any
steps—and if there were his lame leg was not yet ready for climbing. Maybe
before he left the city—It would be a workmanlike project to make a sketch of
the city as seen from that tower—an excellent embellishment to a formal report.
That was the nearest he
came to admitting even to himself that he had hopes of a future within the
Eyrie, that he dreamed of standing before the elders of the Council and proving
that he, the rejected mutant, had accomplished what others had been trained for
all their lives long. When he thought of that he was warm deep inside. A new
city—the one his father had sought—all mapped and explored, ready for the
systematic looting of the Eyrie—what could a man who reported that ask for as a
reward? Just about what he wanted—
Fors went on slowly,
afoot now, with the mare trailing him and Lura scouting ahead. Neither animal
appeared to want to stray too far. The sound of a rolling stone, the cries of
the birds, all echoed through the empty buildings eerily. For the first time
Fors wished for a companion of his own breed—in a place where only the dead had
lain so long it would be good to call upon the living.
The sun overhead
reflected from a shelf in the front part of a shop. Fors swung over a strip of
iron embedded in concrete to investigate. Rings lay there, rows of them, set
with brilliant white stones—diamonds he guessed. He sorted them out of the dust
and litter. Most of them were too small to fit any of his fingers, but he chose
four of the largest stones to take along—with some vague idea of surprising the
young of the Eyrie. Among them was one broader band with a deep red gem and
this slipped on to his third finger as if it had been fashioned for it. He
turned it around, pleased with the deep crimson shade of the stone. It was a
good omen, discovering it, as if the long dead craftsmen had made it for him.
He would wear it for luck.
But food would be more
useful than sparkling stones now. The mare must eat and they would not find
grazing hereabouts. In this section there was only a wild waste of ruins. He
must head out toward the edge of the city if he wanted a real camping place.
Not through the valley of the trains, though. It would be better to measure the
extent of the city by trying to get through it to the opposite side—if he could
do that by nightfall.
Fors did not stop to
explore any more of the shops, but he made mental notes about those which might
be worth a second visit. It was slow work breaking a trail through the blocked
streets, and the heat reflected back from the buildings raised sweat on his
face and plastered his clothing to him. He had to mount again as his leg began
to ache, and the hollow feeling in his middle grew worse. Lura protested—she
wanted to get away from this wilderness of stone, into the fields where one
could hunt.
Three hours of steady
traveling brought them through to the edge of the enchanted wood, for that was
what it seemed. It was a band of living green cutting across the pitiless heat
and barrenness of the ruins. Once it had been a park, but now it arose a true
forest which Lura welcomed with an open meow of delight. The mare whinnied,
bursting through bushes until she came into what was undoubtedly a game trail
leading down a gentle slope. Fors dismounted and let the mare go on, her pace now
a trot. They reached the end of the trail, a lake. The mare stood, nose- and
hock-deep, in the green water. Long red-gold fish swam away from the
disturbance she caused.
Fors dropped down on a
wide stone and pulled off his boots to dabble his burning feet in the coolness.
There was a breeze across the water that dried his damp body and lifted the
leaves of the wild shrubs around them. He looked across the lake. Opposite him
there was a flight of broad white steps, cracked and moss-grown, and he caught
a glimpse of a building at their head. But that could be explored later. Just
now it was good to sit in the cool. The mare came out of the lake and tore up
mouthfuls of the long grass. A duck quacked and fled from under her hoofs,
sailing out on the water, swimming energetically toward the steps.
The evening was long,
the twilight soft about the hidden lake. While there was still light enough to
see Fors ventured into the tall, pillared building at the head of the stairs
and discovered that his luck was still holding. It was a museum—one of those
treasure houses which rated very high on the Star Men's list of desirable
finds. He wandered through the high-ceilinged rooms, his boots making splotchy
tracks in the fine dust crisscrossed with the spoor of small animals. He
brushed the dust from the tops of cases and tried to spell out the blotched and
faded signs. Grotesque stone heads leered or stared blindly through the murk.
Warped and split canvas hung dismally from worm-eaten frames in what had once
been picture galleries.
But the dark drove him
out to shelter in the forecourt. Tomorrow would be time to estimate the worth
of what lay within. Tomorrow—why, he had limitless time before him to discover
and assess all that this city held! He had not even begun to explore.
It was warm and he
allowed his cooking fire to burn down to a handful of coals. The forest was
coming to life. He identified the bark of a questing fox, the mournful call of
night birds. He could almost imagine the gathering of wistful, hungry ghosts in
the city streets seeking what was gone forever. But here, where man had never
lived, it was very peaceful and like the glens of his own mountain land. His
hand fell on the pouch of the Star Men. Had Langdon actually walked here before
him, had it been on a return trip from this place that his father had been
killed? Fors hoped that was true—that Langdon had known the joy of proving his
theory right—that his map had led him here before his death.
Lura appeared out of the
shadows, padding lightly up the mossy steps from the water's edge. And the mare
moved in without urging, her hoofs ringing on the broken marble as she came to
join them. It was almost—Fors straightened, regarded the gathering night more
intently—almost as if they feared an alien world enough to seek company against
it. And yet he did not feel the unease he had known in those other ruins—this
slice of woodland held no terrors.
Nevertheless he roused
and went to gather as much wood as he could find. He worked with mounting haste
until it was too dark to see at all, ending with a pile of broken branches and
storm drift which might have been gathered to withstand a siege. Lura watched
him—and beyond him—sitting sentry-wise at the head of the stairs. Nor did the
mare move again into the open.
At last, his hands
shaking a little with fatigue, the odd drive still urging him to some sort of
effort, Fors strung his bow and set it close to hand, loosened his sword in its
sheath. The wind had gone down. It was almost sultry. Above the water the birds
had ceased to wheel.
There was a sudden
thunder clap and a flash of violet lightning crossed the southern sky. Heat
lightning, but there might be another storm on the way. That was probably what
made the air seem electric. But Fors did not deceive himself. Something besides
a storm was brooding out in that night.
Back in the Eyrie—when
they watched the wintertime singplays—just before they drew up the big screen
and the play began, he had had a strange feeling like this. A sort of excited
waiting—that was it. And something else was waiting now—holding its breath a
little. He squirmed. His imagination—he was cursed with too much of that!
A little was good.
Langdon had always said that imagination was a tool to be used and no Star Man
was any good without it. But when a man had too much—then it fed the dark fears
way down inside and became an extra foe to fight in any battle.
But now, thinking of
Langdon had not banished his strange feeling. Something was outside, dark and
formless, brooding, watching—watching a tiny Fors beside a spark of puny
fire—watching for some action—
He poked at the fire
viciously. Getting as silly as a moon-mad woodsrunner! There must be a madness
which lay in wait in these dead cities to trap a man's thoughts and poison him.
A more subtle poison it was than any the Old Ones had distilled to fight their
disastrous wars. He must break that grip on his mind—and do it quickly!
Lura watched him from
across the fire, her blue eyes fired with topaz by the flames. She purred
hoarsely, reassuringly. Fors relaxed a fraction of his guard. Lura's mood was
an antidote. From the pouch he brought out the route book and began to
enter—with painstaking attention and his best script—observations on the day's
journey. If it was ever to be laid before Jarl it must measure up to the
standard of such reports. The dark made a black circle beyond the reaches of
the firelight.
The next day gave threat
of being sultry. Fors awakened beset with a dull headache and vague memories of
unpleasant dreams. His leg pained him. But when he examined the healing wound
it showed no signs of the infection he dreaded. He longed for a swim in the
lake but dared not try it until the throbbing seam had totally closed, being
forced to content himself with splashing in the shallows.
Inside the museum the
air was dead and there was a faint taint of decay hanging in the long chill
corridors. Sightless masks hung on the walls and when he tested some of the
displayed swords and knives he found them rusted into uselessness.
In the end he took very
little—much of the exhibit was too delicate to transport or too large. He chose
some tiny figurines from a case where the dusty card said something about
"Egypt" and a clumsy finger ring set with a carving of a beetle from
a neighboring shelf. Last of all was a small sleek black panther, smooth and
cool to his fingers, which he fell in love with and could not bear to leave
behind. He did not venture into the side wings—not with all the city waiting
for him.
But the museum was safe.
Here were no falling walls and the alcove where he had spent the night was
excellent shelter. He piled up his supplies in one corner before he sallied
forth.
The mare was reluctant
to leave the woods and the lake, but Fors' steady pull on her lead rope brought
her back to the edge of the ruins. They went at a slow pace as he wanted to see
what lay behind the spear points of glass which still clung in the shattered
frames of the windows. These had all once been shops. How much of the wares
they displayed were still worth plundering he could not guess. But he had to
turn away in disappointment from fabrics eaten by insects and rotted by time.
In the fourth shop he
entered was something better. An unbroken glass case contained a treasure even
greater than all the museum had to offer. Shut out from dust and most of the
destruction of time were boxes of paper—whole boxes with blocks of separate sheets—and
also pencils!
Of course the paper was
brittle, yellowed, and easily torn. But in the Eyrie it could be pulped and
re-worked into serviceable sections. And the pencils! There were few good
substitutes for those. And the third box he opened held colored ones! He
sharpened two with his hunting knife and made glorious red and green lines on
the dusty floor. All of these must go with him. In the back of the shop he
found a metal box which still seemed sturdy enough and into it he crammed all
that he could. This—from just one shop! What riches could be expected from the
city!
Why, here the men of the
Eyrie could explore and loot perhaps for years before they exhausted all the
supplies to be found. The only safe cities they had discovered before had been
known to other tribes and were combed almost clean—or else they had been held
by the Beast Things and were unsafe.
Fors tramped on, bits of
glass crunching under his boots, skirting piles of rubble he could not clamber
over. Such piles barricaded some shops entirely or else the roofs were unsafe.
He was several blocks beyond the shop of the paper before he came to a second
one easy to enter. It had been another dealing in rings and gems. But the
interior was in wild disorder as if it had been looted before. Cases lay
smashed and the glass mingled with metal and stones on the floor. He stood in
the doorway—it would take a long time to sort through that litter and the
effort was not necessary. Only—as he turned away—he caught sight of something
else on the floor which brought him back.
There was a patch of
mud, dried brick-hard. And pressed deep into its surface, holding the pattern
as if in a cast, was part of a footprint. He had seen its like before, near the
pool of fresh deer blood. Those long narrow toe marks with the talon nail
indentations could never be forgotten. That other print had been fresh. This
was old. It might have been made months, even years before. The mud which held
it crumbled under the prod of his finger tip. Fors backed out of the shop and
stood with his back to a tumbling wall. The instinctive reaction which had made
him do that also sent his eyes up and down the street.
Birds nested in the
broken windows of the building across from him, flitting in and out on their
own concerns. And not ten feet away a large gray rat sat on a pile of brick
combing its fur and watching him with almost intelligent interest. It was a
very large rat and a singularly fearless one. But no rat had made that
footprint.
Fors summoned Lura from
her ranging. With the cat to scout for him he would feel safer against attack.
But he was still conscious of the many places where death could lurk, behind
walls, in the pits which broke the street, in the open store fronts.
In the next hour he went
about a mile, keeping to the main street and visiting only those buildings
which Lura declared safe. The mare carried an odd assortment of bundles and he
realized that he could not hope to transport more than a few selected samples
of the abundance. He must cache part of his morning's finds in the museum and
take only the cream of his gleanings south. Now that the city was discovered
the men from the Eyrie would "work" it with greater efficiency,
sending experts to choose and dismantle what they needed most and could best
use. So the sooner he started back with the news, the more time they would have
to work here before the coming of the bad weather in the fall.
The day grew even warmer
and big black flies came out of the crevices of the stones to bite viciously,
making the mare so crazy he could hardly control her. He had best head back now
to the green and the lake and there sort over his loot. But, as they passed the
place where he had found the wealth of paper, he stepped in for a last check
upon all he must leave behind. The sun made a bright bar across the floor
bringing into prominence the pencil marks he had made there. But—he was certain
he had not used a yellow or blue pencil, although there had been a few.
Now—yellow and blue
lines crisscrossed the red and green ones he had left—almost challengingly. The
boxes of pencils he had piled for later transportation had been opened and two
were gone!
He could see the tracks
in the floor dust—his own boot-heel pattern and across that a more shapeless
outline. And in the corner by the door someone had spit out the stone of a
cherry!
Fors whistled in Lura.
She examined the evidence on the floor and waited for instructions. But she was
displaying none of the disgust with which she had greeted that earlier spoor.
This might have been left by a roving Plainsman who was exploring the city on
his own. If that were so, it behooved Fors to move quickly. He must get back to
the Eyrie and return with help before some other tribe staked out a fair claim
to the riches here. Once or twice before the mountaineers had been so
disappointed.
Now there would be no
question about leaving most of the spoil he had gathered. He must cache it in
the museum and travel as light as possible to make time. Frowning, he stamped
out of the shop and jerked at the mare's lead rope.
They came into the
woods, cutting across a glade in the general direction of the museum. The mare
snorted as they passed the end of the lake. Fors tugged her along by main
force, bringing her up the steps to be relieved of her load. He packed the
bundles into the room he now considered his own and freed the mare for grazing.
Lura would keep watch until he had time to get everything in order.
But when Fors spread out
the morning's loot on the floor he found it very difficult to pick and choose.
If he took this—then he could not carry that—and that might make a
greater impression upon the experts of the Eyrie. He made piles, only to
completely change their contents three and four times over. But in the end he
made up a pack which he hoped would best display to the mountain clan the
quality of this find and be a good example of his own powers of selection. The
rest could be easily concealed somewhere in the rambling halls of this building
until he returned.
He sighed as he began to
sort the discards into order. There was so much to be left behind—why, he
should have a pack train of horses, such as the Plains tribes used to carry
their gear on the march. The drum rolled and he picked it up, rubbing his
fingers across its top to hear again the queer pulsing sound. Then he tapped
with his nails and the sound echoed weirdly through the halls.
This must have been the
drum which had sounded through the night after his fight with the boar. A
signal—! He could not resist other experimental thumps—and then tried out the
rhythm of one of his own mountain hunting songs. But this strong music was more
eerie than any from the flute or the three- and four-stringed harps his people
knew.
As the frightening
rumble died away Lura flowed in, her eyes uncannily aglow, haste and urgency
expressed in every dark hair on her head. He must come with her and at once.
Fors dropped the drum and reached for his bow. Lura stood by the door, her tail
tip flicking.
She went down the steps
in two bounds and he went after her, not sparing his leg. The mare was standing
in the shallows of the lake undisturbed. Lura glided on, between trees and
bushes and into the thick depths of the wood. Fors followed at a slower pace,
not being able to move so quickly through the green obstruction.
But before he had gone
out of sight of the lake he heard it—a faint moaning cry, almost a sigh, which
had been wrung out of real suffering. It arose to a hoarse croak, framing
muffled words he did not understand. But human lips had shaped them, he was
sure of that. Lura would not have guided him to one of the Beast Things.
The gabble of strange
words died away into another moan which seemed to rise out of the ground before
him. Fors shied away from an expanse of dried grass and leaves which lay there.
Lura had dropped to her belly, reaching out with a forepaw to feel delicately
of the ground, not advancing into the small clearing.
One of the pits which he
had found throughout the city was Fors' first thought—at any rate a hole of
some sort. Now he could see a break through at the opposite end of this cleared
space. He started to edge around, treading on the half-exposed roots of trees
and bushes and holding on firmly to anything which looked sturdy.
From the torn gap in the
mat of dried grass and brush rose a sickening stench. Trying to spare his leg
he went to his knees and peered into the dusk below. What he saw there set his
stomach to churning.
It was a wicked
trap—that pit—a trap artfully constructed and skillfully concealed with the
matted covering. And it held its victims. The small deer had been dead for
days, but the other body which, as his eyes adjusted to the dim light, he saw
writhe weakly, must have lain there for a shorter time. The blood on the
impaled shoulder still ran free.
Sharp-pointed stakes had
been set in the earth at the bottom, pointing upward to catch and hold the
fallen for a tortured death. And the man who half hung, half lay there now had
escaped that death by less than six inches.
He had struggled to free
himself, as the gaping wound in his own flesh testified, but all his strength
had not brought him loose. Fors measured the space between the stakes and then
looked around for a good-sized tree. This would not be easy—
It did not take long to
fetch what was left of his climbing rope and make a noose in it. The man in the
pit looked up with glazed eyes. Whether he could see or understand what his
rescuer was planning Fors did not know. He fastened the end of the cord to an
arrow and shot the line over the branch which hung the closest to the trap.
To make one end of the
rope fast to the tree took only an instant. Then, with the other in his hand,
Fors lowered himself cautiously over the edge of the pit, using his elbows to
break his speed as he slipped down to the smeared stakes. Black flies rose in a
noxious cloud and he had to beat them off as he reached the side of the
prisoner. The belt about the fellow's middle was tight enough and he knotted
the rope.
The way out of the pit
was more difficult, since the makers had fashioned it with every precaution
against that very operation. But a landslide at one end gave some footing and
Fors fought his way back to the top. It was plain that whoever had set that pitfall
had not visited it for some time and Fors left the sentry duty to Lura.
This was going to be a
nasty business, but it was the only way he could see of saving the sufferer
below. He untied the rope end on the tree and twisted it about his wrists. Lura
came without being summoned and seized the dangling tip in her jaws. Together
they gave their weight to a quick jerk which was answered by a wild scream of
agony. But Fors did not lessen the steady pull and Lura matched him step by
step as he crept back.
Out of the black hole
rose the lolling head and bloody shoulders of the stranger. When he swung clear
Fors made fast the rope and hurried back to pull the limp body away from the
edge of the fiendish mantrap. His hands were slippery with blood before he got
the unconscious man free. He could not carry the fellow, not with his bad leg.
Also he must weigh more than Fors by forty pounds. For, now that he lay in the
sunlight, Fors recognized him as the dark-skinned hunter of the island. But his
big body was flaccid and his face greenish under its brown pigment. At least
the blood was not spurting from that wound—no artery had been touched. He must
get the stranger back to the museum where he could see to the ugly tear—
There was a crashing in
the brush. Fors hurled himself for the bow which lay where he had dropped it.
But it was Lura who came out, urging the mare before her. The scent of blood
made the mare roll her eyes and circle away, but Fors wanted no nonsense now
and Lura was of a like mind. She walked up to the horse and gave several low
snarls. The mare stood still, sweating, her eyes showing white. But she did not
rear as Fors somehow got his patient across her back.
Once back in the shelter
of the museum he gave a sigh of relief and rolled the stranger onto his
blanket. The other's eyes were open again and this time with the light of
reason in their dark brown depths. The hunter was very young. Now that he was
so helpless this was plain. He could not count many more years than did Fors
himself—in spite of his big frame and wide, well-muscled shoulders. He lay in
quiet patience watching Fors make a fire and prepare the salve, but he said
nothing, even when the mountaineer went to work with his crude surgery.
The stake had passed
through the skin of the shoulder, tearing a wicked gouge, but, Fors saw with
relief, breaking no bones. If infection did not develop the stranger would
recover.
His handling of that
torn flesh must have caused the stranger agony but he made no sound, although
when Fors finished at last beads of bright crimson showed along the other's
lower lip. He made a gesture with his good hand toward the pouch at his belt
and Fors unfastened it. He selected with fumbling fingers a small bag of white
material and pushed it into his rescuer's hands, jerking his thumb at the
pannikin of water Fors had used during the surgery. There was a coarse brownish
meal in the bag. Fors drew fresh water, shook in a little of the stuff and set
it back on the fire. His patient nodded and smiled weakly. Then he stabbed
himself in the chest with a forefinger and said:
"Arskane"—
"Fors," and
then pointing to Lura the mountaineer added, "Lura."
Arskane nodded his head
and added a sentence in a deep, almost rolling voice which had a drum note in
it. Fors frowned. Some of those words—yes, they were like his own speech. The
accent, though, was different—there was a slurring of certain sounds. He tried
in his turn.
"I am Fors of the
Puma Clan from the Smoking Mountains—" He tried gestures to piece out
meaning.
But Arskane sighed. His
face was drawn and tired and his eyes closed wearily. Plainly he could not make
the effort for coherent speech now. Fors' chin rested on the palm of his hand
and he stared into the fire. This was going to alter his own plans drastically.
He could not go away and leave Arskane alone, unable to fend for himself. And
the big man might not be able to travel for days. He would have to think about
this.
The boiling water began
to give off a fragrant odor—new to his nostrils but enticing. He sniffed the steam
as the water turned brown. When the liquid was quite dark he took a chance and
pulled the pan off to cool. Arskane stirred and turned his head. He smiled at
the steam arising from the water and gestured that when it was ready he would
drink.
This, then, must be the
medicine of his own people. Fors waited, tested it with a cautious finger tip,
and then raised the dark head on his arm, holding the pan to those bitten lips.
Half the liquid was gone before Arskane signed he had enough. He motioned for Fors
to try it too, but a single bitter mouthful was enough to satisfy the
mountaineer. It tasted far worse than it smelled.
For the rest of the
afternoon Fors was busy. He hunted with Lura, bringing back the best parts of a
deer they surprised at the end of the lake, and some of the quail flushed out
of the grass. He added an uncounted number of armloads to the stack of
firewood. There were berries, too, won from a briar thicket. And, when at last
he threw himself down beside the fire and stretched out his aching leg, he was
so tired he thought that he could not move again. But now they were provisioned
for more than one day ahead. The mare had shown a tendency to wander off, so he
shut her into one of the long corridors for the night.
Arskane was awake again after
the fitful feverish sleep of the afternoon, and he watched as Fors prepared the
birds for broiling. He ate, but not as much as Fors offered. The mountaineer
was worried. There might have been poison upon those trap stakes. And he had
nothing with which to combat that. He heated up the bitter brown water and made
Arskane drink it to the dregs. If there was any virtue in the stuff the big man
needed all its help now.
As it grew dark Fors'
patient fell asleep again but his attendant hunched close to the fire, even
though the evening was warm. The mantrap was occupying his thoughts. True, all
the evidence pointed to its not being visited for a long time by those who had
set it. The trapped deer in it had been dead for days and there had been
another skeleton, picked clean by insects and birds, at the other end of the
hold. But someone or something had spent much labor and time in its
construction, and it had been devised by a mind both cunning and cruel. No
Plainsman he had ever heard of followed that crafty method of hunting, and it
was certainly not to the taste of the men of the Eyrie. It was new to Arskane,
or he would not have fallen a victim to it. So that meant others—not of the
plains or of the mountains or of Arskane's tribe—others roaming this city at
their will. And in the cities there lived at ease only—the Beast Things!
Fors' mouth was dry, he
rubbed his hands across his knees. Langdon had died under the throwing darts
and the knives of the Beast Things. Others of the Star Men had met them—and had
not returned from that meeting. Jarl wore a crooked red seam down his forearm
which was the result of a brush with one of their scouts. They were horrible,
monstrous—not human. Fors was mutant—yes. But he was still human. These were
not. And it was because of the Beast Things that mutants were so feared. For
the first time he began to understand that. There was a purpose behind the
hatred of the mutants. But he was human! And the Beast Things were not!
He had never seen one,
and the Star Men who had and survived never talked about them to the commoners
of the Eyrie. Legend made them boogies of the dark—ogres—foul things of the
night.
What if it had been a
Beast Thing trap Arskane had been caught in? Then the Things must live here.
There were thousands upon thousands of hiding places in the ruins to shelter
them. And only Lura's instinct and hunting skill, and his own ears and eyes to
guard them. He looked out into the dusk and shivered. Ears and eyes, bow and
sword, claws and teeth—maybe none of those would be enough!
For four days Arskane
lay in the cool hall of the museum while Fors hunted for the pot or ranged in
scouting trips through the woodland, never venturing too far from the white
building. And at night across the fire they grew familiar with each other's
speech and exchanged stories of their past.
"Our Old Ones were
flying men," Arskane's deep voice rolled across the room. "After the
Last Battle they came down from the sky to their homeland and found it blasted
into nothing. Then they turned their machines and fled south and when the
machines would no longer bear them in the sky they landed in a narrow desert
valley. And after a time they took to wife the women of that country. So did my
tribe spring forth—
"On the fringes of
the desert, life is very hard, but my people learned to use the waste for what
it will give man and later they held much good land. Until twice twelve moons
ago did they hold it—then the earth trembled and shook so that a man could not
stand upright. From the mountains to our southland came fire and many evil
smells. Talu of the Long Beard and Mack the Three Fingered died of coughing in
the death fog which came down upon the village. And in the morning the world
shook again just as the dawn light broke and this time the mountains spewed
forth burning rock which flowed down to engulf the best of our hard-won fields
and pastures. So we gathered what we might and fled before it, all the tribe
together, driving our sheep and taking with us only what might be carried in
the pony carts and on our backs.
"We struck to the
north and discovered that the earth had broken in other places also so that to
the east the sea had eaten into the land. Then we must flee from the rising
waters as we had fled from the fire. And it seemed that nowhere might we find a
place to call our own again. Until at last we came into this territory where so
many of the Old Ones once had lived. Then some of the young warriors, myself
among them, were sent on to scout and mark out fields for our sowing and a
place to build anew the Village of Birds. This is a fair country—"
Arskane's hand gestured south. "I saw much and should have returned with
my news, but, having come so far, my heart would not let me rest until I saw
more and more of its wonders. I watched in secret the comings and goings of the
Plainspeople, but they are not as my folk. It is in their hearts to live in
houses of skin which may be set up in any field they choose and taken down
again when they grow weary. Your mountain breed I do not know—we have little
liking for high places since our mountains brought destruction upon us.
"These cities of
the dead have their uses. One can find treasures here—as you know well. One can
also find worse things." He touched the bandage pad on his shoulder.
"I do not think my people will have a liking for the cities. Now, when I
can again walk a straight trail, I must go back to report to the tribe. And
maybe it shall follow that we will settle along some river valley where the
soil is black and rich. And there shall we open up old fields to the seed
grain, and turn out our sheep to graze on the hillsides. Then shall the Village
of Birds again take root, in a fair and fruitful land." He sighed.
"You have named
yourself a warrior," Fors said slowly. "Against whom do you war? Are
there Beast Things also in your deserts?"
Arskane smiled grimly.
"In the days of the Great Blow-up the Old Ones loosed certain magic they
could not control. Our wise ones know not the secret, having only to guide them
the tales of our fathers, the flying men. But this magic acted in strange and
horrible ways. There were things in the desert which were born enemy to man,
scaled creatures most horrible to look upon. The magic made these both cunning
and quick so that it was ever war to the death between them and all humankind.
But as yet they seem few and perhaps the molten rock from the mountains has
eaten them up entirely. For we have seen none of their breed since we left."
"Radiation."
Fors played with the hilt of his short sword. "Radiation mutations—but
sometimes it worked well. Lura's kind was born of such magic!"
The dark-skinned
southerner looked at the cat who sprawled at ease beyond. "That was
good—not evil—magic. I wish that my people had friends such as that to protect
them in their wanderings. For we have had to fight many times against beasts
and men. The Plainspeople have not shown themselves friends to us. There is
always danger to watch for. One night when I was in a dead place I was set upon
by a pack of nightmare creatures. Had I not been able to climb beyond their
reach and use my knife well they would have stripped the flesh from my
bones."
"That I know."
Fors brought out the drum and put it into the other's hands and Arskane gave a
little cry of pure delight.
"Now can I talk
with the Master of Scouts!" His fingers started to tap out a complicated
beat on the head but Fors' hand shot out and clamped about his wrist.
"No!" The
mountaineer forced the fingers away from the drum. "That might signal
others—as well as your people. It was a thing unknown to me which dug that
trap—"
The scowl which twisted
Arskane's black brows smoothed away as the mountaineer continued:
"I believe that
that is the work of the Beast Things. And if they still skulk in this city your
drum would bring them in—"
"The trap was
old—"
"Yes. But never yet
have we found Beast Things living together in great numbers. He who set it may
now be still dwelling only the length of these ruins from us. This is a large
city and all the men of the Eyrie would not be enough to search it well."
"Your tongue is as
straight as your wit." Arskane set aside the drum. "We shall get free
of this dwelling place of shadows before I try to speak with the tribe. Tomorrow
I shall be able to take the trail. Let us be off with the dawn light. There is
an evil in these old places which seems to clog the nostrils. I like better the
cleanness of the open land."
Fors made up a small
bundle of the city loot, caching what remained in an inner room. His leg was
fully healed and Arskane could ride the mare for the next day or two.
Regretfully the mountaineer looked upon the pile of his gleanings before he
covered them up. But at least he had the map he had made and the journal of his
explorations both packed away in the Star pouch, along with some of the colored
pencils and the small figures from the museum case.
Arskane wandered through
the building most of the afternoon, trying his legs he said, but also
interested in what lay there. Now he wore on one wrist a wide band of wrought
gold and carried a massive club with the head of a spike embedded in a ball
which he had found in a room devoted to implements of war. His throwing spears
and bow had been recovered from the depths of the trap but the shafts of the
spears were broken and he could not draw the bow until his shoulder healed.
The sultry heat of the
past days had not yet closed in when they ate their last meal in the museum at
dawn the next day and stamped out the fire. Arskane protested against riding
but Fors argued him up on the mare and they started out along the one trail the
mountaineer had mapped, the one which had brought him into the city. They made
no stops, traveling at their best pace down the littered street—with before
them the cluster of tall buildings which had been Fors' goal on his first day
in the city. If fortune favored them he was sure they could be almost out of
the circle of the ruins by nightfall.
Arskane used his hands
as sun shields and watched with wonder the towering buildings they moved among.
"Mountains—man
made—that is what we see here. But why did the Old Ones love to huddle together
in such a fashion? Did they fear their own magic so that they must live cheek
to cheek with their kind lest it eat them up when it was loosed—as it did?
Well, they died of it in the end, poor Old Ones. And now we have a better
life—"
"Do we?" Fors
kicked at a loose stone. "They had such knowledge—we are groping in the
dark for only crumbs of what they knew—"
"But they did not
use all their learning for good!" Arskane indicated the ruins. "This
city came out of their minds and then it was also destroyed by them. They built
only to tear down again. I think it better to build than to blast."
As the murmur of his
words died away Fors' head snapped around. He had caught a whisper of sound, a
faint pattering. And had he, or had he not, seen the loathsome outline of a
bloated rat body slipping into a shattered window? There were sounds among the
stones—almost as if some thing—or things—were following them.
Lura's ears were flat to
her skull, her eyes only battle slits in her brown mask. She stood with her
forepaws planted upon a fallen column staring back along the track they had
come, the tip of her tail quivering.
Arskane caught their
unease.
"What is—"
At first Fors thought
that the scream which answered that half question came from the throat of a
bird. And then the mare swung up her head and gave a second wild cry. Arskane
threw himself off just as she reared to crash back on the stones. Then Fors saw
the dart rising and falling in the gaping wound which had torn open her throat.
"In—!"
Arskane's hand about his wrist jerked him into a cavern opening in the front of
the highest tower. As they fled Lura's blood-chilling war cry ripped the air.
But a second later she too was with them pushing back into the dark center of
the building.
They paused at the top
of a ramp which led down into murky shadows. There were floors below. Fors
could see a bit of them. But Arskane pointed to the floor. Beaten in the dust
and dried mud was a regular path of footprints—made by feet too narrow—clawed
feet!
Lura backed away from
that highway spitting and snarling. So—they had escaped but come straight into
the stronghold of the enemy! And it did not need the cry of triumph from
without, coming in shrill inhuman exultation, to confirm that.
But the trail led
down—they might still go up! Lura and Arskane shared Fors' thought, for both
ran for the left hand corridor which was parallel to the street level. There
were heavy doors along the hall, and no matter how hard they pushed none of
these gave. Only one at the very end was open and they crowded up to look down
a shaft into utter darkness. But Fors had glimpsed something else.
"Hold my
belt!" he ordered Arskane. "There is something to the left—"
With the southerner's
fingers hooked in his belt he dared to swing over the edge of the opening. He
was right, a ladder of metal strips protruded from the wall. And when he looked
up he could see a square of dull light above which must mean another open door
maybe a floor or two above. But could Lura and Arskane climb too?
Arskane flexed his arms
as Fors explained, testing his shoulder.
"How far above is
the opening?" he wanted to know.
"Perhaps two
floors—"
While they hesitated
Lura edged to the lip of the shaft, measured with her eyes the reach to the
ladder, and then was gone before Fors could stop her. They heard the rasp of
her claws on the metal—a sound to be drowned out by another—a shuffling noise
of many feet. The inhabitants of the lower depths were issuing out to hunt.
Arskane tested the lashing which held his war club to his belt. Then he
smiled—if a bit crookedly.
"Two floors should
not be beyond my strength. And we can only try, my friend."
He judged his distance
as the cat had done and then swung away. With a pounding heart Fors waited
where he was, not daring to watch that ascent. But the sound he dreaded most to
hear—that of a falling body—did not follow. He fitted an arrow to his bow cord
and waited.
And that wait was not
long. A grayish shadow at the far corner of the corridor was target enough. He
shot, pinning the gray patch to the wall with the steel-headed war arrow.
Something screeched and tried to jerk free. But before it did Fors had
shouldered his bow and had pushed off for the ladder. The strips remained firm
under his weight—his minor nightmare had been their breaking loose after taking
the strain of the cat and the big southerner—and he scrambled up at a furious pace,
his breathing sounding a hurricane in his own ears. He pulled himself through
that other gray space to find Lura and Arskane both anxiously waiting for him.
They were in a second
corridor fronted by rows of doors, but some of these were already open. Arskane
disappeared through the nearest while Fors lay belly down on the floor, his
head at the opening of the shaft, listening to the sounds from below. The
wailing of the thing he had wounded faded away but the shuffling noise was
louder and there were growls which might or might not have been speech. So far
the creatures below had not discovered how the quarry had fled.
Fors scrambled to his
feet and caught at the door which had once closed the shaft—now it stood a few
inches out from where it slid into the wall. Under his tugging it gave a little
with a faint grating sound. The mountaineer exerted his full strength and
gained a foot more.
But the grating must
have betrayed them. There was a shout below and a dart sped up the shaft, to
spin harmlessly back again. Arskane came up pushing before him a collection of
moldering furniture.
Odd noises arose from
the shaft but Fors was not tricked into looking over the edge. He continued his
silent struggle with the door. Arskane stood to help him. Together they fought
the stubborn metal, salt sweat stung in their eyes and dripped from their
chins.
In the shaft the sounds
grew louder. Several more darts skimmed into the light and fell. One, aimed
with more skill or luck, skidded out across the floor between Fors' feet.
Arskane turned to his heap of furniture and gave it one mighty push, toppling
the whole pile over. There was a terrified yell in answer and a distant crash.
Arskane rubbed a dusty hand across his wet jaw.
"One of them, by
the Horned Lizard, climbs no more!"
They had the door
halfway across the shaft opening now. And all at once its resistance ended with
a snap which almost sent them both flying. Fors cried out triumphantly—but too
soon. A foot was all they had gained. There still remained open space enough
for a body to squeeze through.
Arskane drew off and
considered the door for a long moment. Then he slapped it with the flat of his
hand, putting behind that blow all the force he could muster. Again it gave and
came forward a few inches. But the sounds in the shaft had begun again. The
hunters had not been deterred by the fate of their companion.
Something flipped out of
the dark, landing close to Fors' foot. It was a hand, but skeleton thin and
covered with wrinkled grayish skin. As it scrabbled with twisted claws for a
hold it seemed more a rat's paw than a hand. Fors raised his foot and stamped,
grinding the boot, nailed to cross mountain trails, into the very center of the
monstrosity. The scream which answered that came from the mouth of the shaft.
They threw themselves in a last furious attack upon the door, their nails
breaking and tearing on the metal—and it gave—snapping into the groove awaiting
in the opposite wall.
For a long moment they
leaned panting against the wall of the corridor, holding their bruised and
bleeding hands out before them. Fists were beating against that door but it did
not move.
"That will stay
closed," Arskane gasped at last. "They cannot hang upon the wall
ladder and force it. If there is no other way up we are safe—for a time—"
Lura came down the
hallway, threading her way in and out of the rooms along it. And there was no
menace there. They would have a breathing spell. Or were they now caught in a
trap as cruel as the one which had engulfed Arskane in the museum wood?
The southerner turned to
the front of the building and Fors followed him to one of the tall windows,
long bare of glass, which gave them sight of the street below. They could see
the body of the mare but the pack she had carried had been stripped off and there
was something odd about the way she lay—
"So—they are meat
eaters—"
Fors gagged at Arskane's
words. The mare was meat—maybe they, too, were—meat! He raised sick eyes and
saw that the same thought lay in the big man's mind. But Arskane's hand was
also on the club he had taken from the museum.
"Before this meat
goes into any pot, it will have to be taken. And the hunting of it is going to
cost them sore. These are the Beast Things of which you have spoken, are they
not, comrade?"
"I believe so. And
they are reputed to be crafty—"
"Then must we, too,
be sly. Now, since we cannot go down—let us see what may lie above us."
Fors watched the pigeons
wheeling about the ruins. The floor under their feet was white with bird
droppings.
"We have no
wings—"
"No—but I am bred
of a race which once flew," Arskane answered with a sort of quiet humor
coloring his tone. "We shall find a way out of here that that offal below
cannot follow. Let us now seek it."
They passed out of one
hall into another, looking into the rooms along the way. Here were only
decaying sticks of furniture and bones. In the third hall were more of the
shaft doors—all closed. Then, in the far end of one back hall, Arskane pushed
open a last door and they came upon stairs which led both up and down.
Lura brushed past them
and went down, fading away with her customary skill and noiselessness. They
squatted down in the shadows to wait her report.
Arskane's face showed a
grayish tinge which was not born of the lack of light. The struggle up that
ladder and with the door had left its marks on him. He grunted and settled his
bad shoulder gingerly against the wall. Fors edged forward. Now that they were
quiet his ears could work for him. He heard the pattering which was Lura on her
way, the trickle of powdered rubble which her paws had disturbed somewhere.
There was no sign
hereabout that the Beast Things had used this stair. But—Lura had stopped! Fors
closed his eyes, blanking out his own thoughts, trying as he never had before
to catch the emanations of the big cat's mind. She was not in any danger but
she was baffled. The path before her was closed in such a manner that she could
not win through. And when her brown head appeared again above the top step Fors
knew that they could not escape by that route. He said as much to Arskane.
The tall man pulled
himself to his feet with a weary sigh.
"So. Then let us
climb—but gently, comrade. These stairs of the Old Ones beat a man's breath out
of his body!"
Fors pulled Arskane's
arm over his shoulder, taking some of the weight of the larger man.
"Slow shall it
be—we have the full day before us—"
"And perhaps the
night, too, and some other days. Well, climb—comrade."
Five floors higher
Arskane sank down, pulling Fors with him. And the mountaineer was glad of the
rest. They had gone slowly, to be sure, but now his leg ached and his breath
sobbed in a band of pain beneath his ribs.
For a space they simply
sat there, taking deep breaths and resting. Then Fors noticed with dismay that
the sunlight was fading in the patches on the floor. He crawled to a window and
looked out. Through the jagged teeth of broken buildings he could see the
waters of the lake and the sun was far into the west. It must be late
afternoon.
Arskane shook himself
awake at that information.
"Now we come,"
he observed, "to the matter of food. And perhaps we have too often
refreshed ourselves from your canteen—"
Water! Fors had
forgotten that. And where inside this maze would they find either food or
drink? But Arskane was on his feet now and going through the door which must
lead to the rest of that floor. Birds—Fors remembered the evidences of their
nesting here—that would be the answer—birds!
But they came into a
long room where some soft fabric lay under their feet. There were many tables
set in rows down its length, each encircled by chairs. Fors caught the glint of
metal laid out in patterns on the nearest. He picked up an unmistakable fork!
This then had been an eating place of the Old Ones. But the food—any food would
be long since gone.
He said that aloud only
to have Arskane shake his head.
"Not so, comrade.
Rather do I say that we are favored with such luck as few men have. In my
journey north I chanced upon just such a place as this and in the smaller rooms
behind I found many containers of food left by the Old Ones, but still good.
That night did I eat as might a chieftain when the Autumn Dances begin—"
"To eat food found
in the old places is to choose death. That is the law!" repeated Fors
stubbornly. But he did trail along behind as Arskane moved purposefully toward
the door at the other end of the room.
"They had foods and
drinks of many kinds. Now and again some few are safe, but the containers that
holds it must be perfect—without blemish. I live, do I not, and I have eaten of
the bounty left by the Old Ones. We can do no less than seek for it here."
Arskane, wise from his
earlier experience, brought them into a room where shelves stood around the
walls. Containers of glass and metal were arranged in rows along the shelves.
Fors marveled at the abundance. But the southerner walked slowly around,
peering intently at the glass containers, paying no attention to the metal ones
red with rust. Selecting four bottles and a glass canister filled with white
crystals, he put them down on the table in the center of the room.
"Look well at the
label, comrade." Arskane pointed to the picture of a bubbling spring on
each bottle. "Note the sealing. If you see no signs of decay there, then
strike it off and drink!"
And drink they did, of
water gathered generations before their birth. Then Arskane poured the contents
of the third bottle into the opened canister, dissolving its sparkling crystals
into a thick, clear syrup.
Fors found it shockingly
sweet—stronger than any honey he had ever tasted. But it sated their hunger as
the water had appeased their thirst. He noticed sounds from the rooms ahead.
Lura feasted also—so birds did nest here.
Arskane tapped the last
bottle with his belt knife.
"We need not worry
about provisions for the moment. And tomorrow we shall discover a way out of
here. For once the Beast Things of the dead places have found their
match!"
And Fors met that
confidence with his own.
They slept fitfully that
night on piles of moldering fabrics they dragged together, and on rousing ate
and drank again from the supplies in the storeroom. Then they climbed once more
until the steps ended in a platform which had once been walled by large glass
windows. Below the city spread out in all its broken glory. Fors identified the
route he had pioneered on entering and pointed it out. And Arskane did the same
for the one he had followed in the east.
"South should be
our road now—straight south—"
Fors laughed shortly at
that observation.
"We have yet to win
free of this one building," he objected. But Arskane was ready with an
answer to that.
"Come!" One of
his big hands cupped the mountaineer's shoulder as he drew Fors to the empty
window space facing east. Far below lay the broad roof of a neighbor building,
its edge tight against the side of the tower.
"You have
this." Arskane flipped the end of the mountain rope still wrapping Fors'
belt. "We must go down to those windows just above that roof and swing
through to it. See, south lies a road of roofs across which we may travel for a
space. These Beast Things may be cunning but perhaps they do not watch the sky
route against escape—it hangs above the ways they seem to like best. It is in
my mind that they hug the ground on their journeyings—"
"It is said that
they best love to slink in the burrows," confirmed Fors. "And they
are supposed to be none too fond of the open light of day—"
Arskane plucked his full
lower lip between forefinger and thumb. "Night fighters—eh? Well then, day
is the time for us—the light is in our favor."
They made the long climb
down with lighter hearts. A story above the neighboring roof they found a
window in the center of the hallway which faced in the right direction, broke
out the few splinters of glass still set dagger-like in the frame, and leaned
out to reconnoiter.
"The rope will not
be needed after all," Arskane commented. "That drop is easy." He
took a strong grip on the window frame and flexed his muscles.
Fors crossed to the next
window and set an arrow on his bow cord. But, as far as he could see, the roof
below, the silent blank windows were empty of menace. Only—he could not cover
all of those. And death might fly from any one of the hundreds of black holes,
above, below—
But this was their
best—maybe their only chance of escape. Arskane grunted with pain from his
shoulder. Then he was out, tumbling down to the surface below. As quickly as he
had taken the leap he dodged behind the high parapet.
For a long moment they
both waited, frozen. Then, in a flash of brown and cream, Lura went through,
making a more graceful landing. She sped across the roof, a streak of light
fur.
So far—so good. Fors
freed himself from quiver, Star Man's pouch, and bow, tossing them through in
the general direction of Arskane. Then he hoisted himself on the sill and
swung. He heard Arskane's shout of warning just as he let go. Startled, he
could not prepare for a proper landing but fell hard—with a force which jarred
him.
He squirmed over on his
back. A dart quivered in the frame of the window where his hand had rested. He
rolled into the safety of the parapet with a force which brought him up with a
crack against Arskane's knees.
"Where did that
come from?"
"There!" The
southerner pointed at the row of windows in the building across the street.
"From one of those—"
"Let us go—"
Belly flat, Fors started
a snake's progress toward the opposite end of the roof. They could not go back
now—to try to climb up to that window would be to present a target which even a
fumbling marksman could not miss. But now the hunt was on and they would have
to make a running fight of it through a maze which the enemy knew intimately
and they did not know at all—a maze that might be studded with traps more
subtle and more cruel than the one which had imprisoned Arskane—
A thin fluting—like the
piping of a child's reed whistle—cut the air somewhere behind. Fors guessed it
to be what he had dreaded most to hear—the signal that the quarry had been
flushed out of hiding and was now to be pursued in the open.
Arskane had forged
ahead. And because the big man seemed to know just what he was going to do next
Fors accepted his lead. They came into a corner of the parapet between the east
and south sides of the roof. Lura had already gone over it; she called softly
from below.
"Now we must trust
to luck, comrade—and to the favor of Fortune. Slip over quickly on the same
instant that I move. It may be that if we give them two targets they will not
be able to choose either. Are you ready?"
"Yes!"
"Then—go!"
Fors reached up and
caught the top of the parapet at the same moment Arskane moved. Together their
bodies went over and they let themselves roll across the second roof, painfully
shedding some skin in the process. Here the surface was not clear. Blocks,
fallen from a taller building beyond, made a barrier which Arskane greeted with
an exclamation of satisfaction. Both gained the protection of the rubble and
squatted down to listen. The pipe of the whistle sounded again, imperatively.
Arskane rubbed dust off his hands.
"Beyond here lies
another street, and below is the river valley which you crossed—"
Fors nodded. He, too,
could remember what they had seen from the tower. The river valley made a
curve, cutting due east at this point. He shut his eyes for an instant the
better to visualize the old train yards, the clustered buildings—
"Well,"
Arskane shook himself, "if we give them more time they will be better able
to greet us in a manner we shall not relish. Therefore, we must keep on the
move. Now that they expect to find us on roof tops it might be wise to seek the
street level—"
"See here."
Fors had been examining the rubbish about them. "This did not fall from
above." He dug into the pile of rubble. Set in the roof was a slanted
door. Arskane pounced upon it joyfully.
They dug as furiously as
ground squirrels in autumn until they cleared it. Then they tugged it open and
looked down into a musty darkness from which old evil odors arose. There were
stairs, almost ladder steep. They used them.
Long hallways and more
stairs. Although all three walked with the silence of forest hunters their
passing sent small thuds and old sighings through the deserted building. Now
and again they stopped to listen. But Lura manifested no signs of uneasiness
and Fors could hear nothing beyond the fall of plaster, the shifting of old
boards their tread had disturbed.
"Wait!" He
caught Arskane as the latter started down the last flight of stairs. Fors'
swinging hand had struck lightly against a door in the wall and something in
the hollow sound which had followed that blow seemed promising. He opened the
door. They stepped out on a kind of ledge above a wide cavern of a place.
"By the Great
Horned Lizard!" Arskane was shaken and Fors gripped the rail which framed
the platform.
They looked down into
what once must have been a storage place for the heavy trucks which the Old Ones
had used for transportation of goods. Ten—fifteen of the monsters stood in line
waiting for the masters who were long gone. And several were of the advanced
engine type which had been the last invention of the Old Ones. These appeared
unblighted by time, still perfect and ready for use.
One of them had its nose
almost against a wide closed door. A door, decided Fors instantly, which must
give upon the street. A wild idea began to flower in his mind. He turned to
Arskane.
"There was a road
leading down into the valley of the trains—a road which was mostly steep
slope—"
"True—"
"See that
machine—the one by the gate? If we could start it out it would roll down that
street and nothing could stop it!"
Arskane licked his lips.
"The machine is probably dead. Its motor would not run and we could not
push it—"
"We might not need
to push. And do not be sure that the motor would not serve us. Jarl of the Star
Men once piloted a sealed motor car a full quarter of a mile before it died
again. If this would only bring us to the top of the slope it would be enough.
At least we can try. It would be a safe and easy way to gain the valley—"
"As you say—we can
try!" Arskane bounded down the steps and headed for the truck.
The door to the driver's
seat hung open as if to welcome them. Fors slid across the disintegrating pad
to sit behind the controls—just as if he were one of the Old Ones who had used
this marvel as a matter of course.
Arskane crowded in
beside him and was leaning forward to examine the rows of dials and buttons
confronting them. He touched one.
"This locks the
wheels—"
"How do you
know?"
"We have a man of
learning in the tribe. He has taken apart many of the old machines to learn the
secret of their fashioning. Only we have no longer the fuel to run them and so they
are of no use to us. But from Unger I have learned something concerning their
powers."
Fors yielded his place,
not without some reluctance, and watched Arskane delicately test the controls.
At last the southerner stamped with his foot upon a floor-set button and what
they had believed in their hearts would never happen, did. The ancient engine
came to life. The sealed engine was not dead!
"The door!"
Arskane's face was white beneath its brown stain, he clung to the wheel with
real fear of the terrifying power that was throbbing under him.
Fors leaped out of the
cab and dashed for the big door. He pulled down on the counter bar and it gave
so that he could push back the ponderous barrier. He looked out upon a street
clear of wrecks. A glance up slope told him why. At the head—only a few feet
back from the door—one of the great trucks had slewed sidewise, its nose
smashed into the wall of a building on the opposite side—an effective
barricade. He did not linger after that fleeting examination. Behind, the sound
of the dying engine was horrible—grating and grinding out its last few seconds
of life.
Fors gained the cabin,
bringing Lura in with him. They crouched together with pounding hearts as
Arskane fumbled with the wheel. But the last spurt of power set the big truck
moving, rubber shredding away from the remains of the tires as they turned. The
engine faltered and died as they rolled out of the garage and reached the rise,
but the momentum carried on and they sped faster and faster down the steep hill
to the valley below.
Only pure luck had given
them that clear street ahead. Had it not been for the smashed truck corking the
street at its head they might have crashed into wreckage which would have
killed them all. Arskane fought the wheel, steering only by instinct, and
brought them along the pavement at a pace which grew ever wilder as the truck
gained speed.
Twice Fors closed his
eyes, only to force them open again. His hands were buried deep in the fur of
the squalling Lura who wanted none of this form of travel. But the truck went
on and on and they were at last on level land, bumping over the rusted tracks
of the railroad. The truck slowed, and at last it stopped as it buried its
front bumper in a heap of coal.
For a moment the three
simply remained where they were, shaken and weak. Then they roused enough to
tumble out. Arskane laughed, but his voice was going up scale as he said:
"If anyone followed
us they must be well behind now. And we must labor so that such a distance
grows even wider."
They took advantage of
any cover afforded by the wreckage in the train yards, and struck south at a
trotting pace until, at last, the valley of the river looped away again from
the southern path they had set themselves. Then they climbed the slope and went
on across the tree-grown ruins of the city outskirts.
The sun was overhead,
hot on head and shoulders. There was a fishy scent in the breeze which blew
inland from the lake. Arskane sniffed it loudly.
"Rain," was
his verdict, "and we could not hope for better fortune. It will cover our
trail—"
But the Beast Things
would not follow any prey out of a city—or would they? They must be ranging
farther afield now—there was that track left by the deer hunter. And Fors'
father had been brought down by a pack, not within a city but in the fringes of
the true forest land. It was not well to count themselves safe merely because
they were drawing out of the ruined area.
"At least we travel
without weight of baggage," Arskane observed some time later as they
paused to rest and drink the sweetened water with which Fors had filled the
canteen that morning.
Fors thought regretfully
of the mare and the plunder which she had carried only yesterday. Not much
remained now to prove his story—just the two rings on his fingers, and the few
small things in the Star pouch. But he had the map and his travel journal to
turn out before the Council when he had that accounting with the Eyrie which he
thirsted for.
Arskane had even less
than the mountaineer. The museum club in his hand was the only weapon he still
had left except his belt knife. In his pouch he carried flint and steel, two
fishhooks and a line wound about them.
"If we but had the
drum," he regretted. "Were that in my hand we should even now be
talking with my people. Without signals it will be a chancy matter to find
them—unless we cross the trail of another scout."
"Come with me—to
the Eyrie!" Fors said impulsively.
"When you told me
your story, comrade, did you not say that you fled your tribe? Will they be
quicker to welcome you back with a stranger at your heels? This is a world in
which hate lives yet. Let me tell you of my own people—this is a story of the
old, old days. Among the flying men who founded my tribe were those born with
dark skins—and so they had in their day endured much from those born of fairer
races. We are a people of peace but there is an ancient hurt behind us and
sometimes it stirs in our memories to poison with bitterness.
"As we moved north
we strove to make friends with the Plainspeople—three times that I have
knowledge of did we send heralds unto them. And each time were we greeted by a
flight of war arrows. So now we have hardened our hearts and we stand for
ourselves if the need be. Can you promise that those of the mountains will hold
out friendly hands if we seek them out?"
Hot blood stung Fors'
cheeks. He was afraid that he knew the answer to that question. Strangers were
enemies—that was the old, old ruling. Yet why should it be so? This land was
wide and rich and men were few. Surely there was enough of it for all—it went
on and on to the sea. And in the old days men had fashioned ships and sailed
across seas to other wide lands.
He said as much aloud
and Arskane gave hearty and swift agreement.
"You reason with
straight thoughts, comrade. Why should there be distrust between the twain of
us because our skin differs in color and our tongues sound different to the
ear? My people live by tilling the land, they plant seed and food grows from
it, they herd sheep from which comes the wool to weave our wind cloaks and
night coverings. We make jars and pots from clay and fire them into stone
hardness, working with our hands and delighting in it. The Plainspeople are
hunters, they have tamed horses and run the herds of cattle—they love to keep
ever moving—to know far trails. And your people—?"
Fors screwed his eyes
against the sun. "My people? We are but a small tribe of few clans and
often in the winter we needs must go lean and hungry for the mountains are a
hard country. But above all do we love knowledge, we live to loot the ruins, to
try to understand and relearn the things which made the Old Ones great in their
time. Our medicine men fight against the ills of the bodies, our teachers and
Star Men against the ignorance of the mind—"
"And yet these same
people who fight ignorance have made of you a wandering one because you differ
from them—"
For the second time
Fors' skin burned red. "I am mutant. And mutant stock is not to be
trusted. The—the Beast Things are also mutant—" He could not choke out more
than that.
"Lura is mutant
also—"
Fors blinked. The four
quiet words of that answer meant more than just a statement of fact. The
tenseness went out of him. He was warm, and not with shame, nor with the sun
which was beating down on him. It was a good warmness he had not remembered
feeling before—ever.
Arskane propped his chin
on his hand and stared out over the tangle of bush and vine. "It seems to
me," he said slowly, "that we are like the parts of one body. My
people are the busy hands, fashioning things by which life may be made easier
and more beautiful. The Plainspeople are the restless, hurrying feet, ever
itching for new trails and the strange things which might lie beyond the
sunrise and the sunset. And your clan is the head, thinking, remembering,
planning for feet and hands. Together—"
"Together,"
Fors breathed, "we would make such a nation as this land has not seen
since the days of the Old Ones!"
"No, not a nation
such as the Old Ones knew!" Arskane's answer was sharp. "They were
not one body—for they knew war. And out of that warfare came what is today. If
the body grows together again it must be because each part, knowing its own
worth and taking pride in it, recognizes also the worth of the other two. And
color of skin, or eyes, or the customs of a man's tribe must mean no more to
strangers when meeting than the dust they wash from their hands before they
take meat. We must come to one another free of such dust—or it will rise to
blind our eyes and what the Old Ones started will continue to live for ever and
ever to poison the earth."
"If that could only
be—"
"Brother," for
the first time Arskane used the more intimate word to Fors, "my people
believe that all the actions in this life have behind them some guiding power.
And it seems to me that we two were brought to this place so that we might meet
thus. And from our meeting perhaps there will be born something stronger and
mightier than what we have known before. But now we linger here too long, death
may still sniff at our heels. And it is not to my mind that we shall be turned
from the path marked out for us."
Something in the solemn
tones of the big man's voice reached into Fors. He had never had a real friend,
his alien blood had set him too far apart from the other boys of the Eyrie. And
his relationship with his father had been that of pupil with teacher. But he
knew now that he would never willingly let this dark-skinned warrior go out of
his life again, and that where Arskane chose to go, there he would follow.
When the sun was almost
overhead they were in a wilderness of trees where it was necessary to go slowly
to avoid gaping cellar holes and lengths of moldering beams. But in this maze
Lura picked up the trail of a wild heifer and within the hour they had brought
it down and were broiling fresh meat. With enough for perhaps two more meals
packed in the raw hide they went on, Fors' small compass their guide.
Abruptly they came out
on the edge of the old place of flying men. So abruptly they were almost
shocked into dodging back into the screen of trees when they first saw what lay
there.
Both were familiar with
the pictures of such machines. But here they were real, standing in ordered
rows—some of them. And the rest were piled in battered confusion, torn and rent
or half engulfed in shell holes.
"Planes!"
Arskane's eyes gleamed. "The sky-riding planes of my fathers' fathers!
Before we fled the shaking of the mountains we went to look our last upon the
ones which brought the first men of our clan to that land—and they were like
unto some of these. But here is a whole field of planes!"
"These were struck
dead before they reached the sky," Fors pointed out. A strange feeling of
excitement burned inside him. The ground machines, even the truck which had
helped them out of the city, never moved him so. These winged monsters—how
great—how very great in knowledge must the Old Ones have been! That they could
ride among the clouds in these—where now their sons must crawl upon the ground!
Hardly knowing what he did Fors ventured out and drew his hand sadly along the
body of the nearest plane. He was so small beside it—a whole family clan might
have once ridden in its belly—
"It was with such
as these that the Old Ones sowed death over the world—"
"But to ride in the
clouds," Fors refused Arskane's somber mood, "above the earth—They
must have been godlike—the Old Ones!"
"Say rather
devil-like! See—" Arskane took him by the arm and led him between the two
orderly rows on the edge of the field to look at the series of ragged, ugly
craters which made a churned mess of the center of the airport. "Death
came thus from the air, and men dropped that death willingly upon their
fellows. Let us remember that, brother."
They passed around the
wreckage, following the lines of unwrecked planes until their way led to a
building. There were many bones here. Many men had died trying to get the
machines into the air—too late.
When they reached the
building, both turned and looked back at the path of destruction and the two
lines of curiously untouched bombers still waiting. The sky they would never
again travel was clear and blue with small, clean-cut white clouds drifting
across it in patterns. In the west other and darker clouds were gathering. A
storm was in the making.
"This,"
Arskane pointed down the devastated field, "must never happen again. No
matter what heights our sons rise to—we must not tear the earth against each
other—Do you agree, brother?"
Fors met those dark burning
eyes squarely. "It is agreed. And what I can do, that I shall. But—where
men once flew they must fly again! That also we must swear to!"
Fors hunched over the
table, leaning on his elbows, hardly daring to breathe lest the precious
cloth-backed square he was studying crumble into powdery dust. Maps—such a
wealth of maps he had never dreamed of. He could put finger tip to the point of
blue which was the edge of the great lake—and from that he could travel
across—straight to the A-T-L-A-N-T-I-C Ocean. Why, that was the fabulous sea!
He looked up impatiently as Arskane came into this treasure room.
"We are here—right
here!"
"And here we are
like to stay forever if we do not bestir ourselves—"
Fors straightened up.
"What—?"
"I have but come
from the tower at the end of this building. Something alive moves at the far
end of the field of machines. It is a shadow but it slides with too much
purpose to be overlooked by a cautious—"
"A deer,"
began Fors, knowing that it was not.
Arskane gave a short
bark of humor-lacking laughter. "Does a deer creep upon its belly and spy
around corners, brother? No, I think that our friends from the city have found
us out at last. And I do not like being caught in this place—no, I do not like that
at all!"
Fors left the maps
regretfully. How Jarl would have delighted in them. But to attempt to move them
would be to destroy them and they would have to remain—as they had through the
countless years. He picked up his quiver and checked the remaining arrows. Only
ten left. And when they were gone he would have only short sword and hunting
knife—
Arskane must have picked
that thought right out of his companion's mind for now he was nodding.
"Come." He went back to the flight of stairs which led them in a spiral
up and up until they stood in a place that had once been completely walled with
glass. "See there—and what do you make of that?"
The southerner stabbed a
finger southeast. Fors picked out an odd scar in the vegetation there, a wide
wedge of land where nothing grew. Under the sun the soil had a strange metallic
gleam. He had seen the raw rocks of mountain gorges and the cleared land where
the Old Ones had once had concrete surfaces, but this was different. In a land
where trees and grass had reclaimed their own nothing green encroached upon the
wedge.
"Desert—" was
all he could suggest doubtfully. But there should be no deserts in this section
of the country.
"That it is not!
Remember, I am desert born and that is no natural wasteland such as I have ever
known. It is something the like of which I have not stumbled upon in all my
journeying!"
"Hush!" Fors'
head snapped around. He was sure of that sound, the distant scrape of metal
against metal. His eyes ran along the lines of the silent machines. And there
was a flicker of movement halfway down the second line!
He screened his eyes
against the sun, crowding up to the frame of the vanished glass. Under the
shadow of the spreading wing of a plane squatted a gray-black blot. And it was
sniffing the ground!
His whisper hardly rose
above the rasp of Arskane's quick breathing. "Only one—"
"No. Look within
the curve of that bush—to the right—"
Yes, the southerner was
right. Against the green, one could see the bestial head. The Beast Things
almost always hunted as a pack. It was too much to hope that this time they did
not. Fors' hand dropped to his sword hilt.
"We must go!"
Arskane's sandals already
thudded on the stairs. But before he left the tower, Fors saw that gray thing
dart forward from under the plane. And two more such lumps detached themselves
from the covering of trees along the ruined runway, taking cover among the
machines. The pack was closing in.
"We must keep to
the open," Arskane warned. "If we can stay ahead and not allow them
to corner us we shall have a fair chance."
There was another door
out of the building, one which gave upon the other half of the field. Here was
a maze of tangled wreckage. Shell holes pocked the runways; machines and
defense guns had been blasted too. They swung around the sky-pointing muzzle of
a mounted gun. And in the same instant the air was rent with a horrible
screech, answered by Lura's snarl of rage. A thrashing tangle of fighting cat
and her prey rolled out almost under their feet.
Arskane swung his club
with a sort of detached science. He struck down, hard. Thin, bone-gray arms
went wide and limp and Lura was clawing a dead body. A missile from the
wreckage grazed Fors' head sending him spinning against the gun. He stumbled
over the body from which came a filthy stench. Then Arskane jerked him to his
feet and pulled him under the up-ended nose of a plane.
Still shaking his
ringing head Fors allowed his companion to guide him as they turned and dodged.
Once he heard the ring of metal as Beast Thing dart struck. Arskane pushed him
to the left, the momentum of the southerner's shove carrying both of them into
cover.
"Driving us—"
Arskane panted. "They herd us like deer—"
Fors tried to struggle
free of the other's prisoning hand.
"Lura—ahead—"
In spite of the blow which had rocked him he caught the cat's message.
"There the way lies clear—"
Arskane did not seem
disposed to leave cover but Fors tore free and wriggled through an opening in
the churned earth and broken machines. It seemed to last hours, that crawling,
twisting race with death. But in the end they came out on the edge of that odd
scar in the earth which they had sighted from the tower. And there Lura
crouched, her lips lifted in a snarl, her tail sweeping steadily to signify her
rage.
"Down that
gully—quick—" Arskane was into the notch before he had finished speaking.
The strange earth
crunched under Fors' boots. He took the only way left to freedom. And Lura,
still giving low voice to her dismay, swept by him.
Here there was not even
moss and the rocky outcrops had a glassy glaze. Fors shrank from touching
anything with his bare flesh. The sounds of pursuit were gone though. It was
too quiet here. He realized suddenly that what his ears missed was the
ever-present sound of insects which had been with them in the vegetation of the
healthy world.
This country they had
entered blindly was alien, with no familiar green and brown to meet the eye, no
homely sounds for the reassurance of the ear. Arskane had paused and as Fors
caught up he asked the question which was on his tongue tip.
"What is this
place?"
But the southerner
countered with a question of his own. "What have you been told of the
Blow-Up Lands?"
"Blow-Up
Lands?" Fors tried to remember the few scanty references to such in the
records of the Eyrie. Blow-Up Lands—where nuclear bombs had struck to bite into
the earth's crust, where death had entered so deeply that generations must pass
before man could go that way again—
His mouth opened and
then shut quickly. He did not have to ask his question again. He knew—and the
chill horror of that knowing was worse than a Beast Thing dart striking into
his flesh. No wonder there had been no pursuit. Even the mutant Beast Things
knew better than to venture here!
"We must go
back—" he half whispered, already knowing that they could not.
"Go back to certain
death? No, brother, and already it is too late. If the old tales be true we are
even now walking dead men with the seeds of the burning sickness in us.
Instead—if we go on—there is a chance of getting through—"
"Perhaps more than
a chance." Fors' first horror faded as he recalled an old argument long
ago worn to rags by the men of the Eyrie. "Tell me, Arskane, in the early
years after the Blow-Up did the people of your tribe suffer from the radiation
sickness?"
The big man's straight
brows drew together. "Yes. There was a death year. All but ten of the clan
died within three months. And the rest sickened and were ever weakly. It was
not until a generation later that we grew strong again."
"So was it also
with those of the Eyrie. Men of my clan who have studied the ancient books say
that because of this sickness we are now different from the Old Ones who gave
us birth. And perhaps because of that difference we may venture unharmed where
death would have struck them down."
"But this reasoning
has not yet been put to the proof?"
Fors shrugged. "Now
it is. And we shall see if it is correct. I know that I am mutant."
"While I am like
the others of my tribe. But that is not saying that they are the same as the
Old Ones. Well, whether it be what we hope or not, we are set on this path. And
there is truly death, and an unpleasant one, behind us. In the meantime—that is
a storm coming. We had best find shelter, this is no land to blunder across in
the dark!"
It was hard to keep
one's footing on the greasy surface and Fors guessed that if it were wet it
would be worse than sand to plow through. They held to the sides of the narrow
valleys which laced the country, looking for a cave or overhang that would afford
the slightest hint of shelter.
The dark clouds made a
sullen gray mass and a premature twilight. A bad night to go without a fire—in
the open of the contaminated land under a dripping sky.
A jagged flash of purple
lightning cracked across the heavens and both of them shielded their eyes as it
struck not far from where they stood. The rumble of the thunder which followed
almost split their ear drums. Then the rain came in a heavy smothering curtain
to close them in. They huddled together, miserable, the three of them against
the side of a narrow valley, cowering as the lightning struck again and again
and the water rose in a stream down the center of the gully, washing the soil
from the glassy rocks. Only once did Fors move. He unhooked his canteen and pulled
at Arskane's belt flask until the big man gave it to him. These he set out in
the steady downpour. The water which ran by his feet was contaminated but the
rain which had not yet touched soil or rock might be drinkable later.
Lura, Fors decided, must
be the most unhappy of the three. The rain ran from their smooth skin and was
not much held by their rags of clothing. But her fur was matted by it and it
would take hours of licking with her tongue before it was in order again.
However, she did not voice her disapproval of life as she usually did. Since
they had crossed into the atom-blasted land she had not given tongue at all. On
impulse Fors tried now to catch her thoughts. He had been able to do that in
the past—just enough times to be sure that she could communicate when she
wished. But now he met only a blank. Lura's wet fur pressed against him now,
but Lura herself had gone.
And then he realized
with a start that she was listening, listening so intently that her body was
now only one big organ for the trapping of sound. Why?
He rested his forehead
on his arms where he had crossed them on his hunched knees. Deliberately he set
about shutting out the sounds around him—the drum of the rain, Arskane's
breathing, the gurgle of the water threading by just beyond their toes. Luckily
the thunder had stopped. He was conscious of the pounding of his own blood in
his ears, of the hiss of his own breath. He shut them out, slowly, as
thoroughly as he could. This was a trick he had tried before but never with
such compulsion on him. It was very necessary now that he hear—and that
warning might have come either from Lura or some depth within him. He
concentrated to shut out even the drive of that urgency—for it too was a
danger.
There was a faint
plopping sound. His mind considered it briefly and rejected it for what it
was—the toppling of earth undercut by the storm-born stream. He pushed the
boundaries of his hearing farther away. Then, even as a strange dizziness began
to close in, he heard it—a sound which was not born of the wind and the rain.
Lura moved, rising to her feet. Now she turned and looked at him as he raised
his head to meet her eyes.
"What—?"
Arskane stirred uneasily, staring from one to the other.
Fors almost laughed at
the blank bewilderment in the big man's eyes.
The dizziness which had
come from his concentration was receding fast. His eyes adjusted to the night
and the shadows. He got to his feet and put aside bow and quiver, keeping only
the belt with his sword and knife. Arskane put out a protesting hand which he
eluded.
"There is something
back there. It is important that I see it. Wait here—"
But Arskane was
struggling up too. Fors saw his mouth twist with pain as he inadvertently put
weight upon his left arm. The rain must have got to the healing wound. And
seeing that, the mountaineer shook his head.
"Listen—I am
mutant—you have never asked in what manner I differ. But it is this, I can see
in the dark—even this night is little different from the twilight for me. And
my ears are close to Lura's in keenness. Now is the hour when my difference
will serve us. Lura!" He swung around and looked for a second time deep
into those startlingly blue eyes. "Here will you stay—with our brother.
Him will you guard—as you would me!"
She shifted her weight
from one front paw to another, standing up against his will in the recesses of
her devious mind, refusing him. But he persisted. He knew her stubborn freedom
and the will for it which was born into her kind. They called no man master and
they went their own way always. But Lura had chosen him, and because he had no
friends among his own breed they had been very close, perhaps closer than any
of the Eyrie had been with the furred hunters before. Fors did not know how
much she would yield to his will but this was a time when he must set himself
against her. To leave Arskane here alone, handicapped by his wound and his lack
of night sight, would be worse than folly. And the big man could not go with
him. And the sound—that must be investigated!
Lura's head came up. Fors
reached down his hand and felt the wetness of her fur as she rubbed her jaw
along his fist in her most intimate caress. He had a moment of pure happiness
at her acceptance of his wish. His fingers scratched behind her ears lovingly.
"Stay here,"
he told them both. "I shall return as quickly as I may. But we must know
what lies there—"
Before he finished that
sentence he was off, not giving either of them time to protest again, knowing
that the rain and the darkness would hide him from Arskane within a few feet
and that Lura would be on guard until his return.
Fors slipped and
stumbled, splashing through small pools, following the route he had memorized
as they came. The rain was slacking, it stopped entirely as he reached the top
of a pinnacle of rock and looked out again over the old airport. He could
distinguish the bombed section and the building where they had found the maps.
But he was more interested in what was directly below.
There was no
fire—although his mind kept insisting that there should be one, for it was
plain that he was spying upon a council. The circle of hunched figures born an
uncanny and, to him, unwholesome resemblance to the meetings of the elders in
the Eyrie. The Things were squatting so that their bodies were only
blotches—for that he was glad. Somehow he had no desire to see them more
clearly. But one pranced and droned in the center of that circle, and the
sounds it uttered were what had drawn Fors there.
He could distinguish
guttural sounds which must be words, but they had no meaning for him. Arskane's
tongue and his own had once had a common base and it had not been difficult to
learn each other's speech. But this growling did not sound as if it were shaped
by either lips or brain which were human.
What the leader urged he
could not know, but what they might do as a result of that urging was
important. The Beast Things were growing bolder with the years. At first they
had never ventured beyond the edges of the cities. But now they could follow a
trail beyond the ruins and perhaps they were sending scouts into the open
country. They were a menace to the remaining humans—
The leader ended his,
her, or its speech abruptly. Now its too thin body turned and it pointed to the
wasteland where Fors crouched, almost as if it had sighted the hidden watcher.
The gesture was answered by a growl from its companions. One or two got to
their feet and padded to the edge of the Blow-Up ground where their heads sank
as they sniffed warily at the polluted soil. But it did not take them long to
make up their minds. For they were gathering up their bundles of darts and
forming into a sort of crude marching line.
Fors stayed just long
enough to be sure that they were indeed coming, that whatever taboo had held
them back no longer operated. Then he fled, skimming lightly at his sure woods'
pace, back to where he had left Lura and Arskane. The Beast Things did not seem
too cheerful about their venture and their starting pace was slow. They walked
as if they expected to find traps under their feet. There was hope that the
pursued could keep ahead of them.
The mountaineer found
Arskane impatient, Lura crouched on an outcrop, her eyes glowing in the dark.
Fors grabbed up the equipment he had discarded as he gasped out his news.
"I have been
thinking," Arskane's slower but deeper voice cut through his report.
"We do not understand the weapons of the Old Ones, those which could make
a desert such as this. Was there only one bomb which fell here, or were there
more? But the heart of such a place would be more dangerous than its lip. If we
head straight across we may be going to that death tradition promises for those
who invade the 'blue' places. But if we circle we may—"
"There is the
matter of time. I tell you trackers run on our heels now."
"Yes, and they
track by scent. There is at hand an answer to that."
Arskane's moccasins
plowed through a pool, sending up spray. Fors understood. The thread of stream
might be their salvation after all. But, since the rain had ceased, the water
was shrinking rapidly in volume, almost as if the rocky soil over which it ran
was a sponge to suck it up.
Fors started ahead, his
night sight picking out the pitfalls and bad footing for both of them.
Sometimes it was only his hand which kept Arskane on his feet. The big man
stumbled stubbornly on, his breath torn out of him in harsh gasps. Fors knew
from the cramping in his own leg muscles what tormented the other. But they
must gain ground—gain it while the pursuers, still suspicious of the Blow-Up
Land, traveled slowly.
Then, long after,
Arskane fell and, although Fors allowed them both a rest, he could not get to
his feet again. His head slumped forward on his chest and Fors saw that he was
either unconscious or asleep, his mouth twisted with pain. But what was worse
were the seeping stains on the bandage which still bound the wounded shoulder.
Fors pressed the palms
of his hands against his burning eyes. He tried to think back—was it only last
night they had slept in the city tower? It seemed a week behind them. They
could not keep on at this rate, that was certain. Now that he relaxed against a
sandy bank he was afraid he could not make the effort to get up again. He must
sleep. And there was the matter of food also. How large was this Blow-Up
desert? What if they must go on and on across it—maybe for days?
But they would be dead
before days passed. Would it be better to choose a likely place now and make a
last stand against the Beast Things? He dug his eyes again. He dared not sleep
now. Then he remembered Lura.
She lay flat on a ridge
a little above them, licking one paw, pausing now and then to prick her ears
and listen. Lura would nap too, but in her own fashion, and nothing could come
to attack while she watched. His head fell back against Arskane's limp arm and
he slept.
The glare of sun
reflected from the grease-slick surface of the bare rocks made Fors' eyes ache.
It was hard to keep plodding steadily along when raw hunger gnawed at one's
middle. But they had seen no game in this weird waste. And at the very worst he
was not suffering as Arskane was. The southerner mumbled unintelligibly, his
eyes were glazed, and it was necessary to lead him by the hand as if he were a
tired child. The red stain on his bandaged shoulder was crusted and dried—at
least he no longer lost blood he could ill afford to spare.
Where was the end of the
Blow-Up country? If they had not traveled in circles they must have covered
miles of its knife-edged valleys and rocky plateaus. And yet, still facing them
at the top of each rise, was only more and more of the sick earth.
"Water—"
Arskane's swollen tongue pushed across cracked lips.
All the abundance of
yesterday's flood had vanished, absorbed in the soil as if it had never
existed. Fors steadied the big man against a rock and reached for his canteen.
He did it slowly, trying to keep his hand from shaking. Not one precious drop
must be spilled!
It was Arskane who did
that. His eyes suddenly focused on the canteen and he grabbed for it. Water
splashed over his hand and gathered in a depression of the stone. Fors looked
at it longingly, but he still dared not swallow the fluid which had touched the
tainted land here.
He allowed Arskane two
swallows and then took the canteen away by force. Luckily the big man's
strength had ebbed so that he could control him. As Fors fastened the canteen
onto his belt he glanced at the ground. What he saw there kept him still and
staring.
From out of the shadow
cast by a rock something was moving toward the spilled water. It was dark
green, mottled with reddish-yellow patches, and man's age-long distrust of a
reptile almost made him send his boot crashing down on it. But in time he saw
that it was not a snake that writhed across the ground, it was the long fleshy
stem of a plant. Its flattened end wavered through the air and fell upon the
water drops, arching over the moisture. Now the rest of the thing moved out to
drink and Fors saw the three stiff leaves encircling a tall middle spike which
bore a red bulb. The plant drank and the suckered stem lifted to curl back
against the leaves as the whole fantastic growth withdrew into the shade,
leaving the watcher to wonder if thirst and hunger had played tricks with his
eyes. Only on the stone was a damp mark covering the hollow where the water had
been.
So there was life
here—even if it were an alien life. Somehow Fors was heartened by that glimpse
of the plant. It was true that he was used to vegetation which remained rooted.
But in a slice of land as strange as this men might well stay in place while
the plants walked abroad. He laughed at that—it seemed a very witty and
enlightening thought and he repeated it proudly to Arskane as they moved on.
But the southerner answered only with a mumble.
The journey went on with
the quality of a nightmare. Fors managed to keep going, pulling Arskane to his
feet again and again, heading on to landmarks he established ahead. It was
easier to keep moving if one picked out a rock or one of the slippery earth
dunes and held to it as a guide. Then, when that point was achieved, there was
always another ahead to fix on in the same manner.
He was sometimes aware
of movement in the shadows which lay blue-black under rocks and ledges. Whether
colonies of the water plants lurked there or other inhabitants of this hell who
spied upon travelers, he neither knew nor cared. All that mattered was to keep
going and hope that sometime when they topped one of the ridges they would
sight the healthy green of their own world.
Now and then Lura came
into sight, her once smooth fur rough and matted, her flanks shrunken and thin.
Sometimes she would pad beside them for a few feet and then melt away on her
own road, watchful and ready. If anything had found their back trail and was
following it and them, it had not yet come within striking distance.
It was becoming almost
impossible to keep Arskane going. Twice he would have fallen heavily full
length if Fors had not steadied him, and the second time the collapse bore the
mountaineer to his knees. It was then that he was reckless with the water,
hoping to spur his companion on. And he did get the southerner to his feet. But
now the canteen was empty.
They were struggling
through a maze of knife-narrow ravines. But these led in the general direction
they had chosen and they followed them. Fors was bending almost double under
Arskane's weight when he caught a glimpse of something which brought hope and
life back into him in one great surge. Only it was almost twilight and his eyes
might have played him a trick—
No, he had been right!
Those were tree tops ahead and never had the sight of branches against an
evening sky seemed so beautiful! Fors pulled Arskane's arm about his shoulders,
dropped his bow, quiver and the Star pouch, and made that last dash.
After what seemed like
days, weeks, later he lay face down in soft and natural earth, the good smell
of leaf mold dank in his nostrils. And he heard the swish of rising wind
through leaves which were true and green and clean. At last he raised his head.
Arskane sprawled beyond. He had turned over on his back and his eyes were
closed, but he was asleep. Fors sighed.
He must go back and
recover the bow and the pouch before night closed in. But the struggle of
getting to his feet made him grit his teeth. Odd—for the first time he noticed
Lura was nowhere about. Hunting—maybe—But he must get that pouch! It was all
the proof remaining that he had succeeded.
His feet dragged and his
head was dizzy and queer. But he could keep to the line of footprints they had
made and it was an easy guide back. He wavered on.
The walls of the first
gully closed about him. When he glanced back he could see the trees but not
where Arskane lay. It was growing darker—he must hurry.
A splitting pain broke
in his head. He knew that he was falling and tried to throw out his hands to
break that fall. But he only dimly felt the shock when he hit the ground.
Instead he whirled out into a blackness which was complete.
First he was conscious
of his body being jerked roughly, roughly enough to send pain shooting through
it to the bursting agony in his head. Then he came out of the blackness, trying
weakly to hold his thoughts together. The end to that fight came when he fell
again, struck painfully against solid rock and rolled. A kick in the ribs
brought him to a racking stop. He must have been carried and thrown down. And
the sickening stench in his nostrils told him by whom. He lay limply, not
daring to open his eyes. As long as they deemed him senseless he might be safe
for a while.
He was bound, his wrists
behind the small of his back, his ankles together. Already his hands were numb
and the bonds had cut his flesh. He could only listen and try to guess at what
his captors were doing. They appeared to be settling down. He heard the grunt
one gave, the scratching of nails across tough hide. Then, through rank body
smell, the caught the scent of smoke and dared to peek beneath half-open lids.
Yes, they had kindled a
fire, a fire which they were feeding with handfuls of a coarse grass they
pulled up from where it grew along the sides of the valley. One came into the
full light of the flames and flung down an armload of the water plants, still
alive enough to attempt to writhe away from the heat.
But these were speedily
seized upon and the red bulbs at their centers squeezed between yellowed fangs
with snorts of satisfaction. Sucked dry, the plants were tossed on the fire.
Fors swallowed with a bruised throat—his turn next?
But one of the Beast
Things turned with inhuman swiftness and sprang to the wall behind it,
clutching up something which wriggled and squeaked shrilly. It came back
holding a squirming captive in each paw and batted the small bodies against a
convenient rock until they were limp and still. The hunter's success aroused the
envy of its fellows and they all pawed among the rocks of the valley, a few
successfully.
Fors heard swift
movement in the loose rocks somewhere behind him, as if small, agile things
were speeding away to safety. The slowest of the hunters had returned to the
fire grumbling and empty-handed. When the catch was laid out on the stone Fors
saw it clearly for the first time—lizards! They resembled those he had seen all
his life hiding among rocky places—and yet there was something odd about the
shape of the heads—But before he could guess what it was the bodies had been
slung over the flames to broil.
There were four Beast
Things busy there. Either the whole clan had not after all ventured into the
Blow-Up or else the party had split. But these four were bad enough. For the
first time he was able to see them clearly.
They were probably no
taller than he but their emaciated bodies perched on stick legs made them seem
to top him. The grayish skin which was stretched tight over their sharp bones
was deep grained, almost scaly, and their bodies were bare save for strips of
filthy tattered stuff worn about their loins. But their faces—!
Fors forced himself to
study, to study and file in memory what he saw. He tried to view those masks of
horror with detachment. In general outline they were remotely human. But the
eyes deep set in bone-rimmed pits, the elongated jaws above which the nose was
only two slits—jaws equipped with a hunting beast's fangs—sharp fangs never
fully covered by thin vestiges of lips—those were not human. They were—he
recoiled from the picture formed in his mind—they were rats! Or had once been
rats.
Fors shivered and could
not control the trembling of his aching body. Then he tensed. Something was
climbing down the slope behind him, not with the light patter of the lizards
but with the assured tread of one who knows he has nothing to fear and is
coming to meet friends. A moment later Fors felt a jar, then soft fur rolled
against him. The steps went on.
Lura lay beside him now,
her eyes wild with helpless rage, thongs about her paws, a loop holding her
jaws tight together. Her tail beat across him. But when her eyes met Fors' she
relaxed slightly. He could not move yet—
A fifth and sixth Beast
Thing joined the others by the fire and were now demanding their share of the
food. They were greeted with jeers until one growled some order and the meat
was grudgingly shared. They ate in silence and when the leader was done it
wiped its clawed fingers perfunctorily across its thighs before turning to
examine some objects beside it.
Fors recognized his bow.
The leader twanged the string curiously, hitting its thumb. With a savage growl
it snapped the shaft between its fists and threw the broken weapon into the
fire. The quiver followed, but the Beast Things appreciated the worth of the
steel arrowheads enough to break them off and put them aside.
When the creature took
up the last piece of plunder—the Star pouch—Fors bit deep into his underlip.
The precious contents were dumped out and went piece by piece into the flames.
Map, journal, everything, except the small figures from the museum which seemed
to fascinate the Beast Thing leader.
Having so examined the
spoil the creature came over to the captives. Fors lay limp, willing each
muscle to relax. Again a set of clawed toes, planted with breath-taking force
in his short ribs, rolled him away from Lura and out into the full light of the
fire. He struggled to keep under control his outrage and nausea as foul paws
stripped from him every rag and fumbled over his body. What would come next, a
knife, a blow strong enough to cave in his aching head? But strangely he was
left while Lura underwent the same sort of inspection.
Then the claws twisted a
hold in the thong which bound his wrists and he was pulled back to his former
position, his back raked raw by the gravel. Lura was writhing violently. She
had not relished her taste of the same treatment. Now she was tight against
him, her thonged jaws pushed into his shoulder.
After a while Fors
slept. When he roused again it was dim and gray with the false dawn. One of his
captors hunched by the fire nodding, now and then feeding the flames. The rest
lay curled in sodden sleep.
But Fors' mind was alert
now. And he heard again very clearly the faint sounds made by the lizards passing
among the rocks. Why should they venture back into a danger zone, he wondered.
And then he saw what ringed the walls of the valley.
Terraces, hundreds of
them, some only a few inches, some of them several feet, wide, made a
continuous stairway up the walls of the gulch. Each had been laboriously built
up artificially, each was walled with pebbles and small stones. And on these
tiny fields grew the grass stuff with which his captors fed their fire. They
had stripped half the valley already. Even as he noticed the terraces for the
first time the fire tender pulled an armload from its roots, denuding two more
of the small fields.
Lizards and terraces—did
the lizards make them? And those black holes showing at intervals along the
topmost rim of the valley—what were they? He was answered by the sight of a
scaled head—a sort of crest rising from its brow—which appeared in one as jewel
bright eyes inspected the valley and the invaders.
Fors, now knowing what
to look for, glanced around the rim of the valley. Heads! Heads popping in and
out of the cave holes, appearing and disappearing around stones and over the
edges of the higher terraces. Always they moved almost silently, so close to
the rock in coloring and outline that only one who suspected them might even
guess where and what they were.
If last night the
lizards, surprised by a superior force, had fled, now they were back—with
reinforcements. But at the best they stood only twenty inches high against the
iron strength and greater bulk of the Beast Things who could crack their spines
between thumb and forefinger. Why, an army would go down under the stamping
feet of the enemy. But the lizards did not seem to be overawed by the odds
against them.
Scouts advanced down the
sides of the valley. From time to time Fors sighted slender shapes shooting
from one piece of cover to another, always down toward the foe. Then he saw
something else and could hardly believe his eyes. A party of lizards was
issuing boldly out of one of the cave holes on the opposite side of the cut.
They made no noise but neither did they make any effort to conceal their march.
Instead they pattered down to the fields which the Beast Things had not yet
torn up.
They walked on their
hind legs in a curiously humanlike stance and they each carried something in
their shorter front paws. Down into their tiny meadows they paraded and set to
work. Fors stared—they were reaping the grass, shearing off the blades and
bundling them into shocks. And they worked without a single glance at what lay
below, as if going about their business in the usual way.
Fors wanted to get up
and shout a warning to those busy workers—for them to get away before the
brutes by the fire sighted them. On the other hand, he was aware that an army,
grim and intent upon some purpose, had gathered silently at the slope. Then he
caught some glimmering of their plan and his head jerked up to see the better.
Bait! The lizards
reaping up there were to be bait! Why, that was hard to believe. These—these
little scaled creatures knew perfectly well what they were about—they were the
heroes of the clan who had probably volunteered to man those terraces as bait.
But even yet he did not realize to what extent the lizard folk would go to save
their land.
The fire watcher yawned,
belched, and stretched. Then it caught sight of the activity above. It grinned,
its stained fangs widely displayed, and, reached over, prodded one of the
sleepers awake. At first the newly aroused one was inclined to resent it, but
when the farmers above were pointed out to it, it rubbed the sleep from its
eyes and proceeded to business.
From the gravel at its
feet it picked out a handful of walnut-sized stones. And both the Beast Things
let these fly with deadly accuracy. Two of the lizards kicked out their lives
in the fields. The resulting shout of triumph from the hunters brought the
whole camp awake.
But surely the lizards
could take to cover quicker than they did! Fors watched with a queer sick
feeling as one after another of the farmers failed to reach the safety of the
cave holes. Then he understood—they had never intended to escape. They were
giving their lives for the purpose of some plan they had made.
He would not watch the
pitiful carnage any longer and he looked at the opposite side of the valley—just
in time to see a small round object shoot out of the side of the hill and fall
close to the camp fire. Another and another rattled down, as if brown
hailstones were falling. Once they landed among the stones and loose gravel it
was almost impossible to detect them. And if one had not rolled across a flat
stone within touching distance he would never had known what they were.
A small ball, fashioned
maybe of clay, was all he saw. But why were the small thorn points sticking out
of its surface all the way around? If it was meant to wound, why shoot it while
the Beast Things were all well away from the spot? Fors still puzzled over that
as the victors came back swinging limp bodies and proud of their killing.
In spite of his
revulsion Fors could not subdue the hunger pangs when the smell of the roasting
meat was heavy on the air. He could only faintly remember his last meal—his
stomach was one vast empty hollow. But neither did he want to attract the
attention of those who were now wolfing down the half-cooked flesh.
One of the Beast Things,
while reaching for another broiled lizard, gave a sudden exclamation and
plucked something from its arm, hurling it away with the force of annoyance. It
had been pricked by one of the lizard balls. But Fors could not see how that
caused the victim any more than momentary discomfort. He watched closely and
witnessed two of the creatures treading upon the thorn-studded globes. One of
them did so when it went for a fresh supply of the water plants. And when it
returned it walked slowly, stopping now and again to shake its narrow head and
once to brush vigorously before its eyes as if to clear some obstruction
hanging there.
They drank from the
dying plants, sucked the last slender lizard bones clean, and got to their
feet. Then they turned their attention to the captives. This was it! Fors
grimaced. He had seen them impale and roast a screaming broken-legged lizard—
The Beast Things circled
around the captives. There was a period of rough humor during which Fors was
both kicked and slapped. But they were apparently not going to kill him now.
Instead the leader stooped to slit the bonds about his ankles, the
mountaineer's own knife in its paw.
That steel never bit
into the hide. One of the brutes in the circle voiced a deep roar and bit at
its own arm. Flecks of white foam showed in the corners of its jaws. It tore
savagely at its own flesh and then started on an unsteady run down the valley.
With grunts of astonishment the others remained where they were, watching their
companion double up with a scream of anguish and fall into the fire.
Poison! Fors knew now
the cleverness of the lizards, the reason for the sacrifice of the gleaners.
The thorn balls were poisoned! And there had to be time for the poison to work.
But—were they all infected?
In the end it was the
leader who lived long enough to almost reach the other end of the valley, its
paws scrabbling on the rock as it tried to drag its tortured body out of that
place of death. But it crashed back, moaned twice, and then was as still as the
rest.
Fors could hear the
patter of lizard feet before he noticed that the hillsides were alive with
them, moving in a red-brown cloud down toward the slain. He licked raw lips.
Could he communicate with them, get them to use that knife lying there to saw
through his bonds? His hands were too numb and so were his feet.
For a long time he
hesitated as the lizards crowded about the dead, their thin whistling echoing
up and down among the rocks. Then he ventured to make a croaking sound which
was all his dry throat and dryer mouth could shape.
His answer was a flash
of movement as those heads snapped around and cold hard eyes regarded him with
detachment. He tried again as Lura kicked for freedom to no purpose. Some of
the lizards drew together, their crested heads bent as they conferred. Then a
party started forward. Fors tried to lift himself. Then sheer horror caught at
his nerves.
In each four-fingered
paw they were carrying something—a branch thick with thorns!
"No! Friend—I am
friend—" Fors gabbled the words wildly. But they were words the lizards
did not recognize and the silent and menacing advance did not falter.
What stopped them was
something else—a hissing from some point on the slope behind the helpless
mountaineer. It was as if the giant grandfather of all snakes coiled there,
resentful of the disturbance. To the lizards the hissing had meaning. They
halted almost in midstep, their threadlike tongues flickering in and out, their
ragged top crests stiff and upright, pulsing dark red.
Stones rattled down the
hill. Fors tried desperately to turn his head to see what or who was coming.
Lura's struggles increased in violence and he wondered if he could roll to that
knife which lay just out of reach. Though his hands were dead and numb he might
be able to saw through the cat's bonds.
One of the lizards drew
ahead of the rest of the pack, but its thorn spear was still at
"ready." The scaled throat swelled and an answering hiss sounded.
That was replied to promptly and afterward came three words which set the
captive's heart to pounding.
"Can you
move?"
"No. And watch out!
Poison thorns set in balls—on the ground—"
"I know." The
answer was calm. "Keep still—"
Arskane hissed for the
third time. The lizards drew back, leaving their leader alone, alert and on
guard. Then Arskane was there, stooping to slash the bonds of both captives.
Fors tried to lever himself up with dead arms which refused to obey him.
"Can—not—make—it—"
But Arskane was rubbing
at the puffed and swollen ankles and the torture of reviving circulation was
almost more than the mountaineer could bear without screaming. It seemed only a
second before Arskane hauled him to his feet and pushed him toward the back
slope.
"Get up
there—"
That order had an
urgency which made Fors climb in spite of himself, Lura dragging up ahead. He
dared not waste the time to look back, he could only put all his strength to
the task of getting up to the top.
If the way had been
steeper he might never have made it. And as it was Arskane caught up to him and
pulled him along the last few steps. From the southerner's arm hung Fors' knife
belt with knife and sword both in their sheaths—he had waited to retrieve that.
Neither of them lost
time in talk, Fors glad to reel along with the larger man's support. After a
while he knew that there was real grass under his feet and then he slumped down
where water sprayed his parched skin.
He did not know how much
time passed before he roused enough to know that Arskane was trying to pour
some broth down his throat. He swallowed eagerly until his eyes closed against
his will and he drifted off again.
"How did you get us
out?" Fors lay at ease, hours later. Under him a mat of ferns and leaves
seemed almost unbelievably soft and Arskane hunched on the other side of the
fire fashioning a shaft for a short hunting spear.
"It was easy
enough—with the Beast Things gone. I will tell you this with a straight and
truthful tongue, brother." The southerner's teeth flashed white and amused
in his dark face. "Had those yet breathed, then this venture might well
have ended otherwise.
"When I awoke in
this wood and found you gone I at first thought that you were hunting—for food
or water or both. But I was not happy in my mind—not happy at all. I ate—here
are rabbits, fat and foolish and without fear. And yonder there is the brook.
So did my unease grow, for with food and drink so near I knew that you would
not have gone from me and remained so long a time. So I went back along our
trail—"
Fors studied the hands
lumped on his chest, the hands which were still purplish and blue and which
hurt with a nagging pain. What would have happened if Arskane had not gone
back?
"That trail was
very easy to follow. And along it I found the place where the Beast Things had
lain in hiding to strike you down. They did nothing to cover their tracks. It
is in my mind that they fear very little and see small need for caution. So
came I at last to the valley of the lizards—"
"But how did you
stop their attack?"
Arskane was examining a
pile of stones he had culled out of the brook, weighing them in his hands and
separating them into two piles. The smoothed spear shaft he had set aside.
"The lizard folk I
have seen before. In my own land—or the land we held before the shaking of the
mountains drove us forth—there was such a colony. They marched across the
desert from the west one year and made a settlement in a gulch a half day's
journey from the village of my people. We were curious about them and often
watched them from a distance. At last we even traded—giving them bits of metal
in return for blue stones they grubbed out of the earth—our women having a
liking for necklaces. I do not know what I said back there—I think it was only
that my imitation of their speech surprised them so that they let us go.
"But it was well we
got out of that place with all speed. The poison ball is their greatest weapon.
I have seen them use it against coyote and snake. They wish only to be left
alone."
"But—but they were
almost—almost human—" Fors told of the gleaners and the sacrifice they had
made for their clan.
Arskane laid out three
stones of equal size and girth. "Can we then deny that they have a right
to their valley? Could we show equal courage, I wonder?" He became busy
with some thin strips of rabbit skin, weaving them into a net around each rock.
Fors watched him, puzzled.
Just overhead there was
a break in the mass of tree tops and as he lay back flat he could see blue sky
and part of a drifting white cloud. But this morning there was a chill tooth to
the wind—summer was going. He must get back to the Eyrie soon—
Then he remembered what
had happened to the Star pouch and his puffy fingers dug into the stuff he lay
upon. There was no use in returning to the mountain hold now. When the Beast
Things had destroyed his proof they had finished his chance of buying his way
back into the clan. He had nothing left except what Arskane had brought out of
the lizard valley for him—his knife and sword.
"Good!"
Fors was too sunk to
turn his head and see what had brought that note of satisfaction into his
companion's voice. Arskane did not have anything to worry about. He would go
south and find his tribe, take his place among them again—
"Now we shall have
food for the pot, brother—"
Fors frowned but he did
not look around. The southerner stood there tall and straight and around his
head he whirled a strange contraption that, to the mountaineer, seemed of no
use at all. The three stones in their rabbit skin nets had been fastened to
thongs of hide and the three thongs tied together with one central knot. This
knot Arskane gripped between his fingers as he sent the stones skimming in a
circle. Having tested it he laughed at Fors' bewilderment.
"We shall be moving
south, brother, and in the level fields this will do very well, as I shall show
you. Ha, and here now is dinner—"
Lura walked up to the
fire carrying a young pig. She dropped her burden and with an almost human sigh
plumped down beside the kill to watch Arskane butcher it skillfully.
Fors ate roasted pork
and began to wonder if his lot was as hopeless as he had thought it to be. The
Beast Things were dead. He might lie up until his full strength returned and
then make a second visit to the city. Or if he did not dally there would still
be time to reach the Eyrie and lead an expedition before winter closed in. He
licked rich grease from his fingers and planned. Arskane sang the tune of
mournful notes Fors had heard him hum at the fishing lake. Lura purred and
washed her paws. It was all very peaceful.
"There faces us
now," Arskane said suddenly, "the problem of clothes for you—"
"It faces me,"
Fors corrected him sleepily. "Unfortunately my wardrobe was left to amaze
the lizards. And, strangely enough, I do not find in me any desire to reclaim
it from them—"
Arskane tightened the
knots on the ball and cord weapon. "There you may be wrong, my friend. A
visit to the lizard valley—keeping a safe distance, of course, might serve us
very well."
Fors sat up.
"How?"
"Five of the Beast
Things died there. But how many followed us into the Blow-Up land?"
Fors tried to remember
the size of the party he had spied upon. How large had it been? He could not
truthfully say now, but he did have a disconcerting suspicion that there had
been more than five in it. If that were so—why were they lingering here so
close to the edge of the Blow-Up? His feet were good enough to enable him to
put some miles between himself and the desolate waste which now lay only a half
mile beyond them.
"Do you think that
the lizards may have added to their bag?"
Arskane shrugged.
"Now that they have been warned, perhaps they have. But we need the spoil
they took. Your bow is gone, but those arrowheads would be useful—"
"Useful to the
extent of daring the thorns?"
"Maybe." And
Arskane fell to cross questioning him as to how much of his equipment the Beast
Things had destroyed.
"Everything that is
of value to me!" Fors' old feeling of helpless inadequacy closed in upon
him. "They ripped the Star pouch to shreds and burned my notes and
map—"
"There are the
arrowheads," persisted Arskane. "Those were not burned."
Since he seemed to mean
it when he urged such an expedition Fors began to believe that the southerner
had some purpose of his own in mind. He himself saw no reason to return to the
lizard valley. And he was still protesting within him when they came to the top
of the rise down which Arskane had gone to the rescue. Lura had refused to
accompany them any further than the edge of the Blow-Up and they had left her
there pacing back and forth, her flattened ears and moving tail emphatic
arguments against such foolishness.
They stood looking down
at a wild scene which almost turned Fors' stomach. He gulped and balled his
puffed fingers into fists, so that the pain took his attention. The lizards
might live upon the grass of the terraces but it appeared that they were also
meat eaters and they were now making sure of the supply chance had brought
them.
Two of the Beast Things
were already but skeletons and the valley's inhabitants were fast at work on
the others, a line of laden porters tramping up to the cave entrances while
their fellows below swung tiny knives with the same skill with which the
martyrs had earlier wielded their sickles.
"Look there—to the
left of that rock—" Although Arskane's touch made pain shoot along the
length of his arm Fors obediently looked.
There was a pile of
stuff there. Fors identified the remnants of his leggings and a belt such as
was worn by the Beast Things. But a glint of color just beyond the haphazard
pile of loot was more interesting. It stood in a tiny hollow of the wall—three
blue rods—just about a finger high—familiar—
Fors' puzzlement
vanished. Those rods—they were the little figures he had brought from the
museum in the Star pouch. Now they were set up—and before the feet of each was
a pile of offerings!
They were gods. And with
a sudden shock of illumination he knew why the lizard folk did them honor.
"Arskane! Those
figures—there in that hollow—they are the ones I brought from the museum—and
they are making offerings to them—worshiping them!"
The southerner rubbed
his hand down his jaw in the familiar gesture which signified puzzlement. Then
he fumbled in the traveling pouch at his own belt and brought out a fourth
figure.
"They do it, don't
you see—because of this!" Fors indicated the small head of the carving.
Although the figure was human the head was that of a hook-billed bird of prey.
"One of those
figures down there has the head of a lizard—or at least it looks like a
lizard!"
"So. And thus—yes—I
can see it!"
Arskane started down the
slope and from his lips came the hissing cry he had used before. There was a
flicker of movement. Fors blinked. The workers were gone, had melted into the
cover of the rocks leaving the floor of the valley deserted.
The southerner waited,
with a hunter's patience, one minute, two, before he hissed again. He was
holding out between two fingers the bird-headed statue and its blue glaze was
sharp and clear. Perhaps it was that which drew the lizard leaders from their
cover.
They came warily,
gliding around stones so that only the most intent watcher could sight them.
And, Fors also saw with apprehension, they had their thorn spears with them.
But Arskane was well above the line where those balls of clay had fallen. And
now he put the blue figure down on the ground and retreated with long-legged
strides uphill.
It was the statue which
drew them. Three came together, flitting along with their peculiar scuttle.
When they were within touching distance of the figure they stopped, their heads
darting out at strange angles, as if to assure themselves that this was no bait
for a trap.
As one of them laid a
paw upon the offering, Arskane moved, not toward them but in the direction of
the pile of loot. He went cautiously, examining the ground by inches, paying no
outward attention to the lizards. They stood frozen where they were, only their
eyes following him.
Deliberately and methodically
the southerner turned over what lay there. When he came back he carried Fors'
boots and what was left of the mountaineer's clothing, passing the lizards as
if they were not there. After he had passed by the leader grabbed the blue
figure and darted away around a rock, his two fellows almost treading on his
tail. Arskane came up slope with the same unhurried pace but there were beads
of moisture across his forehead and cheeks.
Fors sat down and worked
the boots over his sore feet. When he got up he looked once more into the
valley. The workers were still skulking in their holes but there were now four
instead of three blue figures standing in the rock shrine.
The next day they
started south, leaving the strange Blow-Up land well behind them. And the
second day they were deep in open fields where patches of self-sown grain
rippled ripely under the sun.
Fors paused, half over a
stone wall, to listen. The sound he had caught was too faint and low pitched
for thunder, and it kept within the boundaries of a well-defined rhythm.
"Wait!"
As Arskane stopped Fors
realized where he had heard that before—it was the voice of a signal drum. And
when he said so Arskane dropped down beside the stones, putting his ear to the
ground. But the message ended too soon. The southerner got to his feet again,
frowning.
"What—?"
ventured Fors.
"That was the
recall. Yes, you were right and it was a talking drum of my people and what it
said is all bad. Evil comes now upon them and they must call back all spears to
stand in defense of the clan—"
Arskane hesitated and
Fors plunged.
"I am not a
spearman, or now even a bowman. But still I wear a sword at my belt and I
possess some skill in handling it. Shall we go?"
"How far?" he
added another question some breathless minutes later. Arskane had taken him at
his word and the steady lope which the southerner had set as their pace was
easier matched by Lura's four feet than Fors' two.
"I can only guess.
That drum was fashioned to summon across the desert country. Here it may be
farther from us than it sounds."
Twice more that day they
heard the summons rumble across the distant hills. It would continue to sound
at intervals, Arskane said, until all the roving scouts returned. That night
the two sheltered in a grove of trees, but they did not light a fire. And
before daylight they were on the trail once more.
Fors had not lost his sense
of direction but this was new country, unknown to him from any account of the
Star Men. The trip across the Blow-Up land had taken them so far off the
territory on any map he had ever seen that he was entirely lost. He began to
wonder privately if he could have returned to the Eyrie as he had so blithely
planned, or made that trip without retracing his way through the city. This
land was wide and the known trails very, very few.
On the third day they
came to the river, the same one, Fors believed, he had crossed before. It was
swollen with rain and they spent the better part of the day making a raft on
which to cross. The current tore them off their course for several miles before
they could make the leap ashore on the opposite side.
At sunset they heard the
drum again and this time the throbbing was close to thunder. Arskane seemed to
relax, he had had his proof that they were heading in the right direction. But
as he listened to the continued roll, his hand went to the hilt of his knife.
"Danger!" He was
reading the words out of the beat.
"Danger—death—walks—danger—death—in—the—night—"
"It says
that?"
He nodded. "The
drum talk. But never before have I heard it speak those words. I tell you,
brother, this is no common danger which sets our drums to such warnings.
Listen!"
Arskane's upheld hand
was not needed for Fors had caught the other sound before his companion had
spoken. That light tap-tap was an answer, it was less carrying than the clan
signal, but it was clear enough.
And again Arskane ready
the message: "Uran here—coming—That is Uran of the Swift Arm, the leader
of our scouts. He ventured west as I came north at the faring forth. And—"
Once more the lighter
sound of a scout's drum interrupted him.
"Balakan comes,
Balakan comes. Now," Arskane moistened his lips, "there remains only
Noraton who has not replied. Noraton—and I who cannot!"
But, though they waited
tensely for long minutes, there was no other reply. Instead, after the period
of silence, the clan signal broke again, to roll across the open fields,
continuing so at intervals through the night.
They paused only to eat
at dawn, keeping to the steady trot. But now the drum was silent and Fors
thought that quiet ominous. He did not ask questions. Arskane's scowl was now
permanent and he pressed on almost as if he had forgotten those who ran with
him.
For smoother footing
they took to one of the Old Ones' roads which went in the right direction and
when it turned again moved into a game trail, splashing through a brook Lura
took with a single bound. Deer flashed white tails and were gone. And now Fors
saw something else. Black shapes wheeled across the sky. As he watched one
broke away and drifted to earth. He caught at Arskane's swinging arm.
"The death
birds!" He dragged the southerner to a stop. Where the death birds fed
there was always trouble.
What they found was a
hollow pocket in the field and what lay there on stained and trampled ground
was not a pretty sight. Arskane went down on one knee by the limp body while
Lura snarled and sprang at the foul birds that protested such interruption with
loud screeching cries.
"Dead—a spear
through him!"
"How long?"
asked Fors.
"Maybe only this
morning. Do you know this marking?" Arskane did some grisly work to hold
up a broken shaft ending in a smeared leaf-shaped point.
"Plainsman made.
And it is part of one of their lances, not a spear. But who—"
Arskane swabbed off the
disfigured face of the dead with a handful of grass.
"Noraton!" The
name was bitten off as his teeth snapped together. The other scout, the one who
had not answered the summons.
Arskane wiped his hands,
rubbing savagely as if he did not want to think of what they had touched. His
face was stone hard.
"When the tribe
sends forth scouts, those scouts are sworn to certain things. To none were we
to show an unsheathed sword unless they first attacked us. We would come in
peace if we may. Noraton was a wise man and of cool, even temper. This was none
of his provoking—"
"Your people are
moving north to settle," mused Fors slowly. "The Plainspeople are
proud-hearted and high of temper. They may see in your coming a threat to their
way of life—they are much bound by custom and old ways—"
"So they would take
to the sword to settle differences? Well, if that is as they wish—so be
it!" Arskane straightened out the body.
Fors drew his sword,
sawing through the turf. Together they worked in silence until they had ready a
grave. And afterward, above that lonely resting place they piled up a mound to
protect the sleeper. On its summit Arskane thrust deep the long knife Noraton
had worn and the shadow of its cross hilt lay straight along the turned earth.
Now they pushed on
through a haunted world. Death had struck Noraton down and that same death
might now stand between them and the tribe. They held to cover, sacrificing
speed once more to caution. Arskane took out his weapon of balls and thong and
carried it ready for action.
The end of their journey
came as they skirted a small ruin and saw before them a wide stretch of open
field. To use the cover afforded only at its far edge would mean a wide detour.
Arskane chose to strike boldly across. Since the haste was his Fors accepted that
decision, but he was glad that Lura scouted ahead.
Here the grass and wild
grain was waist-high and a man could not run. It would entangle his feet and
bring him down. Fors thought of snakes just as Arskane sprawled on his face,
one foot in a hidden rabbit burrow. He sat up quickly, his mouth working a
little as he rubbed his ankle.
Fors' throat went tight.
A clot of horsemen were pounding at them out of the shadow of the ruins, riding
at a wild gallop, lance points forging a flashing wall before them.
The mountaineer flung
himself on Arskane and they rolled just in time to escape being spitted by
those iron tips, avoiding hoofs by so thin a hair of safety that Fors could
hardly believe his skin intact. Arskane struggled out of his grasp as Fors got
up, sword in hand. Just the proper weapon, he thought bleakly, with which to
face armed horsemen.
Arskane whirled the ball
weapon around his head and turned to meet the enemy. The force of their charge
had taken them on too far to rein back quickly. But they had played this game
before. They scattered out, fanning in a circle which would ring in their
victims.
As they rode they
laughed and made derisive gestures. That decided Fors. Short sword or no, he
would take at least one of them down with him when the end came. The circling
riders speeded their pace around and around, making their captives turn to face
them at a dizzy rate.
But Lura spoiled that
well-practiced maneuver. She reared out of the grass and wiped a paw full of
raking claws down the smooth flank of a horse. With a terrible scream of fright
and pain the animal reared and fought against the control of its rider. The
horse won and raced out and away taking its rider with it.
Only—the rest were
warned now and when Lura sprang again she not only missed but suffered the bite
of an expertly aimed lance. However, her attacks gave Arskane the chance he had
been waiting for. His ball weapon sang through the air and with uncanny
precision wrapped itself about the throat of one of the lancers. He thudded limply
into the tall grass.
Two—out of eight! And
they could not run—even with the circle broken. Such a move would lead only to
Noraton's death with cold steel breaking from back to breast. The unharmed six
had stopped laughing. Fors could guess what was being planned now. They would
ride down the enemy, making very certain they should not escape.
Arskane balanced his
long knife on the palm of his hand. The riders made a line, knee to knee. Fors
jerked a hand to the left and the southerner's teeth showed in a mirthless
smile. He pointed a finger right. They stood and waited. The charge came and
they dared to watch a whole second before they moved.
Fors flung himself to
the left and went down on one knee. He slashed up at the legs of the mount
which came at him, slashing viciously with all his strength. Then he was up
again with one hand twisted in the legging of the rider who stabbed down at
him. He caught the blow on his sword and managed to hold on to the blade
although his fingers went numb with the shock.
The rider catapulted
into his arms and fingers dug into his cheeks just below his eye sockets. There
were tricks for close fighting, tricks which Langdon had passed to his son.
Fors got on top and stayed there—or at least he did for a few victorious
moments until he glimpsed a shadow sweeping in from the left. He dodged, but
not quickly enough, and the blow sent him rolling free from the body of his
opponent. He blinked painfully at the sky and was levering himself up on his
elbows when a circle of hide rope dropped about his shoulders snapping his arms
tight to his body.
So he sat dumbly in the
grass. When he moved his ringing head too suddenly the world danced around in a
sickening way.
"—this time no
mistake, Vocar. We have taken two of the swine—the High Chief will be
pleased—"
Fors picked the words
out of the air. The slurring drawl of the Plainsmen's speech was strange but he
had no difficulty in understanding it. He raised his head cautiously and looked
around.
"—ham-strung White
Bird! May night devils claw him into bits and hold high feast with him!"
A man came tramping away
from a floundering horse. He walked straight to Fors and slapped him across the
face with a methodical force and a very evident desire to hurt. Fors stared up
at him and spat blood from torn lips. The fellow had a face easy to
remember—that crooked scar across the chin was a brand not to be forgotten. And
if fortune was at all good they would have a future reckoning for those blows.
"Loose my
hands," Fors said, glad that his voice came out so steady and even.
"Loose my hands, tall hero, and worse than night devils shall have your
bones to pick!"
Another slap answered
that, but before a second could be struck his assailant's wrist was caught and
held.
"Tend your hose,
Sati. This man was defending himself as best he knew. We are not Beast Things
from the ruins to amuse ourselves with the tormenting of prisoners."
Fors forced his aching
head up another inch so that he could see the speaker. The Plainsman was
tall—he must almost top Arskane's height—but he was slighter and the hair tied
back for riding was a warm chestnut brown. He was no green youth on his first
war trail but a seasoned warrior. Lines of good humor bracketed his well-cut
mouth.
"The other one is
now awake, Vocar."
At that call the war
chief turned his attention from Fors. "Bring him hither. We have a long
trail to follow before sundown."
The floundering horse
was stilled with an expert knife. But Sati arose from that task with the
blackest of scowls for both captives.
Lura! Fors tried to
glance across the grass without betraying interest or concern. The big cat had
disappeared and since his captors did not mention her, surely she had not been
killed. They would have been quick enough to claim her hide as a trophy. With
Lura free and prepared to act there was a chance they might escape even yet. He
held to that hope as they lashed his right hand fast to his own belt and
fastened the left by a punishing loop to the saddle of one of the riders. Not
to Sati's he was glad to note. That warrior had swung onto the horse of the man
Arskane had killed with the ball loops.
And the southerner had
taken other toll too. For there were two bodies lashed to nervous led horses.
After some consultation two of the band went ahead on foot leading the burdened
mounts. Fors' guard was the third in line of march and Vocar with Arskane at
his side came near the end.
Fors looked back before
the jerk at his wrist started him off. There was blood on the southerner's face
and he walked stiffly, but he did not appear to be badly hurt. Where was Lura?
He tried to send out a summoning thought and then closed his mind abruptly.
There had long been
contact between the Eyrie and the Plainspeople. These men might well know of the
big cats and their relationship with man. Best to leave well enough alone. He
had no desire at all to watch Lura thrash out her life pinned to the hard earth
by one of those murderous lances.
The line of march was
westward, Fors noted mechanically, forced to keep a loping run as the horse he
was bound to cantered. The sun was hard and bright in their faces. He studied
the paint marks of ownership dabbed on the smooth hide of the animal beside
him. It was not a sign used by any tribe his people knew. And the speech of
these men was larded with unfamiliar words. Another tribe on the move, maybe
roving far distances. Perhaps, like Arskane's people, they had been driven out
of their own grounds by some disaster of nature and were now seeking a new
territory—or maybe they were only driven by the inborn restlessness of their
kind.
If they were strange to
this country their attitude of enmity against all comers was not so to be
wondered at. Usually it was only the Beast Things who attacked without
declaring formal war—without parley. If only he wore the Star—then he would
have a talking point when he faced their high chief. The Star Men were
known—known in far lands where they had never walked—and none had ever raised
sword against them. Fors knew the bite of his old discontent. He was not a Star
Man—he was nothing, a runaway and a wanderer who did not even dare claim tribe
protection.
The dust pounded up by
the hoofs powdered his face and body. He coughed, unable to shield his eyes or
mouth. The horses went down a bank and splashed through a wide stream. On the
other side they turned into a well-marked trail. A second party of riders
issued out of the brush and shouted questions made the air ring.
Fors was a center of
attention and the newcomers stared at him curiously. As they discussed him with
a frankness he tried to ignore, he held firmly to the rags of his temper.
He was not like the
other one at all, was the gist of most of their comments. Apparently they
already knew of Arskane's people and had little liking for them. But Fors, with
his strange silver hair and lighter skin, was an unknown quantity which
intrigued them.
The combined troops at
last rode on, Fors thankful for the breathing spell he had been granted by the
meeting. Within a half mile they came into their camp. Fors was amazed at the
wide sweep of tent rows. This was no small family clan on the march, but a
whole tribe or nation. He counted clan flags hung before the sub-chieftains'
tent homes as he was led down the wide road which divided the sprawling
settlement into two parts. He had marked down ten and there were countless
other to be seen fluttering back from this main path.
At the sight of the dead
the women of the Plains city set up the shrill ritual wailing, but they made no
move toward the prisoners who had been released from the saddle ties to have
their hands lashed behind them and to be thrust into a small tent within the
shadow of the High Chieftain's own circle.
Fors wriggled over on
his side to face Arskane. Even in that dim light he could see that the
southerner's right eye was almost swollen shut and that a shallow cut on his
neck was closed with a paste of dust and dried blood.
"Do you know this
tribe?" Arskane asked after two croaking attempts to shape the words with
a dust-clogged tongue.
"No. Both the clan
flags and their horse markings are new to me. And some of the words they use I
have never heard before. I think that they have come a long way. The tribes the
Star Men know do not attack without warning—except when they go against the
Beast Things—for always are all men's swords bare to them! This is a
nation on the march—I counted the banners of ten clans and I must have seen
only a small portion of them."
"I would like to
know what use they have for us," Arskane now said dryly. "If they did
not see profit in our capture we would now be awaiting the attention of the
death birds. But why do they want us?"
Fors set himself to
recall all that he had ever heard concerning the ways of the Plainspeople. They
held freedom very high, refusing to be tied to any stretch of land lest it come
to hold them. They did not lie—ever—that was part of their code. But they also
deemed themselves greater than other men, for they had a haughty and abiding
pride. They were inclined to be suspicious of new things and were much bound by
custom—in spite of their talk of freedom. Among them a man's given word was
held unbreakable, he must always hold to a promise no matter what might come.
And anyone who offended against the tribe was solemnly pronounced dead in
council. Thereafter no one could notice him and he could claim neither food nor
lodging—for the tribe he had ceased to exist.
Star Men had lived in
their tents. His own father had taken a chief's daughter to wife. But that was
only because the Star Men possessed something which the tribe reckoned to be
worth having—a knowledge of wide lands.
A wild burst of sound
broke his thoughts, a sound which grew louder, the full-throated chanting of
fighting men on the march.
"With sword and flame before us,
And the lances of clans at our backs,
We ride through plains and forests
Where sweep the tides of war!
Eat, Death Birds, eat!
From a feast we have spread for your tearing—"
A flute carried the
refrain while a small drum beat out the savage "eat, eat." It was a
wild rhythm which made the blood race through the listener's veins. Fors felt
the power of it and it was a heady wine. His own people were a silent lot. The
mountains must have drawn out of them the desire for music, singing was left to
the women who sometimes hummed as they worked. He knew only the council hymn
which had a certain darksome power. The men of the Eyrie never went singing
into battle.
"These fighting men
sing!" Arskane's whisper echoed his own thoughts. "Do they welcome in
such a manner their high chief?"
But if it were the chief
who was being so welcomed he had no present interest in captives. Fors and
Arskane remained imprisoned as the dreary hours passed. When it was fully dark
fires were lighted at regular intervals down the main way and shortly after two
men came in, to release them from the ropes and stand alert while they rubbed
stiff hands. There were bowls of stew plunked down before them. The stuff was
well cooked and they were famished—they gave the food their full attention. But
when he had licked the last drop from his lips Fors bent his tongue in the
Plains language he had learned from his father.
"Ho—good riding to
you, Plainsborn. Now, windrider, by the custom of the shelter fire and the
water bowl, we would have speech with the high chief of this tribe—"
The guard's eyes
widened. It was plain that the last thing he expected was to have the formal
greeting of ceremony from this dirty and ragged prisoner. Recovering, he
laughed and his companion joined jeeringly.
"Soon enough will
you be brought before the High One, forest filth. And when you are that meeting
will give you no pleasure!"
Again their hands were
tied and they were left alone. Fors waited until he judged that their sentry
was fully engaged in conversation with the two visitors. He wriggled close to
Arskane.
"When they fed us
they made a mistake. All Plainspeople have laws of hospitality. Should a
stranger eat meat which has been cooked at their fires and drink water from
their store, then they must hold him inviolate for a day, a night, and another
day. They gave us stew to eat and in it was cooked meat and water. Keep silent
when they lead us out and I shall claim protection under their own laws—"
Arskane's answering
whisper was as faint. "They must believe us to be ignorant of their
customs then—"
"Either that, or
someone within this camp has given us a chance and waits now to see if we have
wit enough to seize it. If that guard repeats my greeting then perhaps such an
unknown will know that we are ready. Plainspeople visit much from tribe to
tribe. There may be one or more here now who knows the Eyrie and would so give
me a fighting chance to save us."
Maybe it was that Fors'
greeting had been passed on. At any rate, not many minutes elapsed before the
men came back into the tent and the captives were pulled to their feet, to be
herded between lines of armed men into the tall hide-walled pavilion which was
the center of the city. Hundreds of deer and wild cattle had died to furnish
the skins for that council room. And within it, packed so tightly that a sword
could not lie comfortably between thigh and thigh, were the sub-chieftains,
chiefs, warriors and wise men of the whole tribe.
Fors and Arskane were
pushed down the open aisle which ran from the doorway to the center. There the
ceremonial fire burned, sending out aromatic smoke as it was fed with bundles
of dried herbs and lengths of cedar wood.
By the fire three men
stood. The one, a long white cloak draped over his fighting garb, was the man
of medicine, he who tended the bodies of the tribe. His companion who wore
black was the Keeper of Records—the rememberer of past customs and law. Between
them was the High Chief.
As the captives came
forward Vocar arose out of the mass of his fellows and saluted the Chief with
both hands to his forehead.
"Captain of Hosts,
Leader of the Tribe of the Wind, Feeder of the Death Birds, these two be those
we took in fair fight when by your orders we scouted to the east. Now we of the
clan of the Raging Bull do give them into your hands that you may do with them
as you wish. I, Vocar, have spoken."
The High Chief
acknowledged that with a brief nod. He was measuring the captives with a keen
eye which missed nothing. Fors stared as boldly back.
He saw a man of early
middle age, slender and wiry, marked with a strand of white hair which ran back
across his head like a plumed crest. Old scars of many battle wounds showed
under the heavy collar of ceremony which extended halfway down his chest. He
was unmistakably a famous warrior.
But to be High Chief of
a tribe he must be more than just a fighting man. He must also have the wit and
ability to rule. Only a strong and equally wise hand could control a turbulent
Plains community.
"You"—the
Chief spoke first to Arskane—"are of those dark ones who now make war in
the south—"
Arskane's one open eye
met the Chief's without blinking.
"My people only go
out upon the battlefield when war is forced upon them. Yesterday I found my
tribesman food for the death birds and through his body there was a Plains
lance—"
But the chief did not
answer that. He had already turned to Fors.
"And you—what tribe
has spawned such as you?"
"I am Fors of the
Puma Clan, of the tribe of the Eyrie in the mountains which smoke."
Because his hands were bound he did not give the salute of a free man to the
commander of many tents. But neither did he hang his head nor show that he
thought himself not the full equal of any in that company.
"Of this Eyrie I
have never heard. And only far-riding scouts have ever seen the mountains which
smoke. If you are not of the blood of the dark ones, why do you run with one of
them?"
"We are battle
comrades, he and I. Together we have fought the Beast Things and together we
crossed the Blow-Up land—"
But at those words all
three of the leaders before him looked incredulous and he of the white robe
laughed, his mockery echoed a moment later by the High Chief, to be taken up by
the whole company until the jeering roar was a thunder in the night.
"Now do we know
that the tongue which lies within your jaws is a crooked one. For in the memory
of men—our fathers, and our fathers' fathers, and their fathers before them, no
men have crossed a Blow-Up land and lived to boast of it. Such territory is
accursed and death comes horribly to those who venture into it. Speak true now,
woodsrunner, or we shall deem you as twisted as a Beast One, fit only to cough
out your life upon the point of a lance—and that speedily!"
Fors had clapped his
rebel tongue between his teeth and so held it until the heat of his first anger
died. When he had control of himself he answered steadily.
"Call me what you
will, Chief. But, by whatever gods you own, will I swear that I speak the full
truth. Perhaps in the years since our fathers' fathers' fathers went into the
Blow-Up and perished, there has been a lessening of the evil blight—"
"You call yourself
of the mountains," interrupted the White Robe. "I have heard of men
from the mountains who venture forth into the empty lands to regain lost
knowledge. These are sworn to the truth and speak no warped tales. If you be of
their breed show us now the star which such wear upon them as the sign of their
calling. Then shall we make you welcome under custom and law—"
"I am of the
mountains," repeated Fors grimly. "But I am not a Star Man."
"Only outlaws and
evil livers wander far from their clan brothers." It was the Black Robe who
made that suggestion.
"And those are
without protection of the law, meat for any man's ax. These men are not worth
the trifling over—"
Now—now he must try his
one and only argument. Fors looked straight at the Chief and interrupted him
with the old, old formula his father had taught him years before.
"By the flame, by
the water, by the flesh, by the tent right, do we now claim refuge under the
banner of this clan—we have eaten your meat and broken our thirsting here this
hour!"
There was a sudden
silence in the large tent. All the buzz of whispering from neighbor to neighbor
was stilled and when one of the guards shifted his stance so that his sword
hilt struck against another's the sound was like the call to battle.
The High Chief had
thrust his thumbs between his wide belt and his middle and now he drummed on
the leather with his finger tips, a tattoo of impatience. But the Black Robe
moved forward a step reluctantly and gestured to the guard. So a knife flashed
and the hide thongs fell from their cramped arms. Fors rubbed his wrists. He
had won the first engagement but—
"From the hour of
the lighting of the fires on this night until the proper hour you are
guests." The Chief repeated those words as if they were bitter enough to
twist his mouth. "Against custom we have no appeal. But be assured, when
the time of grace is done, we shall have a reckoning with you—"
Fors dared now to smile.
"We ask only for what is ours by the rights of your own customs, Chieftain
and Captain of many tents." His two hands made the proper salute.
The High Chief's eyes
were narrowed as he waved forward his two companions.
"And under custom
these two be your guardians, strangers. You are in their care this night."
So they went forth from
the council tent free in their persons, passing through the crowd to another
hide-walled enclosure of smaller size. On the dark skins of which it was made
various symbols were painted. Fors could make them out with the aid of the
firelight. Some he knew well. The twin snakes coiled about a staff—that was the
universal sign of the healer. And those balancing scales—those meant the
equalizing of justice. The men of the Eyrie used both of those emblems too. The
round ball with a flower of flames crowding out of its top was new but Arskane
gave an exclamation of surprise as he stopped to point at a pair of
outstretched wings supporting a pointed object between them.
"That—that is the
sign of the Old Ones who were flying men. It is the chief sign of my own
clan!"
And at those words of
his the black-robed Plainsman turned quickly to demand with some fierceness:
"What know you of
flying men, you creeper in the dirt?"
But Arskane was smiling
proudly, his battered face alight, his head high.
"We of my tribe are
sprung from flying men who came to rest in the deserts of the south after a
great battle had struck most of their machines from the air and blasted from
the earth the field from which they had flown. That is our sign." He
touched almost lovingly the tip of the outstretched wing. "Around his neck
now does Nath-al-sal, our High Chief, still wear such as that made of the Old
One's shining metal, as it came from the hand of his father, and his father's
father, and so back to the first and greatest of the flying men who came forth
from the belly of the dead machine on the day they found refuge in our valley
of the little river!"
As he talked the outrage
faded from the Black Robe's face. He was a sadly puzzled man now.
"So does all
knowledge come—in bits and patches," he said slowly. "Come
within."
But it seemed to Fors
that the law man of the Plainspeople had lost much of his hostility. And he
even held aside the door flap with his own hands as if they were in truth
honored guests instead of prisoners, reprieved but for a space.
Once inside they stared
about them with frank curiosity. A long table made of polished boards set on
stakes pounded into the earth ran down the center and on it in orderly piles
were things Fors recognized from his few visits to the Star House. A stone
hollowed for the grinding and bruising of herbs used in medicines, its pestle
lying across it, together with rows of boxes and jars—that was the healer's
property. And the dried bundles of twigs and leaves, hanging in ordered lines
from the cord along the ridge pole, were his also.
But the books of
parchment with protecting covers of thin wood, the ink horn and the pens laid
ready, those were the tools of the law man. The records of the tribe were in
his keeping, all the customs and history. Each book bore the sign of a clan
carved on its cover, each was the storehouse of information about that family.
Arskane stabbed a finger
at a piece of smoothed hide held taut in a wooden stretcher.
"The wide
river?"
"Yes. You know of
it, too?" The law man pushed aside a pile of books and brought the hide
under the hanging lantern where oil-soaked tow burned to give light.
"This part—that is
as I have seen it with my own two eyes." The southerner traced a curved
line of blue paint which meandered across the sheet. "My tribe crossed
right here. It took us four weeks to build the rafts. And two were swept away
by the current so that we never saw those on them again. We lost twenty sheep
in the flood as well. But here—my brother scouted north and he found another
curve so—" Arskane corrected the line with his finger. "Also—when the
mountains of our land poured out fire and shook the world around them the
bitter sea waters came in here and here, and no more is it now land—only
water—"
The law man frowned over
his map. "So. Well, we have lived for ten tens of years along the great
river and know this of its waters—many times it changes its bed and wanders to
suit its will. There are the marks of the Old Ones' work at many places along
it, they must have tried to hold it to its course. But that mystery we have
lost—along with so much else—"
"If you have ridden
from the banks of the great river you have come far," Fors observed.
"What brought your tribe into these eastern lands?"
"Whatever takes the
Plainspeople east or west? We have the wish to see new places born in us. North
and south have we gone—from the edges of the great forests where the snows make
a net to catch the feet of our horses and only the wild creatures may live fat
in winter—to the swamp lands where scaled things hide in the rivers to pull
down the unwary drinker—we have seen the land. Two seasons ago our High Chief
died and his lance fell into the hand of Cantrul who has always been a seeker
of far lands. So now do we walk new trails and open the world for the wonder of
our children. Behold—"
He unhooked the lamp
from its supporting cord and pulled Fors with him to the other end of the tent.
There were maps, maps and pictures, pictures vivid enough to make the
mountaineer gasp with wonder. They had in them the very magic with which the
Old Ones had made their world live for one another.
"Here—this was made
in the north—in winter when a man must walk with hide webs beneath his feet so
that he sinks not into the snow to be swallowed as in quicksands. And here—look
you—this is one of the forest people—they lay paint upon their faces and wear
the hides of beasts upon their bodies but they walk in pride and say that they
are a very ancient people who once owned all this land. And here and
here—" He flipped over the framed parchment squares, the records of their
travels set down in bright color.
"This—" Fors
drew a deep breath—"this is greater treasure than the Star House holds.
Could Jarl and the rest but look upon these!"
The law man ran his
fingers along the smooth frame of the map he held.
"In all the tribe
perhaps ten of our youth look upon these with any stir in their hearts or
minds. The rest—they care nothing for the records, for making a map of the way
our feet have gone that day. To eat and to war, to ride and hunt, to raise a
son after them to do likewise—that it the desire of the tribe. But
always—always there are a few who still strive to go back along the old roads,
to try to find again what was lost in the days of disaster. Bits and pieces we
discover, a thread here and a tattered scrap there, and we try to weave it
whole."
"If Marphy spoke
now the full truth," the harsher voice of the healer broke in, "he
would say that it was because he was born a seeker of knowledge that all
this"—he waved at the array—"came to be. He it was who started making
these and he trains those of like mind to see and set down what they have seen.
All this has been done since he became keeper of the records."
The law man looked
confused and then he smiled almost shyly. "Have I not said that it is in
our blood to be ever hunting what lies beyond? In me it has taken this turn. In
you, Fanyer, it also works so that you make your messes out of leaves and
grass, and if you dared you would cut us open just to see what lies beneath our
skins."
"Perhaps, perhaps.
Dearly would I like to know what lies beneath the skins of these two that they
have crossed the Blow-Up land and yet show no signs of the burning
sickness—"
"I thought,"
retorted Arskane quickly, "that was the story you did not believe."
Fanyer considered him
through narrowed eyes, almost, Fors thought, as if he did have the southerner
opened for examination.
"So—maybe I do not
believe it. But if it is true, then this is the greatest wonder I have yet
heard of. Tell me, how did this thing happen?"
Arskane laughed.
"Very well, we shall tell our tale. And we swear that it is a true one.
But half of the tale belongs to each of us and so we tell it together."
And as the oil lamp
sputtered overhead, guards and prisoners sat on the round cushions and talked
and listened. When Fors spoke the last word Marphy stretched and shook himself
as if he had been swimming in deep water.
"That is the truth,
I think," he commented quietly. "And it is a brave story, fit to make
a song for the singing about night fires."
"Tell me,"
Fanyer rounded abruptly upon Fors, "you who were lessoned for knowledge
seeking, what was the thing which amazed you most in this journey of
yours?"
Fors did not even have
to consider his answer. "That the Beast Things are venturing forth from
their dens into the open country. For, by all our observations, they have not
done so before in the memory of men. And this may mean danger to come—"
Marphy looked to Fanyer
and their eyes locked. Then the man of medical knowledge got to his feet and
went purposefully out into the night. It was Arskane who broke the short
silence with a question of his own.
"Recorder of the
past, why did your young men hunt us down? Why do you march to war against my
people? What has passed between our tribes that this is so?"
Marphy cleared his
throat, almost as if he wished for time.
"Why? Why? Even the
Old Ones never answered that. As you can see in the tumbled stones of their
cities. Your people march north seeking a home, mine march east and south for
the same reason. We are different in custom, in speech, in bearing. And man
seems to fear this difference. Young blood is hot, there is a quarrel, a
killing, from the spilled blood springs war. But chiefly the reason is this, I
think. My people are rovers and they do not understand those who would build
and root in one place within the borders of a land they call their own. Now we
hear that a town is rising in the river bend one day's journey to the south.
And that town is being settled by men of your blood. So now the tribe is uneasy
and a little afraid of what they do not know. There are many among them who say
that we must stamp out what may be a threat to us in time to come—"
Arskane wiped the palms
of his hands across the tattered remnant of his garment, as if he had found
those palms suddenly and betrayingly damp.
"In no way is my
tribe any threat against the future of yours. We ask only for land in which to
plant our seed and to provide grazing for our sheep. Perhaps we may be lucky to
find a bank of clay to give us the material we need for our potters' craft. We
are indifferent hunters—coming from a land where there is but little game. We
have arts in our hands which might well serve others beside ourselves."
"True, true."
Marphy nodded. "This desire for war with the stranger is our curse—perhaps
the same one which was laid upon the Old Ones for their sins. But it will take
greater than either of us to make a peace now—the war drums have sounded, the
lances are ready—"
"And there, for
once, you speak the full truth, oh, weaver of legends!"
It was the High Chief
who came to the table. Laid aside were his feather helmet and cloak of office.
In the guise of a simple warrior he could walk the camp unnoted.
"You forget this—a
tribe which breeds not warriors to hold its lances will be swallowed up. The
lion preys upon the bull—if it can escape the horns. The wolves run in packs to
the kill. Kill or be killed, eat or be eaten—that is the law upheld better than
all other laws."
Something hot rose in
Fors' throat and he snapped out an answer to that which was born of this new emotion.
"The paws of the
Beast Things are against all of us—in just that manner, oh Captain of the
Tents. And they are no lightly considered enemy. Lead your lances against
them—if war you must!"
Surprise came first into
Cantrul's eyes and then the flush of anger stained his brown cheekbones. His
hand moved instinctively to the hilt of his short sword. Fors' hands remained
on his knees. The scabbard at his belt was empty and he could not accept any
challenge the Plainsman might offer.
"Our lances move
when they will and where they will, stranger. If they wish to clean out a nest
of mud-hut-dwelling vermin—"
Arskane made no move,
but his one unswollen eye calmly measured the High Chief with a control Fors
admired. Cantrul wanted an answer—preferably a hot one. When it did not come he
turned to Fors with a harsh question.
"You say that the
Beast Things march?"
"No," Fors
corrected him. "I say that for the first time in our knowledge they are
coming fearlessly out of their burrows in the cities to roam the open lands.
And they are cunning fighters with powers we have not yet fully gauged. They
are not men as we are—whether or not their sires' sires' sires were of our
breed. So they may be greater than we—or lesser. How can we yet know? But this
is true—as we of the Eyrie, who have warred against them during generations of
city looting, can say—they are enemies to mankind. My father died under their
fangs. I, myself, have lain in their bonds. They are no common enemy to be
dismissed without fear, Plainsman."
"There is this,
remember." Marphy broke the short silence. "When these two fled
across the Blow-Up land a pack of the creatures sniffed their trail. If we
march south without taking care we may find ourselves with an enemy behind as
well as before—to be caught between two fires—"
Cantrul's fingers
drummed out a battle rhythm on his belt, a sharp furrow cut between his thin
brows. "We have scouts out."
"True. You are a
leader old in war knowledge. What is needful has been ordered. Forgive me—I
grow old, and conning records sometimes gives one a weary view of life. Man
makes so many mistakes—sometimes it appears that never shall he learn—"
"In war he learns
or dies! It is plain that the Old Ones did not or could not learn—well, they
are gone, are they not? And we live—the tribe is strong. I think that you worry
too much, both of you—Fanyer, too. We ride prepared and there is nothing
that—"
But his words were
drowned in such a thunder of sound that it seemed a storm had broken directly
above the tent in which they stood. And through the general uproar came the
shouts of men and the higher screaming of frightened women and children.
Those in the tent were
across it in an instant, elbowing each other to be first at the door flap. The
Plainsmen pushed out as Arskane pulled Fors back. As they hesitated they saw
the wild stampede of horses pound down the center lane of the camp, threading
around the fires with so little room that tents were going down under their
hoofs. Behind, across the horizon, was a wavering wall of golden light.
Arskane's hand closed
about Fors' wrist with almost bone-crushing pressure as he dragged the slighter
mountaineer back into the tent.
"There is fire!
Fire running through the prairie grass!" He had to shout the words in
order to be heard over the tumult outside. "Our chance—"
But Fors had already
grasped that. He broke out of the other's grip and ran down the length of the
table looking for a weapon. A small spear was all he could see to snatch up.
Arskane took the pestle of the herb grinder as Fors used the point of the spear
to rip through the far wall of the tent.
Outside they headed away
from the chieftain's enclosure, running and dodging among the tents, joining
other running men in the shadows. In the stirred-up ant hill of the camp it was
ridiculously easy to get away without notice. But the sky behind was growing
steadily brighter and they knew they must get out of the camp quickly.
"It's sweeping
around." Fors pointed out the swing of that ghastly parody of daylight.
East and west the fire made a giant mouth open and ready to engulf the camp.
There were fewer men running now and order was developing out of the first
confusion.
They rounded the last of
the tents and were out in the open, looking out for clumps of bushes or trees
among which they could take cover. Then Fors caught a glimpse of something
which brought him up short. A glare of yellow showed before them where it
should not be—reflection—but how? A moment later Arskane verified his
suspicion.
"It's a ring of
fire!"
Fors' hunter's instincts
began to work as those tongues of flame lapped skyward.
"Downhill!" He
threw the order over his shoulder.
He could see a trampled
trail marked by many hoofs, hoofs of horses led to water. Downhill was water!
Downhill they ran.
The wind had changed and
blinded by the smoke which bit at eyes and throat they discovered the stream by
falling into it. In its depths they were not alone. A wave of rabbits and other
small furry things which squeaked and scurried flooded out of the high grass to
run along the edge of the water, making small piteous sounds of fear and terror
until they plunged in to clog the water with their bodies.
Out in midstream the
smoke did not hang so thick. Fors' night eyes adjusted and he took the lead,
heading down current, out toward where the flames bannered high. The confused
noise of the Plains camp died out as the river turned a bend and a screen of
willows closed in.
A deer crashed through
the bushes, running, and behind it came a second and a third—then four more all
together. The stream bed deepened. Fors' foot slipped off a stone and his head
went under. For a moment he knew panic and then the art learned in mountain
pools came back to him and he swam steadily, Arskane splashing along at his
shoulder.
So they came out into
the middle of a lake, a lake which ended in the straight line of a dam. Fors
blinked water out of his eyes and saw round mounds rising above the stream
line—beaver houses! He flinched as a big body floundered by to pull out its
bulk on top of one of those lodges. A very wet and very angry wild cat crouched
there, spitting at the liquid which had saved its life.
Fors trod water and
looked back. Arskane's head was bobbing along as if the big man were in
difficulties and the mountaineer turned back. Minutes later both clung to the
rough side of the nearest lodge and Fors considered their future with cool
calculation.
The beaver lake was of a
good size and recent rains had added to its contents. Also the builders of the
lodges and the dam had cleaned out the majority of the trees which had grown
along its banks, leaving only brush. Seeing this the mountaineer relaxed. Luck
had brought them to the one place which would save them. And he was not the
only living thing to believe that.
An antlered buck swam in
circles near them, its pronged head high. And smaller creatures were arriving
by the dozens to clamber over each other up the sides of the lodges to safety.
Arskane gave a violent cry of disgust and jerked back his hand as a snake
wriggled across it.
As the fire crept along
the shore, making the water as ruddy as blood, the creatures in the water and
on the lodges seemed to cower, sniffing in the cindery hot breath of the flames
reluctantly. A bird dropped out of the air, struck Fors' shoulder, and plumped
into the water leaving a puff of burned feather stench behind it. The
mountaineer dropped his head down on his hands, holding his mouth and nose only
an inch or so above the water, feeling the blistering heat whip across his
shoulders.
How long they remained
there, their bodies floating in the water, their fingers dug into the stuff of
the lodges, they never knew. But when the crackle of the fire diminished Fors
raised his head again. The first of the blaze was gone. Here and there the
stump of a tree still showed stubborn coals. It would be some time before they
would dare walk over that still smoking ground. The water must continue to give
them passage.
Fors fended off the body
of a deer which had taken too late to refuge and worked his way to the next
lodge and so on to the dam. Here the fire had eaten a hole, taken a good bite
out, so that water was spilling freely into the old channel of the stream.
By the light of
smoldering roots he could make out the course for some distance ahead.
"Holla!"
A moment later, Arskane
joined him.
"So we follow the
water, eh?" The southerner applauded. "Well, with the fire behind us
we shall not worry about pursuit. Perhaps good fortune journeys on our right
hand tonight, my brother."
Fors grunted, climbing
over the rough surface of the dam. Again they could keep their feet. The water
was only waist-deep here. But the stones in the course made slippery footing
and they crept along fearing a disastrous fall.
When they were at last
well away from the fire glow in the sky Fors stopped and studied the stars,
looking for the familiar clusters which were the unchanging guides he had been
taught. They were heading south—but from a westerly direction and this was
unknown territory.
"Will we hear the
drums now?" he asked.
"Do not count on
it. The tribe probably believes me as dead as Noraton and sounds the call no
longer."
Fors shivered, perhaps
just from the long immersion in the chill water. "This is a wide land,
without a guide we may miss them—"
"More likely to
since this is war and my people will conceal what they may of the camp. But,
brother, it is in my mind that we could not have won free so easily from this
night's captivity had there not been a mission set upon us. Head south and let
us hope that the same power will bring us to what we seek. At least your
mountains will not move themselves from their root and we can turn to them if
nothing better offers—"
But Fors refused to
answer that, giving his attention again to the stars.
For the present they
kept to the stream, stumbling between water-worn boulders and over gravel. At
length they came into a ravine where walls of gray rock closed in as if they
were entering the narrow throat of a trap. Here they pulled out on a flat ledge
to rest.
Fors dozed uneasily. The
mosquitoes settled and feasted in spite of his slaps. But at last his heavy
head went flat and he could no longer fight off the deep sleep of a worn-out
body and fatigue-dulled mind.
The murmur of water
awoke him at last and he lay listening to it before he forced open puffy
eyelids. He rubbed an itching, bite-swollen face as he focused dazedly upon
moss-green rock and brown water. Then he sat up with a snap. It must be
mid-morning at least!
Arskane still lay belly
down beside him, his head pillowed on an arm. There was an angry red brand left
by a burn on his shoulder—a drifting piece of wood must have struck there. And
beyond Fors could see floating on the current other evidence of the fire—half-consumed
sticks, the battered body of a squirrel with the fur charred from its back.
Fors retrieved that
before the water bore it on. Half-burned squirrel was a rare banquet when a
man's stomach was making a too intimate acquaintance with his backbone. He laid
it out on the rock and worried off the skin with the point of the spear he had
clung to through the night.
When he had completed
that gory task he shook Arskane awake. The big man rolled over on his back with
a sleepy protest, lay staring a moment into the sky, and then sat up. In the
light of the day his battered face was almost a monster's mask mottled with
purple brown. But he managed a lopsided grin as he reached for the bits of
half-raw meat Fors held out to him.
"Food—and a clear
day for traveling ahead of us—"
"Half a day
only," Fors corrected him, measuring the length of sun and shadow around
them.
"Well, then, half a
day—but a man can cover a good number of miles even in a half day. And it seems
that we cannot be stopped, we two—"
Fors thought back over
the wild activity of the past days. He had lost accurate count of time long
since. There was no way of knowing how many days it had been since he had left
the Eyrie. But there was a certain point of truth in what Arskane had just
said—they had not yet been stopped—in spite of Beast Things, and Lizard folk,
and the Plainsmen. Even fire or the Blow-Up land had not proved barriers—
"Do you remember
what once I said to you, brother—back there when we stood on the field of the
flying machines? Never again must man come to warfare with his own kind—for if
he does, then shall man vanish utterly from the earth. The Old Ones began it
with their wicked rain of death from the sky—if we continue—then we are lost
and damned!"
"I remember."
"Now it lies in my
mind," the big man continued slowly, "that we have been shown certain
things, you and I, shown these things that we may in turn show others. These
Plainsmen ride to war with my people—yet in them, too, is the thirst for the
knowledge that the Old Ones in their stupid waste threw away. They breed
seekers such as the man Marphy—with whom I find it in my heart to wish
friendship. There is also you, who are mountain bred—yet you feel no hatred for
me or for Marphy of the Plains. In all tribes we find men of good will—"
Fors licked his lips.
"And if such men of good will could sit down together in common
council—"
Arskane's battered face
lit up. "My own thoughts spoken from your lips, brother! We must rid this
land of war or we shall in the end eat each other up and what was begun long
and long ago with the eggs of death laid by our fathers from the sky shall end
in swords and spears running sticky red—leaving the land to the Beast Things.
And that foulness I shall not believe!"
"Cantrul said that
his people must fight or die—"
"So? Well, there
are different kinds of warfare. In the desert my people fought each day, but
their enemies were sand and heat, the barren land itself. And if we had not
lost the ancient learning perhaps we might even have tamed the burning
mountains! Yes, man must fight or he becomes a soft nothing—but let him fight
to build instead of to destroy. I would see my people trading wares and
learning with those born in tents, sitting at council fires with the men of the
mountain clans. Now is the time we must act to save that dream. For if the
people of the tents march south in war they shall light such a fire as we or no
living man may put out again. And in that fire we shall be as the trees and
grass of the fields—utterly consumed."
Fors' answer was a grim
stretch of ash-powdered skin which in no way resembled a smile. "We be but
two, Arskane, and doubtless I am proclaimed outlaw, if the men of the Eyrie
have noted my flight at all. My chance of gaining a hearing at their councils
was destroyed by the Beast Things when they burned my city records. And
you—?"
"There is thus
much, brother. I am a son of a Wearer of the Wings—though I am youngest and
least of the family clan. So perhaps some will listen to me, if only for a
space. But we must reach the tribe before the Plainsmen do."
Fors tossed a cleaned
bone into the water below. "Heigh-ho! Then it is foot slogging again. I
wish that we might have brought one of those high-stepping pacers out of the
herds. Four legs are better than two when there is speed to consider."
"Afoot we go."
But Arskane could not suppress an exclamation of pain as he got to his feet and
Fors could see that he favored the side where the shoulder wound still showed
red. However, neither made any complaint as they jumped down from the ledge and
plodded on through the ravine.
Arskane was dreaming a
dream and it was a great dream, Fors thought, almost with a prick of real envy.
He himself drew bow cord against the Beast Things without any squeamishness,
and he could fight with everything in him when his life was at stake as it had
been when they were cornered by the Plainsmen. But he took no joy in slaying—he
never had. As a hunter he had killed only to fill his belly or for the pots of
the Eyrie. He did not like the idea of notching an arrow against Marphy or of
standing against Vocar with bare swords—for no good reason save a lust to
battle—
Why had the men of the
Eyrie drawn apart from their kind all these years? Oh, he knew the old
legends—that they were sprung from chosen men and women who had been hidden in
the mountains to escape just such an end as tore their civilization into bloody
shreds. They had been sent there to treasure their learning—so they did, and
tried to win more.
But had they not also
come to believe themselves a superior race? If his father had not broken the
unwritten law and married with a stranger, if he himself had been born of pure
clan blood within the walls of the Eyrie—would he think now as he did? Jarl—his
father had liked Jarl, had held him in high respect, had been the first to give
him the salute when he had been raised to the Captaincy of the Star Men.
Jarl!—Jarl could speak with Marphy and they would be two quick minds
talking—hungrily. But Jarl and Cantrul—no. Cantrul was of a different breed. Yet
he was a man whom others would follow always—their eyes on that head, held
high, with its startling plume of white hair—a battle standard.
He himself was a mutant,
a thing of mixed strains. Could he dare to speak for anyone save himself? At
any rate he knew what he wanted now—to follow Arskane's dream. He might not
believe that that dream would ever come true. But the fight for it would be his
battle. He had wanted a star for his own—the silver star which he could hold in
his two hands and wear as a badge of honor to compel respect from the people
who had rejected him. But Arskane was showing him now something which might be
greater than any star. Wait—wait and see.
His feet fell easily
into the rhythm of those two words. The stream curved suddenly when it issued
out of the ravine. Arskane pulled himself up the steep bank by the help of
bushes. Fors gained the top in the same moment and together they saw what lay
to the south. A dense column of smoke mushroomed into the sky of late
afternoon.
For one startled minute
Fors thought of the prairie fire. But surely that had not spread here, they had
passed the line of burning hours back. Another fire, and a localized one by the
line of smoke. One could take a route leading along the row of trees to the
right, snake through the field of tangled bushes beyond where red fruit hung
heavy and ripe, and reach the source without being exposed to attack.
Fors felt the rake of
berry thorns on his flesh, but at the same time he crammed the tartly sweet
fruit into his mouth as he crawled, staining his hands and face with dark
juice.
Halfway across the berry
patch they came upon evidence of a struggle. Under a bush lay a tightly woven
basket, spilling berries out into a mush of trampled earth and crushed fruit.
From this a trail of beaten-down grass and broken bushes led to the other side
of the field.
From the tight grasp of
briers Arskane detached a strip of cloth dyed a dull orange. He pulled it
slowly through his fingers.
"This is of my
tribal making," he said. "They were berrying here when—"
Fors felt the point of
the spear he trailed. It was not much of a weapon. He longed fiercely for his
bow—or even to hold the sword the Plainsmen had taken from him. There were
sword tricks which could serve a man well at the right occasion.
With the scrap of cotton
caught between his teeth Arskane crawled on, giving no heed to the thorns which
ripped his arms and shoulders. Fors was conscious now of a thin wailing sound,
which did not rise or fall but kept querulously to one ear-torturing note. It
seemed to come with the smoke which the wind bore to them.
The berry field ended in
a stand of trees and through these they looked out upon a lost battlefield.
Small, two-wheeled carts had been pulled up in a circle, or into a segment of a
circle, for there was a large gap in it now. And on these carts perched death
birds, too stuffed to do more than hold on to the wood and stare down at a
feast still spread to entice them. A mound of gray-white bodies lay at one
side, their clothing clotted and stiffened with blood.
Arskane got to his
feet—where the birds roosted unafraid the enemy was long gone. That monotonous
crying still filled the ears and Fors began to search for the source. Arskane
stooped suddenly and struck with a stone grabbed from the ground. The cry was
stilled and Fors saw his companion straighten up from the still quivering body
of a lamb.
There was another quest
before them, a more ghastly one. They began it with tight mouths and sick
eyes—dreading to find what must lie among the burning wagons and the mounds of
dead animals. But it was Fors who found there the first trace of the enemy.
He half stumbled over a
broken wagon wheel and beneath it was a lean body which lay with arms
outstretched and sightless eyes staring up. From the hairless chest protruded
the butt of an arrow which had gone true to its mark. And that arrow—! Fors
touched the delicately set feathers at the end of the shaft. He knew the
workmanship—he himself set feathers in much the same fashion. Though here was
no personal mark of ownership—nothing but the tiny silver star set so deeply
into that shaft that it could never be effaced.
"Beast Thing!"
Arskane exclaimed at the sight of the corpse.
But Fors pointed to the
arrow. "That came from the quiver of a Star Man."
Arskane did not display
much interest—there were his own discoveries.
"This is the
encampment of a family clan only. Four wagons are burning, at least five
escaped. They could not run with the sheep—so they killed the flock. I have
found the bodies of four more of these vermin—" He touched the Beast Thing
with the toe of his moccasin.
Fors stepped across the
hind legs of a dead pony which still lay with the harness of a cart on it. A
Beast Thing dart stood out between its ribs. From the presence of the Beast
Thing corpses, Fors was inclined to believe that the attack had been beaten off
and the besieged had been successful in the break for freedom.
A second search of the
litter equipped them with darts, and Fors snapped off the shaft of the arrow
which bore the star marking. Some wanderer from the Eyrie had made common cause
with the southerners in this attack. Did that mean that he could expect to meet
a friend—or an enemy—when he joined Arskane's people?
The wheels of the
escaping carts had cut deep ruts in the soft turf and there were footprints
clear to read beside them. The death birds settled back to the feast as the two
moved on. Arskane was breathing hard and the grimness which had cut his mouth
into a cruel line over the grave of Noraton was back.
"Four of the Beast
Things," puzzled Fors, lengthening his stride to a lope to keep up.
"And the Lizard folk killed five. How many are out roving—There has never
been such an onslaught of the things before. Why—?"
"I found a
burned-out torch in the paw of one of them back there. Maybe the fire of the
Plains camp came from their setting. Just as they tried here to fire the carts
and drive out the clan to slaughter."
"But never before
have they come out of the ruins. Why now?"
Arskane's lips moved as
if he would spit. "Perhaps they too seek land—or war—or merely the death
of all those not of their breed. How can we look into the minds of such?
Ha!"
The cart track they
followed joined another—a deeper, wider track, such a road as must have been
beaten down by the feet and wheels of a nation on the march. The tribe was
ahead now.
In the next second, Fors
checked so suddenly that he came near to tripping over his own feet. Out of
nowhere had come an arrow, to dig deep into the earth and stand, quivering a
little, an arrogant warning and a threat. He did not have to examine it
closely. He knew before he put out his hand that he would find a star printed
in its shaft.
Arskane did not break
stride but threw himself to the left and crouched in the shadow of a bush, the
darts he had picked up at the scene of the ambush in his hands, ready. Fors on
the contrary stood where he was and held up empty palms.
"We travel in
peace—"
The rolling words of his
own mountain land seemed odd to mouth after all these weeks. But he was not
surprised at the identity of the man who came out of the clump of trees to the
right of the trail.
Jarl would be imposing
even in the simple garb of one of the least of the Eyrie. In the insignia of
the Star Captain he had more majesty, thought Fors proudly, than Cantrul, for
all the Plainschief's feather helmet and collar of ceremony. As he walked
toward them the sun glinted meteor bright on the Star at his throat and on the
well-polished metal of belt, sword hilt and knife guard.
Arskane pulled his feet
under him. He was like Lura ready to spring for the kill. Fors made a furious
gesture at him. Jarl, in turn, showed no astonishment at the sight of the two
who waited for him.
"So, kinsman."
He fingered his bow as if it were a councilor's staff of office. "This is
the trail you have found to follow?"
Fors saluted him. And
when Jarl did not acknowledge that courtesy he bit down hard on the soft inner
part of his lip. True, Jarl had never shown him any favor in the past, but
neither had the Star Captain ever by word or deed betrayed belief that Fors was
any different from the rest of the young of the Eyrie. And for that he had long
ago won a place apart in the boy's feelings.
"I travel with
Arskane of the Dark Ones, my brother." He snapped his fingers to bring the
southerner out of the bush. "His people are in danger now, so we join
them—"
"You realize that
you are now outlawed?"
Fors tasted the salty
sweetness of the blood from his lip. He could, in all fairness, have hoped for
little less than that sentence after his manner of leaving the Eyrie. Nevertheless
the calm mention of it now made him cringe a little. He hoped that he did not
show his discomfiture to Jarl. The Eyrie had not been a happy home for him—he
had never been welcome there since Langdon's death. In truth they had outlawed
him long since. But it had been the only shelter he knew.
"By the fire of
Arskane is his brother always welcome!"
Jarl's eyes, those eyes
which held one on the balance scale, went from Fors to his companion.
"Soon the Dark Ones
will not have fire or shelter to offer. You are late in your returning,
clansman. The drums of recall have been still these many hours."
"We were detained
against our will," returned Arskane almost absently. He was studying Jarl
in his turn and, seemingly, the result was not altogether to his liking.
"And not detained
in gentleness it would appear." Jarl must have marked every cut and bruise
the two before him boasted. "Well, fighting men are always welcome before
a battle."
"Have the
Plainsmen—?" began Fors, truly startled. That Cantrul could have moved so
quickly out of the wild confusion they had left him in was almost beyond
belief.
"Plainsmen?"
He had shaken Jarl. "There are no Plainsmen in this. The Beast Things have
forsaken their ways and are boiling out of their dens. Now they move in numbers
to make war against all humankind!"
Arskane put his hand to
his head. He was tired to exhaustion, his lips showing white under the swelling
which made a lopsided lump of half his mouth. Without another word he started
on doggedly but when Fors would have followed him the Star Captain put out a
hand which brought him up short.
"What is this
babble of Plainsmen attacking—?"
Fors found himself
answering with the story of their capture and stay in the Plains camp and their
escape from Cantrul's tent city. By the time he had finished Arskane was
already out of sight. But still Jarl made no move to let him go. Instead he was
studying the patterns he traced in the dust with the tip of his long bow. Fors
impatiently shifted weight from one foot to the other. But when the Star
Captain spoke it was as if he followed his own thoughts.
"Now do I better
understand the events of these past two days."
He whistled high and
shrill between his teeth, a sound Fors knew would carry far..
And he was answered when
out of the grass came two lithe furry bodies. Fors did not notice the black one
that rubbed against Jarl—for he was rolling across the ground where the force
of the other's welcome had sent him, rolling and laughing a little hysterically
as Lura's rough tongue explored his face and her paws knocked him about with
heavy tenderness.
"Yesterday Nag came
back from hunting and brought her with him." Jarl's hand rubbed with
steady strokes behind the ears of the huge cat whose black fur, long and silky
and almost blue in the sun, twisted in his fingers. "There is a lump on
her skull. During your fight she must have been knocked unconscious. And ever
since Nag brought her in she has been trying to urge me into some
task—doubtless the single-handed rescue of your person—"
Fors got to his feet
while Lura wove about him, butting at him with her head and rubbing against his
none too steady legs with the full force of her steel-tendoned body.
"Touching
sight—"
Fors winced. He knew
that tone from Jarl. It had the ability to deflate the most confident man and
that speedily. With an unspoken suggestion to Lura he started down the trail
after the vanished Arskane. Although he did not look back he knew that the Star
Captain was following him at the easy, mile-eating pace his own feet had automatically
dropped into.
Jarl did not speak
again, remaining as silent as Nag, that black shadow which slipped across the
land as if he were only in truth the projection of a bush in the sun. And Lura,
purring loudly, kept close to Fors' side as if she were afraid that should she
return to her old outflanking ways he would disappear again.
They found Arskane's
people encamped in a meadow which was encircled on three sides by a river. The
two-wheeled carts were a wooden wall around the outer edges and in the center
showed the gray backs of sheep, the dun coats of ponies in rope corrals with
the lines of family cooking fires running between low tents. There were only a
few men there and those were fully armed. Fors suspected that he must have come
through some picket lines unchallenged because of the Star Captain's
companionship.
It was easy to find
Arskane. A group of men and a large circle of women ringed him. It was a crowd
so intent upon the scout's report that not one of them noted the arrival of
Fors and Jarl.
Arskane was talking to a
woman. She was almost as tall as the young warrior before her and her features
were strongly marked. Two long braids of black hair swung down upon her
shoulders and now and again she raised a hand to push at them impatiently with
a gesture which had become habitual. Her long robe was dyed the same odd shade
of dusky orange as the scrap of cotton they had found in the berry field and on
her arms and about her neck was the gleam of stone-set silver.
As Arskane finished, she
considered for a moment and then a stream of commands, spoken too rapidly in
the slurred tongue of the south for Fors to follow, sent the circle about her
apart, men and women both hurrying off on errands. When the last of these left
she caught sight of Fors and her eyes widened. Arskane turned to see what had
surprised her. Then his hand fell on the mountaineer's shoulder and he pulled
him forward.
"This is he of whom
I have told you—he has saved my life in the City of the Beast Things, and I
have named him brother—"
There was almost a touch
of pleading in his voice.
"We be the Dark
People." The woman's tone was low but there was a lilt in it, almost as if
she chanted. "We be the Dark People, my son. He is not of our breed—"
Arskane's hands went out
in a nervous gesture. "He is my brother," he repeated stubbornly.
"Were it not for him I would have long since died the death and my clan
would never have known how or where that chanced."
"In turn,"
Fors spoke to this woman chief as equal to equal, "Arskane has stood
between me and a worse passing—has he neglected to tell you that? But, Lady,
you should know this—I am outlawed and so free meat to any man's spear—"
"So? Well, the
matter of outlawry is between you and your name clan—and not for the fingering
of strangers. You have a white skin—but in the hour of danger what matters the
color of a fighting man's bone covering? The hour is coming when we shall need
every bender of bow and wielder of sword we can lay orders upon." She stooped
and caught up a pinch of the sandy loam which ridged between her sandaled feet.
And now she stretched out her hand palm up with that bit of earth lying on it.
Fors touched the tip of
his forefinger to his lips and then to the soil. But he did not fall to his
knees in the finish of that ritual. He gave allegiance but he did not beg
entrance to a clan. The woman nodded approvingly.
"You think straight
thoughts, young man. In the name of the Silver Wings and of Those Who Once
Flew, I accept your fighting faith until the hour when we mutually agree to go
our ways. Now are you satisfied, Arskane?"
Her clansman hesitated
before he answered. There was an odd soberness on his face as he regarded Fors.
Plainly he was disappointed at the mountaineer's refusal to ask for clan
standing. But at last he said:
"I claim him as a
member of my family clan, to fight under our banner and eat at our fire—"
"So be it."
She dismissed them both with a wave of her hand. Already she looked beyond them
to Jarl and was summoning the Star Captain imperiously.
Arskane threaded through
the camp, giving only hasty greetings to those who would have stopped him,
until he came to a tent which had two carts for walls and a wide sweep of
woolen stuff for a roof. Round shields of rough-scaled skin hung in a row on
mounts by the entrance—four of them—and above these warrior shields the wind
played with a small banner. For the second time Fors saw the pattern of the
widespread wings, and below those a scarlet shooting star.
A small, grave-eyed girl
glanced up at they came. With a little cry she dropped the pottery jar she had
been holding and came running, to cling tightly to Arskane, her face hidden
against his scarred body. He gave a choked laugh and swept her up high.
"This is the
small-small one of our hearthside, my brother. She is named Rosann of the
Bright Eyes. Ha, small one, bid welcome my brother—"
Shy dark eyes peered at
Fors and then little hands swept back braids which would in a few years rival
those of the woman chief and an imperious voice ordered Arskane to "put me
down!" Once on her two feet again she came up to the mountaineer, her
hands outstretched. Half guessing the right response Fors held out his in turn
and she laid small palms to press his large ones.
"To the fire on the
hearth, to the roof against the night and storm, to the food and drink within
this house, are you truly welcome, brother of my brother." She said the
last word in triumph at her perfect memory and smiled back at Arskane with no
little pride.
"Well done, little
sister. You are the proper lady of this clan house—"
"I accept of your
welcome, Lady Rosann." Fors showed more courtliness than had been in his
manner when he had greeted the chieftainess.
"Now," Arskane
was frowning again, "I must go to my father, Fors. He is making the rounds
of the outposts. If you will await us here—"
Rosann had kept hold of
his hand and now she gave him the same wide smile with which she had favored
her brother. "There are berries, brother of my brother, and the new cheese
and corn cake fresh baked—"
"A feast—!" He
met her smile.
"A true feast!
Because Arskane has come back. Becie said that he would not and she
cried—"
"Did she?"
There was an unusual amount of interest in that comment from her tall brother.
Then he was gone, striding away between the tent lines. Rosann nodded.
"Yes, Becie cried.
But I did not. Because I knew that he would be back—"
"And why were you
so sure?"
The hand tugged him
closer to the shield stands. "Arskane is a great warrior. That—" a
pink-brown finger touched the rim of the last shield in the row, "that is
made from the skin of a thunder lizard and Arskane killed it all alone, just
himself. Even my father allowed the legend singer to put together words for
that at the next singing time—though he has many times said that the son of a
chief must not be honored above other warriors. Arskane—he is very
strong—"
And Fors, remembering
the days just past, agreed. "He is strong and a mighty warrior and he has
done other things your legend singer must weave words about."
"You are not of our
people. Your skin"—she compared his hand with hers—"it is light. And
your hair—it is like Becie's necklace when the sun shines upon it. You are not
of us Dark People—"
Fors shook his head. In
that company of warm brown skins and black hair his own lighter hide and silver
head-capping must be doubly conspicuous.
"I come from the
mountains—far to the east—" He waved a hand.
"Then you must be
of the cat people!"
Fors' gaze followed her
pointing finger. Nag and Lura sat together at a good distance from the sheep
and the tough little ponies as they had apparently been ordered to do. But, at
Fors' welcoming thought, Lura came up, leaving Nag behind. Rosann laughed with
pure delight and threw her arms around the cat's neck, hugging her tight. The
rumble of Lura's purr was her answer and a rough pink tongue caressed her
wrist.
"Do all you people
of the mountains have the big cats for your own friends?"
"Not all. The cat
ones are not so many and it is for them to choose with whom they will hunt.
This is Lura who is my good friend and roving companion. And that yonder is Nag
who runs with the Star Captain."
"I know—the Star
Captain Jarl, he who has the kind eyes. He talks in the night with my
father."
"Kind eyes."
Fors was a little startled at a description so at variance with what he thought
he knew. Though Rosann probably did not see Jarl as he appeared to a mutant and
tribal outlaw.
Smoke was rising from
the line of fires and borne with it was the fragrance of cooking. Fors could
not repress a single sniff.
"You are hungry,
brother of my brother?"
"Maybe—just a
little—"
Rosann flushed. "I
am sorry. Again have I let my tongue run and not remembered the Three Duties.
Truly am I shamed—"
Her fingers tightened on
his and she pulled him under the entrance flap of the tent.
"Down!"
Fors' heels struck
against a pile of thick mats and he obediently folded up his long legs and sat.
Lura collapsed beside him as Rosann bustled about. Before Fors could even make
out the patterns of the hangings on the walls Rosann returned, carrying before
her a wide metal basin of water from which rose steam and the spicy scent of
herbs. A towel of coarse stuff lay over her arm and she held it ready as Fors
washed.
Then came a tray with a
spoon and bowl and a small cup of the same bitter drink he had brewed under
Arskane's direction in the museum. The corn mush had been cooked with bits of
rich meat and the stimulating drink was comforting in his middle.
He must have dozed off
afterward because when he roused it was night outside and the crimson flames of
the fire and the lesser beams of a lamp fought against the shadows. A hand
placed on his forehead had brought him awake. Arskane knelt beside him and there
were two others beyond. Fors levered himself up.
"What—" He was
still half asleep.
"My father wishes
to speak with you—"
Fors gathered his wits.
One of the men facing him now was a slightly older edition of his friend. But
the other wore about his throat a pair of silver wings fastened to a chain of
the same stuff.
The chieftain was
smaller than his sons and his dark skin was seamed and cracked by torrid winds
and blistering suns. Across his chin was the ragged scar of an old and badly
healed wound. Now and again he rubbed at this with a forefinger as if it still
troubled him.
"You are Fors of
the mountain clan?"
Fors hesitated. "I
was of those clans. But now I am outlaw—"
"The Lady Nephata
gave him earth—"
Arskane was both
interrupted and effectively silenced by a single sharp look from his father.
"My son has told us
something of your wanderings. But I would hear more of this Plainsmen
encampment and what chanced with you there—"
For the second time Fors
repeated his outline of recent events. When he had finished the Chief favored
him with the same sort of intimidating glare which had worked on his son a few
minutes before. But Fors met it forthrightly.
"You, Rance,"
the Chief turned to the young man with him, "will alert the scouts against
this trouble and make the rounds of the western outposts every hour. If an
attack offers, the two beacons on the round hills must be fired. That you must
keep ever in the minds of the men—"
"You see,
rover"—the Chief spoke over his shoulder, addressing a shadow near the
door, and for the first time Fors noted a fourth man there—"we do not go
to war as to a banquet—as these Plainsmen seem to do. But if it be necessary
then we can fight! We who have faced the wrath of the thunder lizards and taken
their hides to make our shields of ceremony—"
"Do not greatly
fear the lances of mere men." The Star Captain appeared faintly amused.
"Perhaps you are right, Lanard. But do not forget that the Beast Things
are also abroad and they are less than men—or more!"
"Since I have
ordered the war drums for more than the lifetime of this my youngest son, I do
not forget one danger when faced by another, stranger!"
"Your pardon,
Lanard. Only a fool tries to teach the otter to swim. Let war be left to the
warriors—"
"Warriors who have
sat too long at their ease!" snapped the chieftain. "To your posts,
all of you!"
Arskane and his brother
went, the chieftain stamping out impatiently after them. Fors started to
follow.
"Wait!"
There was the crack of a
whip in that one word. Fors stiffened. Jarl had no power of command over
him—not even the faintest shadow of power if he was an outlaw. But he dropped
his hand on Lura's head and waited.
"These
people," Jarl continued with the same harsh abruptness, "may be
broken between two enemies. It is not in their nature to back trail and in
their own country there has been nothing they could not vanquish. Now they have
come into this new land and fight on strange territory against those who are
familiar with it. They face worse than they can imagine—but if that truth is
told them they will not believe it."
Fors made no comment and
after a moment the Star Captain went on:
"Langdon was my
good friend always, but there was a streak of rashness in him and he did not
always see the road ahead with clear eyes—"
At this criticism of his
father Fors stirred but he did not speak.
"You have already,
youth that you are, broken the clan laws—going your own way in pride and
stubbornness—"
"I ask for nothing
of the Eyrie's giving!"
"That is as it may
be. I have twice heard your tale—you have a liking for this Arskane, I think.
And you have eyes and a talent for getting under the skin of a man. This Marphy
is one whom we might well remember. But Cantrul is a fighting man and of a
different breed. Give him something to fight and he may be more open to other
thoughts when the victory lies behind him. Very well, it is up to us to give
him something to fight—something other than this tribe!"
"What—?" Fors
brought only the one word out of his vast amazement.
"Beast Things. A
well-baited trail could lead them north to the Plains camp."
Fors began to guess what
was coming. He swallowed, his mouth and throat suddenly dry. To be bait for the
Beast Things, to run north a pace or two before the most hideous death he knew—
"Such a task could
be only ours alone—"
"You mean—not tell
Lanard?"
"It would be best
not. The plan would have no merit in their eyes now. You—you are an outlaw—a
stranger who might well have little stomach for a fight not his. If you were to
desert this camp, run away—"
Fors' nails bit into the
palms of his balled fists. To appear a skin-saving coward in Arskane's
eyes—just because Jarl had dreamed up so wild a plan—And yet part of him
acknowledged the point of the Star Captain's reasoning.
"If the Plainsmen
and this tribe fight—then it may well follow that the Beast Things shall finish
off both of them."
"You do not have to
point it out to me as one and one are two," Fors spat out.
Somewhere a childish
voice was humming. And the brother of that child had brought him whole out of
the valley of the lizards.
"When do I
march?" he asked the Star Captain, hating him and every word he himself
spoke.
Again Fors was grateful
for the mutation which had given him the keenness of his night sight. For
almost an hour he had been wriggling down an ancient roadside ditch as a
hanger-on of the small party of dark-skinned warriors whom Arskane now led. The
broken surface of the nearby road was steel bright in the beams of the full
moon, but he was sure that only he could see clearly what passed in the shadows
beyond.
He was glad for the
weight of bow and quiver across his shoulders—although the bow was the short,
double-stringed weapon of the southerners and not the long one he was
accustomed to. However, one sword was much like another and the new one at his
belt already fitted his hand as if it had been forged to rest therein.
If it had not been for
Jarl's plan he could have been really happy in that hour. To follow Arskane as
one of his own tribe—to be accepted without question by those around him—But he
was now pledged to put an end to that by his own actions—as soon as the time was
right. Jarl was scouting to the west, the same compulsion driving him. They
might be able to rendezvous after their break away from the tribe or they might
never see each other again. Fors sent a silent call to Lura. If they did strike
out into the wilderness tonight he would have to depend upon her wits and
instinct—even more than upon his own.
The old road curved
around the base of a rise. Fors stopped—had he really seen a flicker of
movement in a bush halfway up that hill? His hand fell on the ankle of the man
before him and he pressed hard, knowing that that signal would be as swiftly
passed down the line.
That flash of cream
white, that must be Lura crossing the road and heading up. But what he had
caught only the faintest glimpse of had been far above that. Lura should rout
it out—
There was a sudden
scurry on the slope and Fors saw the outline of a crouching body. The sharp
line of the thing's shoulders was only too familiar.
"Beast Thing!"
Lura's scream tore
through the air drowning out the warning he shouted. The bushes threshed wildly
at her attack. But she had had her instructions, not to kill now—only to harry
and drive. The black thing snapped up out of hiding, arms flailing as the men
around Fors went to their knees, arrows ready on strings. A cloud of feathered
shafts flew. Most, Fors guessed, had fallen woefully short. Shooting up slope
was always a tricky business.
The Beast Thing scuttled
away over the crown of the hill at a desperate speed. And it was gone before
other arrows could follow the first volley. Arskane edged along the line of
disappointed archers to join Fors.
"Was that a
scout?" he asked.
"Could be. They
have always hunted in packs before. If it was a scout, it will now
report."
Arskane chewed the tip
of his thumb thoughtfully. Fors knew the worries which plagued him now.
Ambush—that was the worst fear. They knew so little of the tactics of the Beast
Things—but lying in wait in the dark seemed to fit the nature of the foul
creatures best. In the ruined cities they had always fought from cover when
they could.
In the end Arskane did
as Fors thought he would, gave the signal to push on until they reached the
boundaries of their beat, one of the hills where the beacon had been heaped
some days before. So they crawled on, Lura flanking the line of march. And they
reached the beacon hill without interference. Once there, Arskane formally
relieved the guard on duty.
The hour was close to
dawn. A thin gray light gave ordinary trees and bushes a queer new life as if
they were now cut off from the real world by some flimsy barrier. The beacon
keepers had torn out or hacked away most of the brush and saplings, so that the
crown of the hill was bare and one could see for a good range on all sides.
Fors located the camp by
the river first and then set about noting other landmarks which might help him
keep the proper course if he decided to make the break north soon. The men whom
they had relieved were marching in fairly good order down the hill, ready to
drop into the protection of the road ditch, when the last one in that line
threw up his arms with a startled jerk and fell without a sound. The man
nearest him spun around just in time to see him fall and started back to his
aid, only to choke and go to his knees tearing at the dart quivering in his own
throat.
They broke and ran back.
But before they could reach the miserable shelter offered by the beacon, two
more died, Beast Thing steel in their contorted bodies. Only one lived to break
through to the men above.
And they, arrows ready,
stood cursing, unable to shoot at a foe which would not show itself.
Lura bounded out of
cover below. She crowded up to Fors, her blue eyes wide. Once getting his
attention her head swung meaningly from side to side. So, they were surrounded!
Maybe it was already too late to play the game Jarl had set him. But even as
that hope leaped he knew that he would have no escape—that this was just the
right sort of background for his break through—that this would truly bring the
Beast Things out on any trail he laid for them. He must openly desert
Arskane—perhaps even to the southerner's death!
"We are
surrounded." Tonelessly he passed on Lura's report.
Arskane nodded.
"That I thought when she came to us. Well, now we may be forced to the
waiting game." He turned to the men around him. "Down on your
bellies! Crawl to the brush. We are clear targets to them now."
But before those orders
were out of his mouth, the man beside him gave a gasping cry and held out his
arm, a dart embedded in its flesh. As one man they moved into what cover they
could find, Arskane pulling the wounded tribesman with him. But the cover of
the beacon was a sorry shield.
The worst was not being
able to sight the enemy. If they had been able to fight back it would not have
been such a strain on the nerves. Picked and seasoned warriors knew better than
to waste arrows on empty tree glades where nothing moved. It would be a battle
in which patience would mean the most.
Fors sent Lura on
another scouting trip. He must learn if there was any gap in the line the Beast
Things held. If there was he should cross, break out to start north. If he won
through they would probably wait to see if he headed for the river camp before
they followed. So he must give the impression from the first that he was
confused—then the sport of driving him might draw a portion of them after him.
During the morning there
were two more casualties. Arskane, on making the rounds from one hidden man to
another, found one dead with a dart pinning him down, and another with a torn
leg, bandaging his own wound. When he came back to Fors he was very sober.
"At noon the camp
will send us relief. If we light the beacon in warning they will prepare to
move camp and that may lead them straight into an ambush. But Karson thinks he
remembers something of the old smoke talk and he has volunteered to try it.
Only those who signal will be exposed to fire." The southerner scowled at
the silent woods. "We are but five now and two of those wounded. If we die
and the tribe is saved—what does it matter?"
Fors fought his impulse
to volunteer. He was sensitive to the slight hesitation with which Arskane
regarded him when he did not answer. Then the southerner turned and crawled to
the center of the beacon. Fors stirred. He might have gone after his companion had
he not caught sight of something else which brought him into a crouch, tense
and ready. Lura's head showed for the slightest instant below. She had found
the gap he had sent her to search for. Now he, too, began to work his way
around the hill to a point just above that section.
His dash would lead him
across an open space and he must not be brought down. If he could time it right
his move might draw fire which would otherwise be concentrated on the men at
the beacon. He licked dry lips. Bow and quiver must be left behind, leaving him
only sword and hunting knife.
Yes, he had not been
mistaken. Lura's brown ears showed again in outline against a moss-grown rock.
She was waiting for him. He gathered his feet under him, and, as an arrow from
a bow, he dashed out of cover and zigzagged down the slope. There was a single
shout of surprise from behind and then he was into the woods, Lura with him.
Now he was absorbed in
the task at hand. He burst through a screen of small trees, making only the
most elementary effort to hide his trail. Lura's warning that they were now
followed set his heart to pounding. Now—now it was just his own two feet, his
hunting lore, and his sense of direction against all the cunning of the enemy.
He must be a tempting morsel always just about to fall into the pursuers'
hands, and yet he must keep from capture and lead the run into Plains territory
so that Cantrul might be provoked into action. As Jarl had outlined it the plan
was as simple as it was deadly—but was it going to work?
There were short periods
during the rest of the day when he could snatch some rest, always after Lura
assured him that something still ran the trail behind. Once he dared verify
that for himself, having climbed a cliff after crossing a stream. He lingered in
a shallow crevice at the top long enough to see three gray shapes come out of
the woods a half mile back, the first on all fours sniffing the ground as it
came.
Three—out of how many?
But the beacon must have warned the camp. He must think of nothing else now but
his own task. If ever his eyes and ears served him well they must do better
than that now. As a fugitive gaining his second wind perhaps he would dare
display a little more cunning. The Beast Things might accept the idea that
sheer panic had brought him away from the beacon, but that would not prevent a
greater show of caution now. He tried several of the simpler trail-hiding
tricks and waited for Lura's verdict. It was favorable, the chase was still on.
Some hours before
evening he struck west, trying to intercept a line which must run to the beaver
lake and so to Cantrul's camp—unless the fire had driven the Plainsmen from
that base. He ate as he went, berries and handfuls of ripe grain pulled from
the ragged self-sown patches in the old fields. There were hard, half-ripe
peaches in an old orchard he pounded through and he had enough to keep him
going when washed down with water from brook and spring.
The night was the worst.
He had to lay up for rest, swinging into the branches of a tree, close enough
to an outcrop of rock to be able to leap away if the need came. Lura catnapped
on that rock, her brown and cream melting into the weathered stone. He dozed
and woke, to stretch cramped muscles and doze again. Before morning he moved
twice, putting a mile between each resting place and choosing each for the
ability to make a quick retreat.
When the gray of dawn
caught him again he was lying flat on a bluff overhanging a stream he was sure
was the outlet of the beaver lake. Pieces of charred wood caught among the
boulders below proved that. The size of the stream had dwindled, perhaps the
beavers had started repairs in the broken dam. Fors lay there, every aching
joint, every exhausted muscle protesting the move he was willing his body into
making. It was as if he had been running for days—since they had left the
ruined city they had been on the move with little or no rest. And none to look
for in the immediate future either—
Luckily he was facing
downstream, with his eyes on the moving surface, for now he saw what might have
been the strangest sight to ever appear on that forgotten shore. An animal was
swimming up river, nosing along the bank in a peculiar fashion, almost as if it
were intelligently questing. When it reached the spot between two stones where
Fors had knelt to drink before he climbed, it scrambled out of the water and
sat up on its haunches, its forepaws held close to its lighter underbelly, its
head high with sniffing nose testing the flowing air currents.
It was a rat—one of the
huge, gray-coated ones of the old breed with which man had fought eternal
warfare since the first days of time. A rat—Fors remembered back to the sunny
morning in the ruins of the old city shops when just such a beast had sat to
watch him without alarm. The rats flourished in the cities—everyone knew that.
But for the most part men did not see them—even there. Their ways were
underground, in the noisome burrows they had hollowed and claimed from cellar
to cellar, through the old sewers and waterways.
The rat shook itself.
Then the growing light brought a flash from its throat as it raised higher its
head. A metal collar—surely that was a metal collar. But a collar on a
rat—why—who—
Who lived in the cities?
Who might tame and use rats? He knew the answer to that. But why? The rat alone
was not a formidable fighter—not an ally as good as Lura—they were only to be
feared in hordes. Hordes!
The rat jumped to the
top of a boulder and began to lick itself dry, as if it had successfully
completed a set task and could now take time for its own concerns. Fors had not
been mistaken by some trick of the light—as the beast's head twisted and turned
the collar was easy to see. It was made of flat links and seemed flexible.
Suddenly the creature
stopped its grooming and crouched very still, its beady eyes aimed downstream.
Fors could not move. He had to see what was going to happen. And the same idea
flashed to his mind from Lura who was flattened out against the rock some feet
away, her lips frozen in a snarl.
They heard the splashing
first, a sound too regular to be natural. If he were wise he would leave now,
but he could not.
An ungainly figure came
skittering through the shallows around the waterworn rocks. Its shape was odd
but Fors peered until he made out that the hunched back of the creature was in
reality a basket cage. At its coming the collared rat showed its teeth wickedly
but it did not attempt to escape.
The Beast Thing came on,
leisurely reached out a long arm and picked up the rat by its collar while it
snapped its teeth and clawed wildly. With the ease of long practice the rat
master threw his captive through a trap door into the cage and snapped it shut
again. From the wild chattering which ensured Fors deduced that more than one
rat rode therein. But Lura was gliding away from her vantage point and he knew
that she was right. It was time for them to go.
But as he fled he
continued to wonder. Why the rats? Unless the Beast Things had rested and sent
the rats to trail him during the night. If that was true his taking to the
trees must have baffled them for a good while. Or did rats climb? He wished
that he knew more about their habits. And why had none of the Star Men
discovered during their brushes with the Beast Things this use of rats? Was it
new—another manifestation of the urge which was bringing the sub-human forces
out of their century old burrows to challenge the descendants of the Old Ones?
All the old tales about
the Beast Things went through his head as he mechanically set a trail which
would delay but not altogether throw off the pursuers. They were supposed to be
the offspring of city dwellers and perhaps invading soldiers as well caught in
the full strength of the radiation waves. Their children were so much mutant in
form and mind that they were no longer human at all. That was one explanation.
But there was another
story about them too. Before the Blow-up, men had been altering the very stuff
of life to suit their fancy, combining human and animal traits in curious and
bizarre ways. Could the ancestry of the Beast Things have included both men and
rats before radiation had done its deadly work?
Whichever theory was the
true one, the Beast Things, though they aroused revulsion and instinctive
hatred among the humans, were also victims of the Old Ones' tragic mistake, as
shattered in their lives as the cities had been.
Fors jogged into the
first section of the fire-swept land. Ahead lay a black and desolate waste. And
there was little or no cover left. He would have to dare discovery from the
rat-carrying Beast Thing and take to the riverside again.
The smell of burnt stuff
was thick in the air, the stench making him cough as much as the powdery ashes
which drifted up between his feet. Perhaps it was best to take to water. Here
and there a fallen tree still showed a heart of glowing coals.
Coughing, rubbing his
eyes to clear them, Fors scrambled over rocks and once even swam to breast the
current. Here water marks were high above the present level of the stream. It
was evident that the dam must have been at least partly repaired.
Then he clambered up
over that structure itself. Before him lay the lake, ringed completely around
with the black scar of fire. The beavers faced a famine season unless they
moved. It would be a full year before the saplings would begin to sprout again
and not for several generations would trees stand tall there once more.
Fors dove into the
water. Even here the smell of smoke and the tang of burning clung. There were
bodies floating too, a deer, a wild cow, and close to the far shore, a horse
bearing on its puffed flank the painted sign of the Plains camp. He swam by it
and headed up the feeder stream down which he and Arskane had won to freedom.
But before he left the lake he glanced back.
And over the beaver dam
was clambering the hunchbacked figure of the rat carrier. Behind it three
others came up. As they hesitated on the dam, teetering as if they feared
either the water or the still smoldering footing offered ashore, five more of
their kind appeared.
Fors drew back into a
half circle of rocks. Jarl's plan had succeeded. He had no way of guessing how
many of the Beast Things had ambushed the party at the beacon hill, but the
pack now running at his heels had numbers enough to interest Cantrul. The Beast
Things were dour and terrible fighters, and they were fighters who never wanted
to head an open attack. Their present openness showed how much they held him in
contempt. Fors watched, to see the rat cage unstrapped while its bearer went
over into the lake.
A comrade tore away part
of the dam's substance to make a raft to carry the cage. Then they were all
swimming, clumsily but surely, taking turns pushing the cage before them.
Fors took to his heels,
skidding over slime-coated stones, the stream rising from thigh to waist as he
panted through it and tried to dodge the smoking timber which had fallen across
the banks here and there.
The patch of green grass
he sighted where he had come to expect only the black of the burning was almost
a shock. But there were reeds standing tall and unscorched in a thick mass. He
plunged through them to shore. The mud bank beyond was thickly scored with
hoofprints, some still fresh, good evidence that the Plainsmen were still
there. Lura's tracks overlay the others and the marks of her claws on the clay
overhang were deep. Fors grabbed for the tough roots of a bush and pulled
himself up.
He pulled himself up and
took two steps. Then he tripped and rolled, his feet jerked out from under him.
And as he went down he heard the shrilling of a vicious laughter. His hand was
tight on his sword hilt and he had the blade out almost before he had again
sucked the air into his lungs. He came up, the bare blade in swing, ready and
waiting.
Fors saw what he knew
would be there—a ring of wiry gray bodies around him. The Beast Things must
have been concealed in the grass. A little beyond him, Lura—also a
captive—threshed, the noose tight about her neck as she clawed up great patches
of turf in her struggle for freedom.
Another jerk on the
trapping cord brought him sprawling forward to the accompaniment of inhuman
laughter. There was only one thing he could do now. Without trying to regain
his feet or even to get to his knees, Fors struggled across the ground on his
belly to Lura, a move which seemed to take his captors entirely by surprise.
None of them could prevent his sword biting through the cord which strangled
her. And his order had flashed from mind to mind in that same instant.
"Find Nag—and he
who hunts with Nag—find!"
She would be more likely
to join the other cat than go directly to Jarl. But where the black cat ran the
Star Captain would not be far away.
Lura's powerful legs
gathered under her. Then she sprang in a great arching leap, passing over the
head of one of the Beast Things. Free of their circle she went as a streak of
light fur into the grass and was lost. Fors took advantage of the excitement to
slash at the tangle of cord about his ankles and he had one foot free before
the rage of the Beast Things flamed and they concentrated again on the
remaining captive.
There was no hope now.
He wondered how many seconds of life he had before he would go down for the
last time, pin-cushioned by the darts they all held. But—when in doubt—attack!
The advice Langdon had once given him stiffened his sword arm now. Speed—Do as
much harm as he could. There was no chance of keeping alive until Lura found
Jarl but he could take some of these beasts with him.
With the same lithe
speed Lura had displayed he sprang at one of the circle, blade up and ready to
twist in the vicious thrust which was the most dangerous he knew. And almost he
made it, had his one foot not remained in bond. As it was he laid open gray
hide, not in the deep death-dealing gash he had planned, but in a shallow cut
which ran red half across the thing's bulbous pouch.
He ducked the blow aimed
at his head, ducked and struck up again. Then his sword arm went limp, the
blade falling out of his numbed fingers as a dart went home. A cuff delivered
across the side of his face before he could raise his left hand sent him
sailing back surrounded by a burst of red which turned into black nothingness.
Pain dragged him back, a
red agony of pain which ran through his veins like fire, a fire which ran from
his torn arm. He tried to move feebly and found that his ankles and wrists were
fast—he had been tied down, spread-eagled to stakes in the ground.
It was hard to get his
eyes open, the left eyelid was glued to his cheek. But now he was looking up
into the sky. So he was not dead yet, he thought dully. And since the tree he
could see was green he must still be close to the point where he had been
captured. He tried to raise his head, had one moment of blurred sight, and then
was so sick that he dropped it flat again and shut his eyes to hide reeling sky
and heaving ground.
Later there was
noise—much of it which rang in his head until he forced his eyes open again.
Beast Things were driving up another prisoner. By his hair dress he was a
Plainsman. And he was sent flat with a blow and pegged out beside Fors. The
Beast Things favored him with a couple of rib-cracking kicks before they left,
making suggestions in gestures—suggestions which did not promise well for the
future.
Fors' head felt thick
and tight, he could not force his thoughts together in the fog which seemed to
gather in his brain. It was better just to lie still and endure the pain in his
arm as best he could.
A shrill squeaking
pulled him out of the fog of pain and sickness. He turned his head to see the
wicker basket of rats a few feet away. The Beast Thing who had worn it on its
back gave a sigh of relief as it dropped its burden and joined the three or
four of its fellows who were lounging under a nearby tree. Their guttural
greeting meant nothing to Fors.
But through the open
slits of the basket cage he fancied he could see sparks of reddish light—small
wicked eyes watching him with a horrid kind of intelligence. All at once the
rats were quiet, save when at intervals one or another squeaked briefly as if
making some comment to its companions.
How long did they watch
each other? Time in true measure no longer existed for Fors. After a space the
Beast Things made a fire and broiled ragged pieces of meat, some still backed
with horsehide. When the scent of that reached the rats they went wild, running
about their cage until it rocked, squeaking at the tops of their thin voices.
But none of the masters made any move to share the feast with them.
When one was done it
came over to the cage and shook it, yelling. The rats were quiet, again their
eyes showed at the open spaces, looking now only at the prisoners—red eyes,
angry, hungry eyes.
Fors tried to tell
himself that what he suspicioned was not true, that in his torment he had no
control over imagination. Surely that Beast Thing had not made a promise then—a
promise which Fors dared not believe lest he lose all control over wits and
will.
But those red rat eyes
watched and watched. He could see the sharp claws pointing between the wicker
ribs, and the gleam of teeth—And always the watching eyes—
By the lengthening
shadow he guessed that it was far along in the afternoon when the third and
last party of Beast Things came into camp. And with them was the leader.
He was no taller than
other members of his tribe, but a certain arrogant confidence in his bearing
and stride made him seem to overtop the others. His hairless head was narrow
with the same slit nose and protruding fanged jaws, but the brain case was
domed, larger by half again over any of the rest. His eyes held a cunning
intelligence and there was a subtle difference in the way he looked over his
world. A true man—no, but neither was he as brutish as the pack he led. One
could almost believe that here lay the power which had brought the foul band
out to range the open lands.
Now he came to stand
between the two captives. Fors turned away from the rat cages to meet those
curious eyes firmly.
But the mountaineer
could read nothing understandable in their depths and the protruding jaws
expressed no emotion which might be deduced by a human. The leader of the Beast
Things might have been wildly elated, annoyed, or merely curious, as he stared
at first one and then the other of the staked-out prisoners. But curiosity must
have directed his next move for he dropped down crosslegged between them and
mouthed the first real words Fors had ever heard issue from one of the
city-bred monsters.
"You—where?"
He demanded that of the Plainsman who could not or would not answer.
When he did not reply
the Beast Leader leaned over and, with a deliberation which was as cruel as the
blow, slapped the captive with lip-bursting force across the mouth. It then
swung to Fors and repeated the question.
"From the
south—" Fors croaked.
"South," the
leader repeated, distorting the word oddly. "What in south?"
"Men—many, many
men. Ten tens of tens—"
But that sum was either
beyond the calculations of the creature beside him, or the Beast Thing did not
believe in its truth, for it cackled with a ghastly travesty of laughter and,
reaching out, brought a fist down across his wounded arm. Fors fainted,
dropping into blackness with a sick swoop.
A scream brought him
back to consciousness. He had the echoes of that cry still ringing through his
head when he forced open his eyes and tried to stabilize crazily flowing blocks
of light and shade. A second cry of pain and horror settled the world into
place.
The leader of the Beast
Things still squatted between the captives and in outstretched hand it held the
struggling body of one of the hungry rats. There was red on the vermin's fangs
and more scarlet drops spattered its breast and forepaws as it fought like a
mad thing against the hold which kept it from its prey.
Down the arm and side of
the Plainsman a line of dripping gashes told the story. His distorted face was
a mask of tortured despair as he cursed, his words a frenzied mumble which
soared into a scream every time the Beast Leader held the rat closer.
But a cry of pure rage
cut through the captive's breathless sobbing, a cry uttered by the leader. The
rat had turned to slash one of the fingers which held it. With a snarl the
Beast Leader twisted the writhing body. There was a cracking and the thing he
threw from him was limp and broken. He got to his feet, the torn finger at his
mouth.
A respite—for how long?
The Beast Things seemed to feel themselves safe in this camping site they had
chosen. They were not moving on for the night—but just as Fors decided that,
the picture changed suddenly. Two more of the enemy came out of the bush and
between them they pulled along a mangled, trodden body—the body of one of their
own kind. Over this there was a hasty consultation and then the leader barked
an order. The bearer of the rat cage took up its burden and four of the largest
of its fellows came over to the captives.
Knives slashed free
their bonds and they were pulled and slapped to their feet. When it was
apparent that neither could walk, there was a second conference. From gestures
Fors gathered that one party was in favor of killing them at once, but that the
leader opposed this. And in the end the leader carried the debate. Two of the
clan trotted off and returned shortly with stout saplings which were trimmed of
branches. And in a moment or two Fors found himself lashed to one of these,
dangling face to the ground, carried between two of the Beasts who moved on
with their deceptively easy pace.
He never remembered much
of that night. The bearers of his pole changed from time to time, but he swung
in a daze, rousing only when he was dropped painfully to the ground during
these operations. And they must have been halted for some time when he became
aware of the sound.
He was on the ground,
his ear tight to the earth. And at first he thought that the pounding beat he
heard must be the heated blood running in his own feverish body—or else that it
was but another shadowy bit of a delirious nightmare. But it
continued—steadily—alive—alive, and somehow reassuring. Once, long before, he
had heard a sound like that—it had had a meaning. But the meaning was lost. Now
he was only aware of his body, the mass of pain which had become a thing apart
from Fors. Fors was gone away—far away from that pain—what remained could not
think—could only feel and endure.
Why, now that distant
throbbing was broken by another, a deeper, heavier beat—two sounds. And he had
once known them both. But neither mattered now. He must watch red eyes which
stared at him from space in wickerwork, red, hungry eyes which watched and
waited, growing still more starved and demanding. And in the end those eyes
would come closer and closer and teeth would be with them. But that did not
matter very much either.
Somewhere there was
shouting, it tore a hole through his head, made his ears ring. But it did not
frighten the eyes, they still watched and waited.
The throbbing, now it
filled the air, beating into him. Why, he was up now, being held on his feet by
rough hands. He was being tied fast again—or so he thought, he was too numb to
feel bonds. But he was standing right enough, looking down from the crest of a
hill.
And he watched the dream
roll on—the dream which had nothing to do with him. There were horsemen down
there, riding in a charging wave. Around and around they were circling. He
closed his eyes to the glare of light. Around and around—almost they were
passing in answer to the beat—almost but not quite. The beat was not coming
from the horsemen—it had another source.
Fors hung unresisting.
But a tiny spark of the real Fors was moving in the broken, hurting body. Now
he forced open his eyes and there was intelligence and purpose looking out of
them.
The horsemen were
keeping in their moving circle and as they rode they hurled spears up the
grade. But among the horsemen others tramped now, men who ran lightly with
ready bows. And the arrows made a cloud against the sun. The noose of men and
horses drew smaller and tighter about the hill.
Then Fors realized
suddenly that his body was part of the defense wall of those besieged here,
that he had been fastened up for a screen behind which the dart throwers could
crouch in safety. And those darts, expertly aimed, were taking toll below. Man
and horse went down to cry and kick or lie still. But that did not halt the
circle, nor deaden the flying arrows.
Once there was a loud
screech of anguish and a body fell out from behind the barrier of which he was
a part. On hands and knees it blundered downhill, heading for one of the nimble
archers. They met in a headlong crash of fighting rage. Then a horseman swung
low from the saddle and used his lance expertly. Both bodies lay still as he
rode on.
A heavy blow landed on
Fors' side. He forgot about the fighting as he looked down. His own arm hung
there, free, a dead weight with the cut thong still ringing the purple swollen
wrist. Arrow or spear had cut that tie. He ceased to have any interest in the
battle—his world narrowed in that instant to the one free hand. In the puffed
flesh there was no feeling, he could not even move it yet. So he concentrated
on the fingers, he must move his thumb, his forefinger—even a fraction of an
inch—he must!
There! He could have
shouted at his success. The arm still was limp and heavy against his side but
he had clawed the fingers against his thigh. One hand and arm free—and it was
his right—the unhurt one! He turned his head. His other wrist was fast to
another sapling post driven into the ground. But the very way the Beast Things
were using him, as part of their defense works, was now in his favor. The left
arm was not stretched full length from his shoulder. If he could bring the
right fingers up, bring them up and make them work, he was sure he could
unfasten that one too.
The barrier of which he
was now a part must have screened his actions from his captors—or else they
were too occupied to take any interest in him. He was able to bring the hand
across, bring it across and force the fingers to the bonds on his left wrist.
But it was another thing to untie the cords there. His numb fingers could not
even feel and they kept slipping off.
He fought against his
own stubborn and mistreated flesh, fought a battle as hard as the one raging
about him. Arrows thudded home inches away, one of the spears brought a gasp of
pain from him as the shaft struck full across his shin, but he willed his hand
to the work. The torture of returning circulation hit full, but he made himself
think only of those painful fingers and what he must have the courage and
patience to make them do.
Then, all at once,
something gave. He held an end of loose hide and his left arm fell inert as he
gritted his teeth against the pain brought by that sudden release. But there
was no time to nurse it now, he went down to the ground. In their haste the
Beast Things had set but one loop of the hide around his ankles. He sawed at it
with the edge of an arrowhead until it parted.
It would be safer to
stay where he was for the moment. The Beast Things could not get at him without
climbing the barrier and thus exposing themselves. And, flat to the ground as
he was, he might escape the worst of the hail from below. So, too shaky to move
or even to think clearly, he continued to cower where he had fallen.
After a space of time
Fors was aware of another sound, coming through the din. He turned his head a
fraction of an inch and was face to face with the rat cage. It, too, had been
added to the breastworks. And the prisoners within it were racing about, their
frenzied squeaking born of fear and hate loud enough to reach his ears. The
sight of those obscene, too plump bodies aroused him as nothing else could have
done and he hitched away from the swaying cage.
Where was the other
prisoner—the Plainsman? Fors levered up cautiously on his elbows to see some
distance away a fallen head and limp body. He allowed his head to sink back on
his arms. He could move now—after a fashion—both legs and one arm would obey
him. He could roll down the hill—
But that Plainsman—still
exposed to certain death—
Fors began to creep,
past the cage of rats, past a bundle of brush, a lopsided, hastily planted
stockade of saplings, past the stuff the Beast Things had grabbed up and thrown
together in an attempt to keep out arrows and spears. He traveled only a few inches
at a time and there were long pauses between those inches. But he gained
ground.
A dart struck the earth
just beyond his straining hand. The Beast Things were aware of him at last and
were trying to bring him down. But the one who exposed itself in such a try
fell back choking, an arrow through its throat. It was not wise to give the
archers below even a partial target. Fors crawled on.
He was confident now
that he could reach the Plainsman. And he paid no attention to what chanced
below or inside the stockade. He must save all strength and will for his
journey.
Then he was squatting at
a pair of bound ankles—reaching up for knots which held torn wrists. But his
hands fell back. Two arrows held the captive pinned more securely than any hide
rope. The Plainsman would never need help now.
Fors sank onto the rough
trampled soil. The will and purpose which had driven him went out as strength
of body flows out of an open wound. He could feel them ebbing and he did not
care.
Mountain rocks rose up
about him and across crags the gray flags of a storm flew their tatters. He
could hear the howl of wind down one of the narrow valleys, see the gathering
of the black clouds. It must be winter for those were snow clouds. It would be
well to head back to the protection of the Eyrie—back to the fires and stout
stone walls—before those winds bit and the snow fell.
Back to the Eyrie. He
did not know that he was on his feet now—no more than he knew that behind him
there came cries of consternation and red rage as the Beast Thing leader went
down to death under a chance arrow. Fors did not know that he was tottering
down the slope, his empty hands out, while over the barrier behind him boiled a
rabble of maddened, long-armed things intent on taking vengeance with fangs and
claws, blind now to the precaution which had kept them safe.
Fors was walking a
mountain trail and Lura was beside him. She had caught his hand in her mouth to
lead him—which was right for the snow or the wind was blinding him and it was
hard to keep on the trail. But the Eyrie lay just ahead and Langdon was waiting
for him. Tonight they would study together that tiny scrap of map—a map of a
city which lay on the shores of a lake. Langdon was going to put that map to
the test soon. And after he, Fors, had been accepted by the Star Men he would
also follow old maps—follow and find—
His hand went
uncertainly to his head. Lura was hurrying him so. She wanted the fire and the
meat. It was not right to keep Langdon waiting. Because somewhere there was a
city waiting, too, a city of tall towers and filled storehouses, cracked roads
and forgotten wonders. He must tell Langdon all about it. But that was not
right—the city belonged to Langdon—not to him. He had never seen a ruined city.
The storm must be making him lightheaded.
He staggered, one of the
Beast Things aimed a blow at him as it passed to join the fighting mob below.
So many rocks—he had
trouble keeping to his feet among these rocks. He'd best be careful. But he was
going home. There were the fires—showing brightly through the dark. And Lura
still held his hand. If the wind would only die down a little—the sound of it
was wild and strange—almost like the battle cries of an army. But there stood
the Eyrie—right there—
It was late afternoon.
Smoke curled up from a ceremonial fire. Fors looked downslope to where green
grass had been ground into a pulp by the pressure of many feet. And that pulp
was stained with stale splotches of red. But the men below were squatting
unconcernedly on it—their eyes only for each other. Two lines—facing across the
fire warily—weapons unsheathed and to hand. Between those lines were the
chieftains of the tribes. But both sides bore the scars of a hard fight and
there were holes in the ranks which would never be filled again.
Fors forgot his own
bruises as he watched Arskane step into place at the right of his father. The
woman chief who had given the mountaineer the rights of the tribe was there,
too, her robe a spark of bright color among the drabness of the hide jerkins
and the tanned skins of the men.
And opposed was Marphy
and his fellow long robe. Only Cantrul was missing. The heads of family clans
had usurped the place the High Chief should have held.
"Cantrul—?"
From beside Fors, Jarl
made answer to that half question.
"Cantrul was a
warrior—and as a warrior he entered on the long trail in a fitting
fashion—taking a goodly number of the enemy with him. They have not yet raised
up a new High Chief in his place."
What else the Star
Captain might have added was blotted out in a roll from the talking drums, a
roll which wrung harsh echoes from the surrounding hills. And when those faded,
Lanard edged forward, though he needs must lean upon the arm of his son to
spare weight from a leg which was bandaged from knee to ankle.
"Ho—warriors!"
His voice followed the drums' beat in its force. "Here have we carried
spears to a great killing and given the death birds a feast beyond the memory
of our father's fathers! From the south have we marched to this war and victory
is ours. Our arrows have struck full upon their marks and our swords have been
blooded to their hilts. It this not so, my brothers?"
And out from the ranks
of his tribe behind him came a low growl of agreement. Here and there some of
the younger men cried the shrill war slogan of a family clan.
But from the ranks of
the under chieftains in the mass of the Plainspeople arose another man and he
answered with prideful words of his own:
"Lances bite as
deep as swords, and the Plainsmen have never known fear of a fight. Death birds
eat today from our providing also. We stand shame-filled in the sight of no
man!"
Someone began the war
song Fors had heard on his night of captivity among the tents. Hands were
reaching for bows and lances. Fors got to his feet, forcing his body to obey
his will. He pushed aside the hand the Star Captain put out to stay him.
"There is a fire
breaking out here," he said slowly. "If it comes to full flame it may
eat us all up. Let me go—!"
But as he half staggered
down the slope to the council fire, he sensed that the Star Captain was still
at his back.
"You have
fought!"
From somewhere within
him that clear cold voice had come at his willing—It was a chill wind to cut
through the evil vapors of a swampland. In his head the thoughts Arskane had
planted long ago were coming to life so clearly that he was confident at last
of their truth and rightness.
"You have
fought!"
"Ahhh—" That
answering sound was close to the purr which Lura might voice when remembering
her hunt.
"You have
fought," he repeated for the third time and knew that he had them now.
"The Beast Things are dead. These Beast Things—"
That accented word have
riveted their full attention.
"You have looked
upon the enemy slain—is that not so? Well, I have lain in their hands—and the
horror that you know is tenfold in my memory. But I say that you might also
look in fear as well as in pride of your victory, for there lies among them a
dire promise. My fathers' fathers fought with these creatures—when still they
held to their home burrows. My father died under their claws and fangs. Long
have we known them. But now there has been born amongst them something
stronger—something which threatens us as the burrow creepers of old never did.
Ask it of your wise men, warriors. Ask them what they found in the circle of
the dead within that barrier up there—what may come again to plague us in
future years. Tell these your people, oh, healer of bodies." He addressed
himself to the Plains white robe. "And you, oh, Lady." He spoke to
the woman chief. "What have you seen?"
It was the woman who
replied first.
"I saw and heard
many things. In the seeing there was nothing to doubt. I hope with all my heart
that your notions are mistaken. There lay among the Beast dead one who was
different. And if the fates are against us, then this one will be born again
among them—again and again. And, its knowledge being greater, so will it prove
a worse menace to us and all human beings. Thus, because this may be true, I
say that those who are humankind must stand together and put a united sword
wall against these things bred out of the ancient evil of the cities which was
sown by the Old Ones—"
"It is true that
mutants may come of mutant stock." The white robe spoke after her almost
against his will. "And these Beast Things were led and ordered as never
has their race been before. When their strange chief fell they were broken, as
if their knowledge was all blotted out in that single death. If they breed more
such as he, then they shall prove a force we must reckon with. We know but
little of these creatures and what their powers may be. How can we guess now
what we shall be called to go up against a year, ten years, a generation from
now? This land is wide and there may be much hiding within its vastness which
is a menace to our breed—"
"The land is
wide," Fors repeated. "What do you and your tribe seek for here,
Lanard?"
"A homeland. We
search out a place to build our houses and sow our fields anew, to pasture our
sheep and dwell in peace. After the burning mountains and quaking land drove us
forth from the valley of our fathers—the sacred place where their machines
landed from the sky at the end of the Old Ones' war—we have wandered many
circles of the seasons. Now in these wide fields, along the river, we have
found what we have sought for so long. And no man or beast shall drive us from
it!" As he ended, his hand was on his sword hilt and he stared straight
along the ranks of the Plainsmen.
Fors turned now to
Marphy: "And what do your people seek, Marphy of the plains?"
The Recorder raised his
eyes from the ground where a pattern of crushed grass blades had apparently
held his attention.
"Since the days of
the Old Ones we of the Plains have been a roving people. First we were so
because of the evil death which abode in the air of many quarters of the land,
so that a man must be on the move to shun those places where plagues and the
blue fires waited to slay him. We are now hunters and rovers and herdsmen,
warriors who care not to be tied to any camp. It is in us to travel far, to
seek new places and new hills standing high against the sky—"
"So." Fors let
that one word fall into the silence of those war-torn ranks.
It was a long minute
before he spoke again. "You," he pointed to Lanard, "wish to
settle and build. That is your nature and way of life. You"—it was Marphy
he turned to now—"would move, grazing your herds and hunting. These,"
he bent a stiff arm painfully to gesture up the hill to that uneven pile of
earth and stone under which lay the bodies of the Beast Things, "live to
destroy both of you if they can. And the land is wide . . . "
Lanard cleared his
throat—the sound was sharp and loud. "We would live in peace with all who
raise not the sword against us. In peace there is trade, and in trade there is
good for all. When the winter closes in and the harvest has been poor, then may
trade save the life of a tribe."
"You are warriors
and men," the woman chief of the Dark People broke in, her head high, her
eyes straight as she measured the line of strangers facing her. "War is
meat and drink at the table of men—yes—but it was that which brought the Old
Ones down! War again, men, and you will destroy us utterly and we shall be
eaten up and forgotten so that it shall be as if man had never lived to walk
these fields—leaving our world to the holding of those!" She pointed to
the Beast Things' mound. "If now we draw sword against one another then in
our folly we shall have chosen the evil part for the last time, and it is better
that we die quickly and this earth be clean of us!"
The Plainspeople were
quiet until along the ranks of the men a murmur arose and it spread to where
their women were gathered. And the voices of the women grew louder and
stronger. From their midst arose one who must have ruled a chieftain's tent
since there was gold binding her hair:
"Let there be no
war between us! Let there be no more wailing of the death song among our tents!
Say it loudly, oh, my sisters!" And her appeal was taken up by all the women,
to be echoed until it became a chant as stirring as the war song.
"No more war! No
more war between us!"
So did the cup of blood
and brotherhood pass from chief to chief on the field and the ranks of the Dark
Ones and the Plainsmen were made one by the ritual so that never again might
man of one raise lance against man of the other.
Fors sank down upon a
flat-topped rock. The strength which had upheld him drained away. He was very
tired and the excitement beyond no longer had anything to do with him. He had
no eyes for the melting of the stiff tribal lines and the mingling of clan and
people.
"This is but a
beginning!" He identified the quick eager voice of Marphy and looked
around slowly, almost sullenly.
The Plainsman was
talking to Jarl, gesturing, his eyes bright. But the Star Captain was his usual
calm contained self.
"A beginning, yes,
Marphy. But we still have much to master. If I may see those northern records
of yours. We of the Star House have not penetrated that far—"
"Of course. And—"
Marphy seemed hesitant before he plunged into his counter request—"that
cage of rats. I have had it brought into my tent. There are three still alive
and from them we may learn—"
Fors shivered. He
had no desire to see those captives.
"You claim them as
your spoil of war?"
Marphy laughed.
"That I shall do. And other spoil beside the vermin shall we ask for—a
greater gift from you. This fellow rover of yours—"
He touched gentle
fingers to Fors' stooped shoulder. It seemed to the mountaineer that Jarl
displayed a flash of surprise.
"This one has the
gift of tongues and the mind which sees. He shall be a guide for us."
Marphy's words spilled out as if now that he had a kindred spirit in which to
confide he could no longer bottle his thoughts. "And in return we shall
show him strange lands and far places. For it is in him to be a rover—even as
we are—"
Jarl's fingers plucked
at his lower lip: "Yes, rover was he born, and in him flows Plains blood.
If he—"
"You forget."
Fors did not force a smile this time. "I am mutant."
Before either man could
answer someone else came up—Arskane. His face still bore the marks of the fight
and he favored his shoulder as he moved. But when he spoke it was with an
assumption of authority which he plainly did not expect to have disregarded.
"We break camp to
march—I have come for my brother!"
Marphy bristled.
"He rides with us!"
Fors' laugh had no humor
in it. "Since I cannot travel on my feet I shall be a drag in any
company—"
"We shall rig a
pony litter," was Arskane's quick reply.
"There are also
horse litters," began Marphy jealously.
Jarl moved. "It
seems that you now have a choice to make," he observed dispassionately to
Fors. For a moment it seemed to the younger mountain man that only the two of
them were there. And neither Arskane nor Marphy pressed his claim farther.
Fors held his free hand
to his swimming head. He had Plains blood from his mother—that was true. And
the wild free life of the roving horsemen appealed to him. If he went with
Marphy no secrets of the ruined country would be hidden from him now—he could
learn much. He could make such maps as even the Star Men had never dreamed of
possessing, see forgotten cities and loot them for his pleasure, always going
on to new country beyond.
If he took the hand
Arskane had half offered in support a few minutes ago he would be accepting
brotherhood and the close-knit ties of a family clan such as he had never had.
He would know all warmth of affection, and go to build a town, maybe in time a
city, which would mark the first step back along the road the sins of the Old
Ones had lost for their sons. It would be a hard life but, in its way, a
rewarding one, as adventurous—though he would never rove far—as Marphy's.
But—there was the third
road. And it ran from a choice he knew only too well. When he thought he was
dying—back there during the battle—his feet had taken it without his will. It
led to the rare coldness of the mountain heights, into the austere chill of
punishment and hurt and eternal discouragement.
So when he raised his
head he dared not look at Arskane or Marphy, but he found and held Jarl's
uncompromising eyes as he asked:
"It is true that I
am outlawed?"
"You have been
called three times at the council fire."
He recognized flat truth
and accepted it. But he had another question:
"Since I was not
there to answer in my own voice I have the right of appeal for the period of
six moons?"
"You have."
Fors picked at the sling
which bound his left arm across his chest. There was an even chance that it
would heal straight and strong again. The healer had promised him that after
probing the wound.
"I have then,"
he found that he had to stop and work out his words, to regain discipline over
his voice, "I shall go and claim that right. Six moons are not yet
gone—"
The Star Captain nodded.
"If you can travel in three days' time you will make it."
"Fors!" At
that protest from Arskane, the mountaineer winced. But when he turned his head
his voice still held firm.
"It was you
yourself, brother, who spoke of duty once—"
Arskane's hand dropped.
"Remember—we be brothers, you and I. Where lies my hearth—there is your
place waiting." He went and he did not look back, he was swallowed up in
the throng of his tribesmen.
Marphy came to life. He
shrugged. Already he was intent on other plans, other enthusiasms. But he
lingered long enough to say:
"From this hour on
for you there runs a mount in my herd and the promise of meat, and shelter in
my tent. Look for the Standard of the Red Fox when you have need of aid, my
young friend." His hand sketched a half salute as he strode away.
Fors spoke to the Star
Captain: "I shall go—"
"With me. I have
also a report to make to the tribe—we journey together."
Was that news good or
otherwise? Under other circumstances Fors could have longed for no greater
pleasure than to travel in the company of the Star Captain. But now he went in
a manner as Jarl's prisoner. He sat glumly looking over the battlefield—only a
small scrimmage—one which the Old Ones, with their fleets in the air and their
armed columns on land, would not even have mentioned. Yet here a full-sized war
had been fought and out of it had come an idea—perhaps one which would prove
the starting point for men. It would be a long weary trail for them to
travel—the road back to such a world as the Old Ones had known. And maybe not
even the sons' sons' sons of those who had fought here would live to see more
than the glimmerings of its beginning growth. Or maybe the world which would
come would be a better world.
The Plainsmen and the
Dark Ones were still suspicious, still wary of one another. Soon the tribes
would separate for a space. But, perhaps in six months' time, a party of
Plainsmen would venture again to the south, to visit the bend in the river and
see with wondering eyes the cabins which stood there. And one rider would trade
a well-tanned hide for a clay dish or a string of colored beads to take home to
astonish his women. Afterward would come others, many others, and there would
in time be marriages between tent and cabin. And in fifty years—one nation.
"There will be one
nation." Fors hunched on the riding pad of the steady old horse Marphy had
forced upon him. Two days had sped but the tramped earth would show scars for a
long time.
Jarl shot a measuring
glance over the field they crossed.
"And how many years
pass before such a miracle?" he inquired with his old irony.
"Fifty—fifty
years—perhaps—"
"If nothing
intervenes to stop them—yes—you may be right."
"You are thinking
of the Beast Thing mutant?"
Jarl shrugged. "I
think that he is a warning—there may be other factors to set barriers in the
way."
"I am mutant."
For the second time Fors made that bitter statement and he spoke it again
before the one person he wished had never known of his difference.
Jarl did not rise to the
bait. "I have been thinking that we may all be mutants. Who is to say now
that we are of the same breed as the Old Ones? And I am of the belief that it
is time we all face that fact squarely. But this other—this Beast Thing—"
And he proceeded to drown Fors in a barrage of questions which drew out of him
all that he had observed while a prisoner of the enemy.
Two days later the
mountains stood sharply outlined against the sky. Fors knew that by nightfall,
it they kept the pace they had held through the journey, they would be past the
outposts of the Eyrie. He fumbled awkwardly with his one hand at his belt and
pulled his sword from the sheath. As Jarl caught up to him he held it out, hilt
first.
"Now I am your
prisoner." He did not have to steady his voice, it was naturally so. It
was as if he no longer cared what happened to him during the next few days.
This was a piece of unfinished living which must be completed before he left it
behind him. But he was impatient now to have it over, to be read out of the tribe
as an outlaw, to go into the wilderness again—he was ready and unafraid.
Jarl took his sword
without a word and Fors glanced beyond the Star Captain to the waiting Lura.
She was tugging in his mind, suddenly weary of the leash of loyalty which had
held her to him through all these days of danger. She wanted the mountains,
too, in a different way—the mountains and her freedom. He gave it to her with a
single shaft of thought and she was gone that same instant. And because he had
released her so willingly he knew that she would return as willingly when she
had followed her own desire to its end.
After that Fors rode in
a kind of dream. He paid little or no attention to the men of the Eyrie who
came out of their scout posts to greet the Star Captain. They did not speak to
him and he had no wish for them to do so. His impatience to come to the judging
only burned the stronger in him.
He was alone at last in
the inner chamber of the Star House, that same chamber which he had violated.
The empty hook where Langdon's star pouch had once hung was a mute reminder of
that offense. Too bad his venture had failed so completely. He would never be
able now to prove the truth of his father's dream. But even that thought did
not prick him overmuch. He could go out again—and not by any favor of the
council men.
There was the reflection
of the council fire on the naked rock of the mountain wall out there. The
elders were gathering to judge him. But it would be the Star Men who would have
the final voice against him. It was the Star House he had looted, the Star
tradition and mysteries he had flouted.
At an almost soundless
footfall in the outer room Fors turned his head. One of the Star Novices had
come for him—Stephen of the Hawk Clan. Fors followed him out into the circle of
firelight, walled in by rows of white blurs which were faces without
expression.
The elders were
together, all of them, Healer, Recorder, Master of the Fields, Commanders of
the Hunters and Defenders. And behind them were the tillers, the hunters, the
scouts and guards. On the other side was the solid block of Star Men, Jarl at
their head.
Fors came out on the
smooth shelf of rock alone, his silver head high, his back and shoulders
straight.
"Fors of the Puma
Clan—" That was Horsford, the Eyrie Guardian.
Fors made courteous
salute.
"You stand here
because you have defied the traditions of the Eyrie. But against the wearers of
the Star was your greater offense. So now it is the decision of the Council
that the Star Men shall be given the right to pronounce against you and they
shall deal with you as they see fit."
Short and to the point.
And fair enough, he had expected little else. So now what did the Star Men wish
for him? It was up to Jarl. Fors turned to the tall Captain.
But Jarl was staring
beyond him at the leaping flames. And so did they wait in silence for a long,
long moment. When the Star Captain spoke it was not to pass sentence but to
catch the attention of all who gathered there.
"We come, men of
the Eyrie, to a place where two roads separate before us. And upon our choice
of them depends the future of not only the clans gathered here, but also that
of all true men in this land, perhaps on this earth. Therefore tonight I am
breaking a solemn vow, the oaths taken in my green youth—that secret which has
made of my kind men apart. Listen, all of you, to the inner story of our Stars.
"Now we who wear
them are hunters of dim trails, seekers of lost knowledge. But once this,"
his hand went to the star, bright and hot in the firelight, at his throat,
"had another meaning. Our forefathers were brought to this mountain hiding
place because they were designed to be truly men of the Stars. Here were they
being trained to a life which would be theirs on other worlds. Our records tell
us that man was on the eve of conquering the planets, and even the stars, when
his madness fell upon him and he reached again for slaying weapons.
"We who were meant
to roam the stars go now on foot upon a ravaged earth. But above us those other
worlds still hang, and still they beckon. And so is the promise still given. If
we make not the mistakes of the Old Ones then shall we know in time more than
the winds of this earth and the trails of this earth. This is the secret we now
publish abroad so that all men may know what was lost to us with the dread
folly of the Old Ones and to what we may aspire if we make not the same error
in our turn."
Fors' fingers clenched
until nails bit into his palms. So this was what man had thrown away! The same
longing which had torn him on the field of the dead, bombed plains came to him
again. They had been so great in their dreams—the Old Ones! Well, men must
dream again.
"We stand before
two roads, my people," Jarl repeated slowly. "And this time we must
take a better choice. It is the will of the Star Men that Fors of the Puma
Clan, being of mixed blood and clan, shall no longer be held as lesser than we,
in spite of the laws of our fathers. For now has come the time to break such
laws.
"From this hour
forth he shall be set apart in a different fashion. For he shall be one who
will carry the knowledge of one people to another, binding together in peace
swords which might be raised in war.
"A mutant may have
skills which will serve his tribe well. And so do we urge a new law—that a
mutant be deemed a full man. And if he is born in a clan, then is he to be
counted a man of that clan. Which of us can prove—" Jarl swung around to
face the throng from which was now arising a growing murmur, whether of assent
or dissent who could tell—"which of us can prove that we are of the same
breed as the Old Ones? Do we wish to be as the Old Ones? Our fathers threw away
the stars—remember that!"
It was the Healer who
answered him. "By nature's laws, if not man's, you speak the truth. It is
guessed that men are different today from what they once were. A mutant—"
He coughed behind his hand. "Truly any here might be termed mutant to some
degree."
Horsford held up his
hand to still the babble of sound. His powerful voice boomed around the circle.
"There has been a
weighty thing done here tonight, brothers. The Star Men have broken faith with
the past. Can we do less? They speak of two roads—I shall speak of growing. We
have put our roots in narrow and stony ground. We have held stubbornly to it.
But now comes a time when we must move or die. For the only end to growth is
death. And in the name of the Council I am choosing growth. If the stars were
once promised us—then shall we reach for them again!"
Someone raised a
cheer—it came from the outer edges where the youths stood. And that cheer
gathered voices and grew. Men were on their feet now, their voices eager, their
eyes alight. Never had this reserved and serious people seemed so like their
cousins of the Plains. The tribe was coming to a new life.
"So be it,"
Jarl's voice broke through the din. At his gesture of command some of it died
away. "From this hour we shall walk new ways. And in remembrance of that
choice do we now set upon Fors a star which is like unto no other worn here.
And in his turn, when the time comes, he shall raise up those who will wear it
after him. Thus there will be always those among us who shall speak with other
peoples as a friend, think with neutral minds, and hold the peace of nations in
their hands!"
Jarl came to Fors
holding out a chain from which hung a star, not of five points but of many, so
that it was a compass sign pointing in all directions at once. And this fell
cool and smooth below the mutant's throat.
Then the tribe shouted
the cry which was the welcome to a Star Man newly raised up. But in this too
there was a difference. For now was born a new star and from it would follow
what no man standing there that night might rightly foresee—not even he who
wore it as a trust.
The thick plume of the greasy-looking black smoke
rising from beyond the ridge was warning enough. Sander slipped off Rhin, crept
up-slope, his mount padding behind him with the same caution. They had seen no
campsite for days, and the provision bag, still knotted to the pad strapped
about Rhin, was empty. Hunger was a discomfort within Sander. This land had
been singularly empty of game for the past twenty-four hours. And a handful or
two of barely ripe grain, pulled out of a straggle of stalks, was far from
filling.
Five days ago Sander had
passed the boundaries of the territory known to Jak's Mob. When he had ridden
out of the ring of tents, blackly bitter at his treatment, he had swung due
east, heading for the legendary sea. Then it had seemed possible that he could
achieve his purpose—to find the ancient secrets whereby he could better forge
the metal brought by Traders, so that, upon his return, he could confront
Ibbets and the others and force from them an acknowledgment that he was not an
apprentice of little worth, but a smith of the Old Learning. This long trek
through a wilderness he did not know had taught him caution, though it had not
yet dampened the inner core of his rebellion against Ibbets's belittling
decision.
Now he wedged his
shoulders between two rocks, pulling his hood well down over his face so that
its gray color would blend well with the stones around him. Though he was no
hunter by training, each member of the Mob was lessoned from childhood in the
elements of hiding-out when confronted by the unusual. He would not move until
he could make very sure there was no danger ahead.
Below lay a wide valley
down which a river angled. And where that opened into a much larger bowl of
water (of which he could see only one shoreline, the one into which the river
cut), there stood a collection of buildings, a small village. Those log-walled
shelters appeared to be permanent, unlike the hide tents of the Mob that were
easily moved from one place to another. However, small sullen tongues of fire
now showed here and there, threatening to destroy the buildings.
Even from this distance
Sander sighted what could only be a huddle of bodies lying along the river
bank. There had been a raid, he deduced. Maybe the dreaded Sea Sharks of the
south had struck. He doubted there was any life left in that collection of
huts.
The fire burned slowly,
mainly along the river bank and the shoreline of the large body of water
beyond. There were a few buildings seemingly still untouched. They would have
been looted, of course. Still, there was a chance that not all of the
provisions collected by those settled here had been carried away. And this was
harvest season. His own people (or those whom he had believed to be his close
kin—he grimaced at that thought) had been engaged in late season hunts and the
drying of meat when he had ridden out.
Though the nomadic Mob
roamed the wide inner lands, Sander had heard enough tales from the Traders to
know that elsewhere men lived differently. In some places clans had settled
permanently upon the land, planting and tending food which they grew. Here, in
this near-destroyed settlement, they must also have fished. His stomach growled
and he shifted a little, surveying the scene of the raid carefully to make sure
that if he did go down he was not running into trouble.
Rhin whined deep in his
throat, nudged Sander with his muzzle. His yellow-brown coat was already
thickening with new winter growth. Now his jaws opened a little, his pointed
tongue showed. His ears pricked as he watched the burning buildings with the
same intense stare as Sander. But he betrayed no more than the common caution
with which he approached all new situations.
His green eyes did not
blink, nor did his brush of tail move. Instead he sat on his haunches as if it
did not matter that his head rose well above the skyline, visible from the
town. Sander accepted Rhin's verdict of no imminent danger—for the sly
intelligence of his kind supplied information that no man, with his blunter
senses, could hope to gain.
Though he got to his
feet, Sander did not remount. Instead he slipped down the ridge, using every
bit of cover. Rhin followed like a red-yellow ghost a step or two behind.
Sander carried his dart thrower, a missile notched ready against its taut
string and loosened his long knife in its leather scabbard.
As they drew closer to
the looted town, Sander's nose wrinkled at the stench of burning and of other
smells far worse. Rhin growled, sniffing. He liked that scent no better than
Sander. But at least he seemed to have picked up no hint of enemies.
Sander circled away from
the river bank where lay those blood-stained bundles, heading toward the
seemingly unharmed buildings farther inland from the shore. He could hear the
pounding of waves and smell a new odor, swept toward him by a rising wind—a
strange, fresh scent. Was this indeed the sea, not just some larger lake?
As he approached the
nearest building, he hesitated, something in him resisted making this
intrusion. Only the need for food forced him into an alleyway so narrow that
Rhin crowded him with a furry shoulder as they padded on together.
The walls of logs Sander
saw were thick. The only openings were set very high, nearly masked by the overhanging
eaves of the sharply-pitched roofs. He reached the end of the alley and turned
right before he found the entrance door.
It had been fashioned of
heavy planking. Now it hung crazily from a single hinge, scarred by forced
entry. Rhin snarled, his tongue sweeping out over his lips. There was a body
just within that broken door; between the shoulders was a splotch of clotted
blood. The villager lay face downward and Sander had no desire to turn him
over.
The stranger was not
wearing the leather and furs of a Mobsman, rather a coarsely woven overtunic
dyed a nut brown. His legs were encased in baggy trousers of the same material,
with laced hide boots on his feet. For a long moment Sander hesitated before he
stepped gingerly around the dead man into an interior that showed both search
and wanton destruction.
There was another huddle
of twisted body and stained clothing in the corner. After a single glance,
Sander kept his eyes resolutely from it. Smashed and nearly destroyed as the
contents of this room were, he could still see that the town dwellers had
possessed more worldly goods than any Mobsman. That was only sensible in their
way of life. One could not cart chairs, tables, and chests about the land when
one was ever traveling to follow the herds. He stopped to pick up a broken
bowl, intrigued by the design across its side. Its few dark lines against the
clear brown of the pottery made him envision birds in flight.
He made his way quickly
to the food bins, wanting no more of this chamber of the dead. Rhin whined from
without. Sander caught the uneasiness of his companion, the need to be gone.
But he forced himself to examine what was left.
There was a measure of
grain flour mixed with chopped and powdered nut meats. Using the broken bowl
for a scoop he packed it into his provision bag. He found two dried fish wedged
in another over-turned bin. But the rest had been deliberately wasted or
wantonly befouled. Sickened by the signs of relentless hatred, he hurried out
to join Rhin.
Yet Sander made himself approach
the next building. No corpse blocked the forced door this time. However, one
glance at what lay inside made him gag and turn hastily away. He could not go
any nearer to that. It seemed that the raiders, whoever they might have
been, had not been content to kill, but had also taken time to amuse themselves
in a beastly fashion. Sander kept swallowing to control his nausea as he backed
out into the way that fronted the unfired buildings.
There was one other
place he must search for—in spite of his growing terror. There must have
been a smith's forge somewhere in this ravaged village. He slapped his hands
against the bag of tools that was lashed to the back of Rhin's riding pad. What
he carried there was all he had from his father. Ibbets would have liked to
have claimed those, as he claimed the office of smith with the Mob, but custom
had supported Sander to that extent.
Two major hammers and
chisels had been buried with his father, Dullan, of course. A man's main tools
of trade were filled with his own powers and must so be laid away in the earth
when he no longer could use them. But there were some smaller things that a son
could rightfully claim, and no one could deny him those. However, Sander needed
more, much more, if he were to realize his dream. He longed to find the place
wherein those masses of congealed metal, which the traders brought to the Mobs,
were concealed and to learn the secret of the alloys which now baffled smiths.
Resolutely he started
on, dodging a charred wall that had fallen outward, closing his mind to
everything but his search, holding his nose against the stink. Rhin continued
to whine and growl. Sander was well aware that his companion wanted none of
this place of death and followed him under protest. Yet because of the brotherhood
between them, Rhin would continue.
Rhin's people and those
of the Mob were entwined in mutual service. That companionship began during the
Dark Time. Legends Sander had heard recited by the Rememberers said that Rhin's
people had once been much smaller, yet always clever and quick to adapt to
change. "Koyots" they were called in the old tongue.
There had been many
animals, and more men than one could count, who had perished when the Earth
danced and the Dark Time had begun. Mountains of fire had burst through the
skin of the world, belching flame, smoke, and molten rock. The sea had rolled
inward with waves near as high as those same mountains, hammering the land into
nothingness in some places, in others deserting the beds over which it had lain
for untold ages. Cold followed and great choking clouds of evil air that
killed.
Here and there a handful
of men or animals survived. But when the skies cleared once again, there were
changes. Some animals grew larger generation by generation, just as distant species
of men were rumored to be now twice the size of Sander's own people. That
information came from Traders' tales, however, and it was well known that
Traders like to spread such stories to keep other men away from any rich finds.
They would invent all manner of monsters to be faced were a man to try to track
them back to their own places.
Sander stopped, picked
up a spear, gruesomely stained, and prodded with that into the ashes of a small
building. He swiftly uncovered what could only be an anvil—a good one fashioned
from iron, but far too heavy to be transported. Finding that, a sure sign he
had found the smithy, he scratched with more vigor.
His delving uncovered a
fine stone hammerhead, with the haft near burned away, but the best part
remaining. That and another of a lesser weight were all that remained. There
were also some traces of metal—copper he was sure—puddled from the heat.
He raised his hand and
recited the secret smith words. If the owner, who might lie farther back under
the debris at the rear, was still spirit-tied, as men who died quickly and
violently sometimes were, he would know by those words that one of his own
craft was present. He would not, Sander was sure, begrudge that his possessions
be used again, carefully, and to a purpose that might in the end benefit all
men.
Sander fitted the two
hammerheads in among the tools he carried. He would hunt no farther. Let the
dead smith keep all else as grave-hold. But such hammers he did not have and he
needed them.
He wanted no more of this
nameless village wherein death stank and spirits might be tied to their
destroyed homes. Rhin sensed that decision, greeting it with a yelp of
approval. However, Sander was not minded to leave the shore of the sea—if sea
this was. Rather he passed as quickly as he could among the smoldering
buildings, refusing to look at the bodies he passed, to reach the slippery sand
of the shore.
To prove that he might
have reached one of his objectives, he advanced to where the small waves ended
in foam upon the sand. There he dipped a finger into the water and licked it.
Salt! Yes, he had found the sea.
However it was not the
sea alone that he sought, but rather the heart of the old legends around it.
Along the shore of the sea had once stood many great cities of old. Sander's
father had often speculated about the secrets that lay in those cities.
It was certain that men
before the Dark Time had possessed such knowledge that they lived as the
spirits of the upper air did, with unseen servants and all manner of
labor-saving tools. Yet that learning had been lost. Sander did not know the
number of years that lay between him and that time. But his father had said
that the sum was more than the lifetimes of many, many men, each a generation
behind the other.
At the death of his
father from the coughing sickness, Ibbets, his father's younger brother, had
denied Sander the smith-right, saying he was only an untried boy and unfit to
serve the Mob. Then Sander knew he must prove himself, not only to the people
whom he had believed kin-blood, but to himself. He must become such a worker of
metal that his own number of years—or lack of them—would mean nothing, only
what could be wrought by his design and his skill. Thus, when Ibbets would have
bound him to a new apprenticeship, he had instead claimed go-forth rights, and
the Mob had been forced to grant him that choice of exile.
Now he was kinless by
his own hard decision. And he burned with the need to know that he was a better
smith, or would be, than Ibbets claimed. To do that he must learn. And he was
sure that such knowledge lay near the original source of the lumps of congealed
metal that the traders brought.
Some of the metal could
be worked by strength of arm and hammer alone. Other kinds must be heated, run
into molds, or struck when hot to form the needed tool or weapon. But there
were some metals that defied all attempts to work them. And it was the secret
of those that had fascinated Sander from childhood.
He had found the sea;
now he could go north or south along its shore. There had been great changes in
the land, he knew. Perhaps such cities as he sought were long since buried
under the wash of the waves, or else so overturned by earth-shaking that little
remained. Yet somewhere the Traders found their metal, so somewhere such
sources existed—and those he could seek.
It was close to
nightfall, and he did not wish to camp close to the half-destroyed town. He
pushed on northward. Above, sea birds wheeled and screamed hoarsely, and the
steady roll of the waves made a low accompaniment to their cries.
Rhin's head swung around
twice toward their back trail. He growled, and his uneasiness gripped Sander in
turn. Though it seemed the town was wholly given over to the dead, it was true
that Sander had not delved too deeply in the ruins. What if some survivor,
perhaps shaken out of his wits by the terror of the raid, lurked there, had
seen Sander and Rhin come and go? They might now be hunted by such.
Climbing on the top of a
dune, along the sides of which grew tough sea grass, Sander studied the
still-smoking buildings. Nothing moved save the birds. He did not, however,
discount Rhin's uneasiness, knowing he could depend upon the koyot's acute
senses to give him fair warning if they were followed.
He would have liked to
have ridden, but the slippery sand gave such uncertain footing that he kept on
as they were. He angled away from the wave line now, for there lay drifts of
wood which might entrap the unwary. Now and then a shell lay exposed in the
damp sand. Sander eyed their fantastic forms with amazement. They delighted him
like bright bird's feathers or tumble-smoothed stones, so he dropped some into
his left pouch. Momentarily he dreamed of setting shells in bands of copper, a
metal that easily responded to the skill he had learned, and make such articles
of adornment as the Mob had never seen.
The sand became covered
with coarse grass, which in turn changed to meadowland. But Sander disliked
this too-open country. He could see a dark line across the horizon that marked
the beginning of wooded land. While his people were of the open plains to the
west, they also knew northern woods, and he recognized the value of finding
cover.
However, he was enough a
judge of travelers' distances to be sure he could not reach that forest before
nightfall. What he wanted now was a defensible camp site, if Rhin's instinct
was proven correct and they were to face some danger out of the dark.
He would not dare a fire
tonight, wanting no beacon that might draw anyone—or anything—that prowled this
country. So at last he settled on a stand of rocks, huddled together as if the
stones themselves had drawn close for comfort in an hour of need.
Jerking up handfuls of
grass, he arranged it into a nest. Then he brought out the dried fish and
shared with Rhin. Ordinarily, the koyot would have gone off hunting on his own.
But it would seem that this night he was not about to leave Sander.
As the young man watched
the twilight draw in, felt the chill of the night winds which bore strange
scents from the sea, his weariness grew. He could hear nothing save the wash of
the waves and the sounds of birds. And although Rhin pricked up his ears to
listen with all his might, he did not yet show any signs of real alarm.
Tired though Sander was
from the day's journeying, he could not sleep. Over him arched the sky
sparkling with the eyes of the night. The Rememberers said those were other
suns, very far away, and around them perhaps moved worlds like their own. But
to Sander they had always seemed like the eyes of strange, aloof creatures, who
watched the short lives of men with more indifference than interest. He tried
to think about the star eyes, but his mind kept returning to the horrors of the
raided village. What would it be like, he wondered with a shiver, to be
suddenly set upon by men out of the sea who wanted to slay, to destroy, to dip
their hands in blood?
The Mob had fought for
their lives, but only once, in Sander's memory, against their kind. That had
been when a terrifying people with light skin and wild pale eyes had come down
to raid their herd. Mainly their struggle was against cold and famine and sickness,
warring against a hard land rather than mankind. Their smiths forged the
weapons and the tools for that struggle, not many of the kinds meant to drink
man-blood.
Sander had heard tales
of the sea slavers. Sometimes he had thought that those, too, were inventions
of the Traders, who created fearsome horrors to fill the land they did not want
others to explore. For the Traders were notoriously tight-fisted when it came
to their own profits. But after this day he could believe that man was more ruthless
than a full winter storm. Now he shivered a little, not from the touch of the
sea breeze, but because of what his imagination suggested might exist in this
wilderness so unknown to him.
Sander put out a hand
for the reassuring touch of Rhin's furry hide. At the same moment the koyot
leaped to his feet and growled in warning. Rhin faced not the sea, but inland.
Plainly the animal had decided that there was some menace slinking through the
night.
With so little
visibility, the dart thrower was no good. Sander drew his long belt knife,
which was really a short sword. He crouched upon one knee with the rocks a firm
wall at his back, and listened. There seemed to be a slight shuffling ahead.
Rhin growled again. Now Sander caught a trace of musky odor. He thought he had
seen a shadow, moving so swiftly its shape blurred.
A hissing out of the
dark became a loud snarl. Rhin advanced a step, stiff-legged, plainly alert
against attack. Sander desperately regretted the fire he had not lit. To face
such an unknown menace kindled one of mankind's age-old fears.
Yet the thing did not
attack as Sander expected it to do. He heard that challenging hiss, and he
judged from Rhin's reaction that the koyot thought this unknown to be a
formidable opponent. Still, whatever it was stayed beyond the boundaries where
Sander might sight it against the lighter rocks. A shrill whistle came out of
the night, followed by a flash of light. It shone straight into Sander's eyes,
dazzling him, though he flung up his arm in an involuntary gesture to ward off
the blinding glare.
Under the shadow of his
hand he watched an animal glide forward, a sinuous body seeming more like a
snake than a furred species. It arose upon its haunches, still hissing, until
its head was nearly level with his own. Behind it a smaller edition of itself,
much darker in color, hugged the ground. Neither of that pair carried the
light.
"Stand—" The
command from behind the source of the light was an emphatic order. Another
followed: "Drop your knife!"
Sander was sure only the
will of the speaker held the threatening animals in check, but he shook his
head in refusal.
"I do not obey the
orders of unknown who skulk in the dark," he returned. "I am not a
hunter or harmer of men."
"Blood cries for
blood, stranger," snapped the voice. "Behind you streams
blood—kin-blood. If there is an accounting, then it is mine, seeing that no one
else lives in Padford now—"
"I came to a town
of the dead," Sander returned. "If you seek blood for blood, look
elsewhere, stranger. When I rode from the south, there were only the dead
within half-burned walls."
The light held steady on
him and no answer came forth. But that the stranger had been willing to speak
without immediate attack was, Sander believed, in his favor.
"It is true that
you are no Sea Shark," the voice observed slowly.
Sander could understand
the words. But the accent with which they were spoken differed both from that
of the Mob and that of the Traders.
"Who are you?"
Now the voice sharpened in a new demand.
"I am Sander, once
of Jak's Mob, and I am a smith."
"Soooo?" The
voice drawled that as if not quite believing. "And where tents your Mob
this night, smith?"
"Westward."
"Yet you travel
east. Smiths are not wanderers, stranger. Or is there blood guilt and kin-death
lying in your back trail?"
"No. My father, who
was smith, died, and they would have it that I was not skilled enough to take
his place. Thus I took out-rights—" He was growing irritated. That he must
patiently answer this quizzing out of the dark stirred his anger. Now he boldly
asked in return:
"Who are you?"
"One not to meddle
with, stranger!" snapped that other. "But it seems you speak the
truth and so are not meat for us this night."
The light snapped out
instantly. He could hear a stirring in the dark. Rhin whined in relief. Though
the koyot could be a formidable fighter when he wished, it was plain he
preferred the absence of those animals and whoever controlled them to their
presence.
Sander himself felt
tension seep away. The voice was gone, taking with it the strange hounds of its
hunting. He settled back, and after a while he slept.
Sander's slumber was
full of dreams in which dead men arose to face him with broken weapons in their
slack hands. He roused now and again, sweating, hardly sure of what was dream
and what reality. He could then hear sometimes a soft growl deep in Rhin's
throat, as if the koyot scented something dangerous. Yet the voice and the
light were surely gone.
By the first hint of
dawn Sander was ready to move on. This seemed to him a haunted land. Perhaps
the unburied dead of the town oppressed his spirit. The sooner he was well away
from such an ill-omened place, the better. However, he made a quick survey of
the ground where the night before that half-seen beast had reared up in the
light.
That truly had been no
dream, for there were paw marks deep-set in the soil, pads and claws in clear
impression. Beyond, he discovered a single other print, small and distinct,
unmistakably human. Rhin sniffed at the tracks and again growled. It was plain
from the swing of the koyot's head that he little liked what his own special
senses reported. Another reason to be on their way.
Sander did not even wait
to eat. He swung up on the riding pad, and Rhin trotted off at a pace that soon
carried them well into the tough grass of the lowlands, parallel with the sea.
The passing of the koyot stirred into life some birds, and Sander uncoiled his
sling, made ready a pebble, brought down two of those fugitives. Once away,
where he could light a fire, there would be food.
He headed directly for
the distant line of forest, misliking the feeling of nakedness that he had in
the open, a sensation the plains bred youth had never experienced before. As he
rode, he tried to see traces of the path the voice had taken. But, save for the
tracks near his improvised camp, Sander found nothing that would suggest he and
Rhin were not alone.
Resolutely, he kept from
glancing back at the now-distant village. Perhaps his visitor had returned
there, since it was plain from the words they had exchanged that the unknown
had been in search of those who had despoiled the town. What had the stranger
named it? Padford. Sander repeated the word aloud. It was as strange as the
accent of the other's speech.
Sander knew so little of
the land beyond the Mob's own range. That such villages existed he had picked
up from the Traders' guarded accounts. But the herdspeople of the wide lands in
the west had no personal knowledge of them. He wished now that he had made a
closer examination of the dead. It seemed to him, trying to recall those
glimpses of the bodies, that they had been unusually dark of skin, even darker
than he was himself, and that their hair had been of a uniform black. Among his
own people, who were an even brown in skin color, hair color varied from light
reddish gold to dark brown.
The Rememberers told
strange tale, saying that before the Dark Time, men did not always share the
same skin color or features. Their tales carried other unbelievable statements
also—that men could fly like birds and traveled in boats that went under
the surface of the water and not over it. So one could not believe every
remnant of the supposed old knowledge they cherished.
Rhin abruptly halted,
startling Sander out of his thoughts. The koyot gave a sudden shake of body,
which was his warning that he must be free of his rider to confront something.
Sander slid off as Rhin whirled about to face their back trail, his lips
wrinkled to show his formidable fangs, the growl in his throat rising to a
snarl.
Sander thrust his sling
into his belt, whipped free his thrower, making sure there was a dart set
within the firing groove. There were no stones to back them here. They had been
caught in the open.
Plain to see were two
shapes humping along with a curious up and down movement, at a speed Rhin could
only equal by short bursts of determined flight. A third figure on two legs ran
behind, like a hunter urging on hounds, though the two forerunners bore no
likeness to any of the small dogs the Mob knew. Sander dropped to one knee,
steadying the dart thrower. His heart beat faster. Those animals, whatever they
might be, were remarkably agile, continually twisting and turning, yet always
advancing. To sight a dart on one was almost impossible.
"Aeeeeheee!"
The cry came as sharp as
the scream of a seabird, while the running figure behind the first two flung up
both arms as if urging on its furred companions. It was that runner who must be
his target, Sander decided.
"Aeeeeheee!"
The foremost of the
animals halted and rose on its haunches to stare at the smith. A moment later
its mate froze likewise. But Sander did not relax his grip of the dart thrower.
The distance, he judged, was still a fraction too far for a telling shot. Rhin
snarled continually. The koyot was already on the defensive, prepared for
attack. It would seem that Rhin regarded these as formidable opponents.
The human companion of
the pair drew level with them, so the three moved together toward Sander and
the koyot. But they no longer ran. Sander rose to his feet, his weapon at the
ready.
He stared at one of the
strangest sights he had ever seen. The newcomer was plainly a woman, as her
scant body covering revealed. Like the villagers, she had very dark skin, and
her only clothing was a piece of scarlet cloth wound from armpit to knee.
Around her neck rested a massive chain of soft, hand-worked gold, which held
pendant a disc set with gemstones in an intricate pattern. Her dark hair had
been combed and somehow stiffened, to stand out about her face like a halo of
black. On her forehead was a tattooed design, much like the one Sander himself
wore. But while his was the proud badge of a smith's hammer, hers was a whirl
he could not read.
She wore boots that
reached nearly to her knees, not as well-fashioned as the leatherwork of his
own people, and a belt twisted of gold and silver wire from which hung, on
hooks, a number of small cloth bags in different colors. Now she walked
proudly, as if she were one to whom others paid deference, like a clan-mother,
each hand resting on the head of one of the animals.
These were of the same
breed, Sander believed, but they differed greatly in coloring and size. The
larger one was creamy fawn in color. The smaller was dark brown with black feet
and tail. Their long tails lashed back and forth as they came. It was plain to
Sander that they did not have the same confidence in his harmlessness as their
mistress did, for they were ready to do battle. Only her will kept them in
check.
Some distance away she
stopped, her dark eyes surveying him coolly. The animals once more reared on
their haunches to flank her, the lighter-colored one's head now topping hers.
"Where do you go,
smith?" she asked imperiously. By the sound of her voice, he knew that
this was his questioner of the night before.
"What matters that
to you?" He was stung by her tone. What right had she to demand any answer
from him in this fashion?
"The seeing tells
me that our paths now run together." Her eyes were very bright. They
caught his gaze. He did not like her calm assumption that he was some tribesman
under her command.
"I do not know what
a seeing may be." With determined effort he broke that linkage of eyes.
"What I seek is my own affair."
She frowned as if she
had not believed he could withstand her control any more readily than the
hissing beasts by her side. That she had tried to control him in some
unknown manner he was now certain.
"What you
seek," she returned, a sharper note in her voice, "is the knowledge
of the Before Men. That is what I must also find, that my people may be
avenged. I am Fanyi, one who talks with spirits. And these be Kai and Kayi who
are one with me where there is need. My protection lay over Padford, but it was
necessary for me to go to meet the Great Moon. And while I was gone"—she
made a slight gesture with her hand—"my people were slain, my faith to
them broken. This should not be!" Her lips drew back in a snarl as marked
as Rhin's. "The blood debt is mine, but for its paying I must draw upon
the Before Ones. I ask you, smith, have you knowledge of the place you
seek?"
He longed to say yes,
but there was something in her gaze, which, though he would not allow it to
bind him, compelled the truth.
"I am Sander. I
seek one of the Before cities. Such may lie to the north along the sea—"
"A Traders' tale
perhaps?" She laughed and there was a note of scorn in that sound,
angering him. "Traders' tales are not to be depended upon, smith. These
seek always to deceive, not revealing what they deem their own hunting grounds.
However, for once, this is partly right. To the north—and the east—there lies a
great place of the Before Men. I am a Shaman—to us remains some of the ancient
knowledge. There is a place—"
"To the
northeast," Sander continued, "lies the sea. Perhaps your city is now
buried under waves."
She shook her head.
"I think not. The sea has eaten deep into the land in some places; in
others it has drained from ancient beds, leaving land long hidden once more
revealed. But," she shrugged, "of that we cannot be sure until we
see. You seek, I seek—but in the end our quest is not too divided. I want
knowledge of one kind, you of another, is this not the truth?"
"Yes."
"Well enough. I
have powers, smith. Perhaps more potent than you carry in your hands." She
glanced at the weapon he held. "But to fare forth into the wilderness
alone, that is folly when we are traveling in the same direction. Therefore, I
say to you—let us journey together. I will share my certain knowledge of where
the Before Place lies."
He hesitated. But he
believed that for some reason she was in earnest. Why she made such an offer he
could not quite understand. She might have been reading his thoughts, for now
she added:
"Did I not say that
I had had a seeing? I know little of your people, smith, but have you none
among you who can foretell, who can sometimes see that which has not yet
happened but which will certainly come to pass?"
"We have the
Rememberers. But they dream of the past, not the future. The Traders—they have
said that they have heard of those who foresee not backsee."
"Backsee?"
Fanyi seemed startled. "What do they backsee, these Shamans of
yours?"
"Some of the Before
things, but only small pieces," Sander had to admit. "We came into
this land after the Dark Time, and what they tell of is another part, now sea
covered. Mostly they remember our own Mob and a past that is ours alone."
"That is a loss.
Think what might be done if your backseers could uncover the lost things. But
it is much the same with us who foresee—we can do such for only a short way.
Thus, I know that we shall journey together, but little more than that."
She spoke with such
authority that Sander found himself unable to utter any objection, though he
was suspicious of her self-confidence. Obviously this Fanyi believed she was
conferring some honor upon him by so deciding. Yet there was sense in what she
said—he had been traveling blindly. If she indeed had some clue to a definite
lost city, he would be far better served to agree to her guidance than to simply
wander on blindly.
"Very well."
He now looked at her beasts. "But do those agree also? They seem to me to
be less certain of the wisdom of our joining forces than you are."
For the first time he
saw her lips curve into a smile. "My friends become theirs. And what of
your furred one, Sander-smith?" She nodded to Rhin.
Sander turned to the
koyot. He exercised no such control on Rhin as the girl apparently did over her
companions, nor could he. There was a form of communication between man and
koyot, but it was tenuous. He was not sure himself just how deep it ran, nor
how well it would work in all circumstances. Rhin was willing to share his
travels and was an efficient warner against enemies. But whether the koyot
would accept close companionship for days with the strange beasts, Sander had
no way of telling.
Fanyi shifted her gaze
slightly to meet the eyes of the taller of her furred ones. After their stare
had locked and held for a long moment the creature dropped to forefeet and was
gone at its backhumping gait, disappearing into the tall grass. Its companion
remained quietly where it was, but Fanyi came forward now to turn the same
intent gaze up into Rhin's bright eyes. Sander fidgeted, again more than a
little irritated at the girl. What right had she to impose her will on his
koyot, for that was what she was doing he was sure.
Again she might have
read his rebellious thought, for she spoke:
"I do not rule
these other ones, smith. It is enough that they learn that we can live together
after a fashion, neither imposing wills upon another. My fishers know that if I
halt their actions by a will-thought, it is only with good reason. And there
are times when I accept their desire as quickly as they do mine. We are not
master-slave. No—we are comrade with comrade. That is the way it should be with
all life forms. So does the Power teach us who are born to serve Its purposes.
Yes, your koyot will accept us, for he knows we mean no harm to one
another."
The fisher who had
disappeared was returning. Clamped in its jaws was the end of a bundle that it
bumped and tugged along the ground until it could be dropped at Fanyi's feet.
She loosened lashings to draw forth a square of drab cloth, which had a hole in
the center. Through this she thrust her head and then belted the loose folds
about her with a woven strip, hiding her scarlet garment and her adornments
under the dim gray overtunic.
The rest of her
equipment for the trip was in two separate bags, their strings knotted
together. Sander took them from her when she would have slung them across her
shoulder and arranged them with his own bags on Rhin. He could not ride while
she walked, and the two of them would be too great a weight for the koyot.
Fanyi whistled, sending
the fishers bounding away, ranging ahead. For the first time Sander relaxed a
little. Those creatures must form an effective scouting force, if Fanyi
depended upon them.
"How far do we
go?" he asked, finding that she matched strides with apparently little
effort.
"That I do not
know. My people do—did—" she corrected herself, "not travel far. They
were fisherfolk, and they worked the fields along the river. We had Traders
come from the north—and more lately from the south. From the south," she
repeated and her tone was bleak. "Yes, now I think that those came before
the raid to sniff out how helpless we were. If I had not been afar—"
"But what could you
have done?" Sander was honestly puzzled. She seemed to believe that her presence,
or the lack of it, had sealed the fate of the village. He could not believe
that.
She glanced toward him,
clearly astounded at his question.
"I am one with
Power. It is my thought-holding that walled my people in safety. There was no
danger that came to them that I, or Kai or Kayi, could not sniff out and give
warning of. Just as I knew, even though I sought with open heart and mind the
will of the Great Moon, when death came to those who believed in me! Their
blood lies on my hands, that I must avenge—for upon me rests the burden of this
deed."
"And how can you
avenge them? Do you know those who came raiding?"
"At the proper time
I shall cast the stones." Her hand went to the breast of her drab
overgarment. "Then their names shall be made clear. But first I must find
in the Before Place such a weapon as shall make those who delighted in
slaughter wish that they had never been born!" A cruel cast twisted her
generous lips and the grimness of her face chilled Sander.
He himself had never
felt such great anger—even against Ibbets—as to death-wish another. When the
White Ones had struck he had been only a child, too young to be affected by the
battle, even though his mother had been one of its victims. His whole being had
been focused on learning what he could do with his hands. To him, weapons were
only matters of fine workmanship. He rarely thought beyond their fashioning to
the uses they would eventually serve.
Although what he had
seen in the destroyed village had sickened and revolted him, it had not touched
his inner being. For those dead were strangers, none close to him. Had he
discovered one of the enemy left behind through some chance he would have
fought, yes, but mainly to save his own life. The flame that he saw burning in
Fanyi, the implacable drive for vengeance, he could not quite understand.
Perhaps if it had been his people who had been so handled, he would have felt
differently.
"What weapons do
you believe might be stored in a Before Place?"
"Who knows? The old
tales are many. They say that once men slew with fire and thunder, not with
steel or dart. It may be that such stories are only tales. But knowledge is a
weapon in itself and such a weapon I have been born to use."
That Sander could
accept. He discovered that he had unconsciously quickened pace a little, as if
the very thought that such a storehouse of the Before Days might exist had
urged him to speed. But they dared not, he was certain, count on too much. The
churning of the earth during the Dark Time had changed the whole of the land.
Could they be sure that anything from Before endured?
When he mentioned this,
Fanyi nodded. "That is true. But still the Traders have their sources. And
so there must be something remaining. I have this—" Both hands were now
clasping her breast where the pendant lay hidden. "I am of a clan-line of
Shamans. From mother to daughter, time and again past reckoning, has descended
our learning. There are secrets that can be understood only when one is in the
presence of that which hides them. What I wear is in itself a secret. Only I
can read its message when I hold it in my hand. For no other will this charm
work. I seek with it a certain wall—"
"And this wall lies
northeast—"
"Just so. Long have
I wanted to search for it. But my duty was to my people. Their ills, both of
mind and body, were mine to ease. Now it is that same duty which drives me at
last—so that I may repay blood for blood."
Her face became such a
secretive mask that Sander ventured no more questions. So they journeyed in
silence, the fishers playing scout, Rhin trotting at his shoulder.
At noon they halted, and
Sander made a small fire while Fanyi stirred together some of the meal he had
taken from the village, and moistened it with water from his leather bottle.
She spread the resulting paste on a small metal griddle that she took from one
of her own bags and set to bake before the fire. In a few minutes she deftly
swept off a sheet of near-bread. Sander roasted the birds he had brought down
while Rhin, stripped of riding pad and burdens, went hunting on his own. Fanyi
said her fishers would do the same.
The fare was better than
the dried fish he had eaten the night before. Fanyi held the water bottle to
her ear and shook it vigorously.
"Water," she
said. "That we shall need by nightfall."
Sander laughed.
"Rhin shall find it. His breed does that very well. I have seen them dig
into a bare streambed and uncover what no man would believe existed below. They
come from a parched land—"
"Yours?"
Sander shook his head.
"Not now, though it used to be. The Rememberers say we were all from the
south and west. When the sea came in, all fled before it, even though mountains
spewed fire from their bellies. Some men lived, and later Rhin's people came.
They were small once, it is said. But who knows now—so much is told of the
Before Time."
"Perhaps there are
records." Fanyi licked grease from her fingertips, imparting to that
gesture a certain fastidiousness.
"Marks like
this—" She plucked a long grass steam and with its tip drew lines in the
dust.
Sander studied her
pattern. He thought he could see a certain resemblance to similar lines that
Traders made on bleached skins when his father had described kinds of metal he
wanted them to bring up on their next trip.
"See—this means my
name." She pointed out the marks she had made. "F-A-N-Y-I— That I can
write. And certain other words. Though," she added with truthfulness,
"the meaning of all I do not know. But it was part of my learning because
it is of my Power."
He nodded. The smith
words were part of his learning, along with the work of his hands. The metal
did not run nor harden nor work unless one chanted the right words—all men knew
that. Which was why a smith allowed only his apprentice to be with him during
certain parts of his labor—lest those without the right learn the work-words of
his art.
"Even if you find
such marks," Sander asked, "what if they cannot be read?"
She frowned. "That
would be a mystery one must master, even as one learns the healing art and how
the moon works upon men and women, how to call the fish, or speak with animals
and birds. It is one of the Shaman learning."
Sander stood up to
summon Rhin with a whistle. Shaman learning did not greatly interest him. And
whether smith mysteries had ever been reduced to such markings—that he would
not believe unless he saw them before his eyes. They were still a goodly
distance from the forest, and he had little liking to camp out in the open
another night.
He stamped out the last
coals of their small cooking fire, kicking earth over the ashes carefully as
any plainsman would. The fear of grass fires in the open was one danger that
was more real in his mind than such raids as had been made on the village. He
had seen the results of such devastation and known the horror of finding two
clansmen who had been caught in such and died in the red fury no man could
escape.
They plodded on. The
fishers were not in sight, though Rhin had returned promptly at Sander's call
to assume pad and bags. But Fanyi seemed unconcerned at the absence of her
animals. Perhaps they always traveled so.
It was close unto
evening when the trees loomed ahead behind a screen of brush. Sander came to a
stop, for the first time doubting the wisdom of his choice. It looked very dark
and forbidding under that spread of green that was already beginning to be
touched by the flames of fall. Perhaps it would be best to stay in the open for
tonight and enter in the morning, rather than blunder into such a gloomy
unknown in the dusk.
"Where are Kai and
Kayi?" he asked the girl.
She had been squatting
on her heels and now she glanced up. "They go about their own concerns. I
do not rule them, as I have said. This woodland," she pointed ahead with
an uplift of her chin, "would be to their liking. They are not usually
creatures of the open—but have a taste for trees."
Well, if that was the
way of it, what did it matter to him? Still, the more Sander looked into that
darkness ahead the less he wanted to enter it with only failing daylight to
guide him.
"We will stay here
for the night," he said, then worried if she would refuse his guidance.
"If you wish,"
was all she answered, as she got to her feet to lift her bags from Rhin's back.
Sander stripped the pad
and his own bags from the koyot, and Rhin padded into the night for the food he
would hunt on his own. Neither of the fishers had returned, and Sander began to
wonder if Fanyi's control over the beasts was as complete as he had believed.
But the girl showed no signs of concern as she slipped out of her drab
overdress. The first flickers of the fire turned both her girdle and massive
necklace into bands of glitter.
Once more she made the
cakes of meal and set them to bake on the thin griddle. Sander checked his
supply of darts carefully, for he wanted to enter the forest with a weapon
ready. Then he gathered a pile of wood, a supply he hoped would last the night.
As she watched her
baking, Fanyi began to croon to herself. The words were strange to Sander. Now
and again he caught one that had a meaning, but the rest—it was as if she sang
in some tongue that was hers alone.
"Have your people
always been by the river?" he asked abruptly, breaking the somnolent spell
of her crooning.
"Not always—what
people has lived always in any land?" she asked in return. "Were we
not all shaken, dispersed, sent wandering by the Dark Time? Our story is that
we were on a ship upon the sea—driven very far, carried inland by the waters
that swept the world. Many of those aboard died or were dragged away by the
lick of the waves. But some survived. When the sea withdrew, their ship was
left rooted upon land.
That was in the days of
Margee, who was mother to Nana, and Nana was mother to Flory, and she bore
Sanna." Slowly she recited names, more than he could count as she spoke
them, until at last she ended, "and I am true daughter to the fourth
Margee. The ship's people met with others who wandered, and so was Padford born
in the days of my grandmother's mother. Before that we had lived by the sea to
the south. But we came north because of evil in that place, for suddenly there
was a new mountain born, even as it was in the Dark Time. It spewed out fire
and running rock so that all life must flee or be utterly eaten up. What of
your people, Sander-smith?"
"We came from the
south and west, as I have said. Our Rememberers know—but they are the only ones
with such knowledge. I am a smith." He held his two hands into the
firelight flexing their strong fingers. "My mysteries are not theirs."
"To each man his
own mystery." She nodded as she swept the cakes deftly from the griddle
and held one out to him. "It is said that the first Margee had the power
of healing, and thus she taught those of her blood-line. But also we have other
powers." She bit into the round of hot bread, her ornaments flashing with
every movement.
"Tell me," she
said after she had chewed and swallowed. "Why did you take out-rights,
cutting yourself away from those of your blood-kin, to hunt what you may never
find? Is it because you lost face when your people would not name you
smith?"
Somehow she was able to
compel the truth from him.
"I was tested and
ready—my father would have spoken up if matters were otherwise. But Ibbets was
his brother and long had wanted to be smith. He is good enough." Though
Sander grudged saying that, he must admit it. "Yet he never seeks beyond
what has already been done. I would learn more—why there are some metals that
we cannot handle though the Before Men did, what were the secrets that they
held that we have lost. My father knew that this lay in my mind, but he always
said that a smith has a duty to his Mob. He must not go off a-roving, hunting
that which may not even exist."
"When my father
died, Ibbets made the council listen—saying that I was one with a head full of
dreams, that I was too young and heedless to be a full smith. He"—Sander's
lips tightened—"he generously offered to take me as apprentice.
Apprentice! I who had been taught by a far greater worker of metal than he
dreamed to be! He was jealous of my father, but in me he saw a way to make sure
that the smith magic passed to him. Thus I took out-rights. Let me but learn
every one of the Before secrets, and I can make Ibbets seem the
apprentice!"
"And this is what
you wish the most—to humble before your Mob the man who humbled you?" she
asked, brushing her fingers together to rid herself of the crumbs of the bread.
"Not wholly that—I
want also the smith secrets." The old longing came to life in him. "I
want to know how they worked that they could do so much more than we. Were they
truly so much greater in mind than we that such learning came easily to them?
What we must seek so hard and long, did they know instantly? Some of the
ignorant—my father claimed them so—speak now of men who learned so much that the
Great Power thought to wipe them from the earth. Because they were evil they
had to be melted down as one melts a collection of metal fragments to cast
anew. Perhaps this may be so. But I seek to know what I can learn—"
"And your
Rememberers were of no aid?"
Sander shook his head.
"We were not a people who lived in the great cities. Rather we were
scattered in a country that was left much to itself. We have always been
herdsmen, traveling with our animals. Our Rememberers recall the churning of
the country and that a handful of our people fled and survived with a few of
our animals. But beyond that I have only my own clan-line teaching, for we are
from a family of smiths and were not one with the Mob from its beginning. My
first Man came out of the wilderness to join with those wanderers when they had
already been roving for nearly a man's lifetime, fleeing ever from the loss of
all they knew. What we have kept is not knowledge of the Before Time, but the
skill to use our hands."
She sat with her legs
curled under her, her fingers playing with the small bags that hung from her
girdle. Now she nodded.
"Knowledge that was
needful to keep life within the body, men held to that. But what lay beyond was
often forgotten. I wish, however, that I might talk with your Rememberers. Much
could be learned, even from unknown words that now lack meaning. Such words are
many—we do not know for what they stand—things? actions?" She shook her
head slightly. "So much lost. Even more will go with those ravening Sea
Sharks." Now her rounded jawline set, and she looked bleakly into the
fire.
"Life was good in
Padford." She spoke as if assuring herself of the past, as if she were no
longer aware he existed. "Our planted land grew wider each year. We did
not have to depend alone on the bounty of the sea—which can fail at times—as
first we did when we settled here. The Traders came in the mid-summer. Twice my
mother bargained for books—real books—those records which the Before Men kept.
She read them—a little—and what she knew she taught me. We might have learned
so much more, given the time." Her hand cupped the pendant on her breast.
"This was given her
by him who fathered me. He came with the Traders, yet was not of their breed.
Rather, he was a seeker of lost knowledge, journeying from a far place. He was
making a book himself, recording all that he learned, for his clan was a clan
of men wiser than any I have heard of. And he left this necklace so that, if my
mother bore a child, that child might seek out the greater source of learning.
He taught her its secret—" When she fell silent, Sander could not help
asking:
"What became of
him?"
"He died," she
returned flatly. "A sickness and dire pain came upon him. He knew the
secret of it—there was a part within his body that was diseased, that should be
cut out. But my mother had no skill to cut to save. So he died. Then she swore
by the Great Moon that when she bore a child, that child must learn and learn
so that the old knowledge would be once more ready to serve her people. But she
and I, we were bound to the kin, we could not go a-seeking such learning at our
own will. We must be there to talk to the waters at the setting forth of the
fishing boats and there to bless the sowing of the fields so that more grain
would grow. Our blood line set these duties upon us. Now—I go to seek what this
key will open." She still fingered the pendant. "But by the Great
Moon, I would that my seeking had not come through such a means!"
The night had gathered
in. Only their fire made a barrier against the crowding shadows. Sander stood
up and whistled sharply, suddenly conscious that Rhin had not yet returned.
When the koyot did not bark in answer, he was once more uneasy. Perhaps Rhin
had to range far in the hunt. It was not unknown for him to sometimes spend
half the night on his own. But in this unknown land Sander wished him closer.
"He is not
near." The girl spoke calmly. "They have their own lives, do the
furred ones. We cannot demand more of them than they willingly give."
"I do not like
it," muttered Sander, though he must agree with her. His association with
the koyot was a voluntary one on both their parts. To compel Rhin was to lose
him. But he was unhappy now as he settled himself to a doze beside the fire,
nodding awake now and then to feed a handful of wood to the flames.
The girl did not bed
down as quickly in her day cloak. Instead, she took from one of those belt bags
four small white cubes, each of their sides bearing dots. Smoothing out a
hand-sized portion of her cloak, she tossed the cubes with a flick of her
wrist, so that they tumbled onto the site she had prepared, and lay with one
surface up. She bent over them eagerly, scanning the dots that were uppermost,
and then frowned. Sweeping them up she tossed again. The result seemed to satisfy
her no better, nor did a third try. Her frown was much deeper as she tumbled
them back into her bag. She sat for a time staring into the fire, and Sander
caught the faintest of mumbles, as if she now spoke words of her own Power,
intended for her ears alone.
At last she gave a sigh
and curled up in her cloak as if she had performed some necessary action but
was not reassured by that. He thought that she slept. If she was as alarmed
about the non-return of the fishers as he was about the missing Rhin, she gave
no outward sign.
The koyot was not back
when Sander stretched the stiffness from his limbs with the coming of light. He
was thirsty, and a heft on the leather water bag told him that it was too near
empty. Rhin's instinct was what Sander depended upon to locate some stream or
spring, and Rhin was not here. Of course, the koyot could easily follow their
trail as they traveled on, but Sander wanted him now. Once more he whistled.
His call was answered, not by the short yelp he hoped to hear, but rather with
the screech of some bird within the wood.
Fanyi sat up. She pulled
from one of her own bags a handful of dried, dark red fruit, which she divided
meticulously into two shares.
"Your furred one is
not near," she said.
"And yours?"
he demanded with unusual harshness.
"No nearer. I think
they hunt in there." She pointed with her chin at the wood. "As I
said, they have a liking for trees."
"Can they find
water?" He shook the bag a little to emphasize their need.
"If they
wish." Fanyi's reply was calm enough to be irritating. "But there are
other ways. I know some of them. It would seem we must now carry our gear
ourselves." She regarded the bags Rhin had borne. "Well, that I have
also done before." She spread out her cloak and began wrapping in it the
bags she had brought, lashing them into a neat bundle.
Sander finished the
dried fruit in two swift gulps. The taste was tart, and the small portion came
nowhere near satisfying his hunger. He hoped that somewhere in the forest
facing them he could get a shot at meat on the hoof. He needed the strength of
such a meal.
Now he made a back pack,
using Rhin's pad for its outer casing. The smith tools were the heaviest items,
and silently he fretted over the non-appearance of the koyot. Rhin was a
formidable fighter, he was also fleet of foot. Foreboding pricked at Sander.
They had no knowledge of what might exist in this new country. He had no idea
either of how he could trail the koyot and find him, if the animal had fallen
into some peril.
The pack weighed heavily
on his shoulders. However, he was determined to make no complaint, for the way
Fanyi marched confidently ahead into the shadow of the trees was, in a measure,
a challenge. Sander went forward with his bolt thrower ready in his hands.
The trees were enormous,
with a huge spread of limb. Some leaves were already turning yellow or scarlet,
a few wafted down now and then to join the centuries'-thick deposit of their
kind under foot, a soft carpet that deadened the sound of their own passing.
For the first time
Sander was conscious of something he had not foreseen. On the open plains one
could fix upon some point ahead and have it as a guide. Here, with one tree
much like another, how could one be sure one was heading in a straight path,
not wandering in circles?
Sander stopped. Perhaps
it would have been better to have stayed on the seashore, using that body of
water for a guide. Fanyi paused and glanced over her shoulder.
"What is it?"
He was ashamed of his
own stupidity, yet there was nothing he could do but admit it now.
"We have nothing to
follow—this is all alike."
"But there is
something. I have been a way in before, and there is a road—a north road—"
A road? Her confidence
was such that he could not help but believe that she knew what she was doing.
But a road—!
Fanyi beckoned, and,
hesitantly, he followed. Already he could look back and see nothing but trees.
Nor could he be sure where they had entered this maze of trunks and low-hanging
branches. But she showed no bafflement.
And it was only a short
time later that they came out onto a more open space. Here the drift of leaves
and earth did not quite cover a surface badly holed, fast being destroyed by
creeping roots that attacked it from both sides, yet unmistakably still an
artificial surface.
It ran straight, and the
trees that framed or attacked it were yet young, so there was enough light and
freedom to see quite a space ahead. Fanyi waved him on.
"See? It is as I
said. This was once a Before Road. Much has been destroyed over the years, but
still there is enough to see. Here it bends"—she gestured left to the
west—"that way it comes, but from here it goes north—at least what I know
of it does."
Sander could trace the
old curve; the road must never have been in the open. He wondered why. It
seemed to him much easier to build such a highway across the plains than within
the grip of the woods. And it was narrower than the two great roads the Mob
knew in their ranging. They had been so wide that even the Rememberers were not
able to tell how great the armies of people must have been when they used such
ways.
The surface here was so
rough they had to go slowly and warily that they not be tripped up or catch an
ankle disastrously in some hidden hole. But the road did lead them to water.
Sander had caught the
sound of a stream before they reached the jagged edge of the span that had once
bridged it. Small flies danced over the sun dappled surface, those in turn
hunted by much larger insects. There was a swift current, but the stream was so
clear that he could see the fuzzy brown stones forming its bed. Taking the
water bottle and leaving his back pack with Fanyi, he scrambled down to rinse
out the container, then fill it brimming.
Since the bridge was
gone, they made use of some of its blocks, now green-slimed and water-washed,
as stepping stones to reach the far side. Heartened by the discovery of water,
their most pressing need, Sander began now to look around seriously for a
method of relieving their other want, food.
There were birds enough,
but they were small and flitted about, hidden, except for sudden flashes of
wings, by the trees. He had seen no animals since they had entered this place.
And though he watched the stream very carefully now, its glassy surface
revealed no movement below. There appeared to be no fish sizeable enough to
show.
Fanyi caught at his arm,
nearly knocking him forward into the water. He turned his head to speak
impatiently when the sight of her face startled him. She was so plainly
listening!
Rhin! A burden heavier
than he had been aware he had carried lifted from him. Sander pursed his lips
to give the summoning whistle. But Fanyi's hand shot out, pressed fiercely
across his mouth to silence him.
Now he strained his ears
to catch what she must have heard, something, he guessed from her actions, that
was a dire warning.
It was not quite sound,
rather a pulsation of the air—as if sound had given it birth very far away. He
pushed her fingers aside and asked in a voice hardly above a whisper:
"What is it?"
She was frowning, much
as she had the night before when she threw her cubes to read some message from
them.
"I do not
know," she answered, in a voice even lower than his. "But it is of
some Power. I cannot mistake that."
Of her vaunted Powers he
knew practically nothing. Among his people they had a healer. But that one
claimed nothing beyond a knowledge of how to set bones, treat wounds, and use
some herbs to ease disease. They had also a vague idea that an Influence
greater than themselves existed. But that It concerned itself with man was
hardly probable. If so, why then had the Dark Time been sent to nearly kill off
their species, unless Before Man had in some manner provoked a blood-feud with
that Influence. If that was so, the Mob had reasoned during the few times they
applied themselves to such speculation, it was now better for man not to appeal
to or worship such an Influence.
Sander thought that it
might be different with Fanyi. Some of her claims—such as farseeing—were
matters strange to him. Also there could be other peoples on earth now, not so
wary of the Influence, who might have made some pact with It. From such might
come these Powers of which she so confidently spoke. Since this land was known
to her, he was willing to be guided by her—up to a point.
"What kind of
power?" he whispered once more.
She had gathered up her
pendant, held it now cupped in her hand, and was staring into it as if she
could read an answer from the points of light glittering on its surface.
As he waited for her to
reply, Sander began to wonder if they were even closer to her legendary cache
of knowledge, and if this emanation, whatever it might be, was the signal of
its being. But whatever Fanyi thought, she was not pleased with what she
learned by looking at the pendant. She shook her head slowly.
"It is not what we
seek." Her words were decisive. "There is some darkness ahead of us.
Yet this is the way—"
"We can go
back," Sander pointed out. "It would be easier to go along the
seashore. We should have tried that in the first place."
The wood, which earlier
had been a promise of cover, now began to take on the semblance of a trap. He
wanted none of it—rather to be out in the open where one could see an enemy
approaching, even if one was equally naked to that other's sight. "Come
on!" As she had earlier grasped his shoulder to rivet his attention, so
now his hand closed about her arm.
She gave one more long
look at the pendant and then let it fall back against her breast.
"All right,"
she agreed.
He had half expected an
argument and was relieved that she surrendered to his will so easily. Perhaps
Rhin's higher sensitivity had already warned the koyot against this place of
trees, and that was why the animal had not joined them.
They recrossed the
stepping stones and made the best time they dared, scrambling back the way they
had come. Always now, Sander was aware of that distant beating. It seemed to
him that his own heart thudded heavily in time to it, that he could feel its
vibration throughout his body. Nor did it lessen as they fled. Rather it
remained the same, as if whatever caused it kept always at the same distance
behind them, slipping steadily along their trail.
It was when they reached
the curve in the ancient road that the trap was at last sprung and from a
direction Sander had not expected. As they passed beneath the wide-spreading
branches of one of the giant trees, there fell over them the tangles of a net.
Before Sander could struggle, it was jerked tight, entrapping him past any hope
of freedom. The strings of the net were not the braided hide ropes he had
always known. Rather they were coated with some sticky substance, which, once
touched, clung tightly to what it covered. Movement on the part of the captives
only wound them more completely in its fold.
He could not reach his
knife, he could not even drop the useless dart thrower, which was glued now to
his hands. A second sharp and vigorous jerk took him from his feet, landing him
face down on the carpet of decayed leaves. He fought to turn his head enough so
that his nose and mouth were not closed by that stifling muck and so caught a
distorted side view of those who had so easily taken them captive.
The small creatures
dropped from the tree branches, chattering, to aid those already on the ground.
They were furred in patches and all they wore in the way of clothing were short
aprons of woven vines. Fur grew along the outer parts of their arms and legs,
in mats across their chest and shoulders, thicker yet on those bellies that
bulged a little above the vine cords supporting their aprons. In contrast,
their faces were smooth, but unlike the olive-toned skin showing on their hairy
bodies, their faces were red and wrinkled.
Sander could understand
nothing of their clicking speech, could detect no weapons save wooden clubs. He
saw one of those just as it descended toward him. Pain exploded in his head
felt as if the blow struck, but he did not altogether lose consciousness.
Still bundled in the
net, he was being lifted. The sour body odor of the forest dwellers was sickening.
They were grunting, perhaps in protest to his weight, as they carried him
along. One must have noticed that his eyes were open and that he had some
awareness of what was happening, for a forest man—if men they truly were—thrust
his crimson face closer to Sander's and snarled. The stranger shook his club
ominously directly above the captive. Sander needed no further hint. It would
serve no purpose to allow himself to be beaten to a pulp here and now.
Obediently, he lay quiet.
Trussed as tightly as
the pack still on his back, Sander found himself pulled aloft. It appeared that
their captors were creatures who considered trees their natural roadways. The
smith was tense with foreboding as they swung him across wide expanses, sure
that sooner or later he must crash helplessly to the ground beneath, while the
pain in his head made him dizzy. At last he closed his eyes tightly, determined
to hoard his strength for any effort he could make at the end of a nightmare
journey.
That Fanyi suffered the
same fate he had no doubt, yet he had heard no sound from her. Had they beaten
the girl into unconsciousness before they whirled her thus aloft? It was plain
that even if she knew something of the woodland, she had not foreseen the
coming of these savages.
To Sander's half-dazed
mind these were less than men. Nor were they to be numbered among those animals
with whom men had established some rapport during the years. The snarling red
face, which had been bent over him, had held a mindless ferocity mirrored in
its small eyes, while the fetid smell that arose from those pulling him along
made him gag.
They were, Sander knew,
going deeper into the forest. And that vibration swelled within his body, so
that his heart pounded as fast as if he had been running to the point of
exhaustion. Not even the Traders had ever mentioned such as these.
Beat—beat—
It still was not a
sound, save that it came with the pound of his blood in his ears. Sander felt
as if his whole body shook with the force of each great blow—if blows those
were. The chittering of the forest things—he did not want to dignify them with
the term "men"—grew stronger, much louder.
There came a final
downward swing that ended in a vicious jerk, sending pain red and hot through
his head. Then Sander lay flat on the ground in an open place. The sun beaming
harshly into his eyes made him squint them shut again.
When he turned his head
as far as he could and cautiously opened his eyes again, it was just in time to
see the last of the hairy creatures swing upward into the trees again on the
other side of the clearing.
Had they left a guard?
If not, was there any way—? Sander squirmed within his casing of net. He could
wriggle a little on the ground, but none of the lashings loosened. In fact, he
was sure that they were slowly tightening instead. However, his efforts had
moved him enough to catch a glimpse, through the lashing that held her, of
Fanyi.
There was no sign of any
tree creatures. The opening in which the prisoners lay was nearly covered with
a jumble of blocks. Paramount in the clearing was a thing squatting upright on
a heap of rocks.
It appeared to have been
hacked out of wood, crudely, but with enough skill to represent hazily one of
the tree people, enlarged three times. And it was blatantly female. The ugly
face was stained scarlet, and necklaces of polished nuts and seed pods decked
the hunched shoulders. Squatting on its hams, its two hands knuckle down on
either side, its head pointed forward as if it were looking down upon the
prisoners with avid interest.
Then—
One of those small,
shiny eyes, which Sander had thought an inset bit of colored rock, blinked. The
thing was—alive!
Sander's mouth went dry.
He could accept an image. But that this huge brute thing lived was true
nightmare. The nightmare compounded when the vast mouth opened a little to show
fangs, one cracked and broken. The tip of a pallid tongue issued forth like a
loathsome worm.
The thing raised its
head a little and hooted—a queer cry like that of some night-hunting creature.
From the trees around, though they remained unseen, the forest things answered
with a loud chorus of chittering cries.
Here was no resemblance
to any speech Sander had ever heard, but it thrust fear into his heart. He
could not fight the constricting net that crushed his back pack against him,
constraining his limbs as if he were held in some giant vise.
"Aeeeeheee!"
Fanyi burst forth with a rising scream. Sander had a dim memory of having heard
it before. Yet he read into it no call for help, rather defiance.
The thing on the rock
stopped hooting. It shuffled its paunchy body closer to the edge of its perch,
swinging its head so that its small eyes regarded the girl. Then, almost
negligently, it picked up a round rock lying close to hand and threw.
Only by a finger's
breadth did the stone miss Fanyi's head. Sander believed that, had the creature
wished, it could have smashed the girl's skull. The warning was clear. But if
so, Fanyi was not heeding it.
"Aeeeeeheeee!"
Once more she sent that call, which echoed faintly from the blocks.
Sander remembered now.
So had she on the plain called to Kai and Kayi. Did she somehow sense that her
companions were nearby?
The huge female grunted,
sweeping out a hand in search of another stone. Then she got lumberingly to her
feet. Sander gasped. Even allowing for the fact that her perch was above the
level of the clearing floor, she was tall enough to top him by far more than a
head. Her ponderous body was that of a giant not only among her own kind, but
his as well.
She descended the blocks
slowly, as if she were not quite sure how stable they might be under her
weight. When she reached the ground, she stooped to grab at Fanyi. Sander
twisted frantically to free himself. He was sure he was going to witness some
horrible act of mutilation or death.
But through the air, as
if the fisher had borrowed wings, came Kai, a hissing scream issuing from his
fanged jaws. The beast landed true, on the slightly bent shoulders of the giant
female, his head darting forward toward her massive neck.
The forest female
straightened with a hooting cry, tried to swing back her arms, tear loose the
animal sinking its fangs in her flesh. Now the smaller Kayi appeared in turn,
not leaping through the air, but streaking across the ground to clamp her teeth
into one of those pendulous breasts.
Loud cries from the
trees echoed the hoots of the giant. Sander expected to see the forest things
drop from the branches to the rescue of their beleaguered female. Yet they did
nothing but keep up their clamor as she stamped about, striving to pluck away
her attackers. She loosened Kayi by tearing loose her own flesh still clamped
in the fisher's jaws, flinging the animal from her. But when she sought to
reach Kai again, the smaller fisher flashed in once more apparently unharmed by
that rough handling.
Suddenly, a fountain of
blood burst from the side of the giant's throat. Kai, worrying away, had
severed an artery. The forest woman gave a last hoot and sank forward to her
knees, while Kayi returned, to snap and tear at her body. She pawed feebly,
trying to reach the creature on her back, and then slumped. Her terrible head
came to rest upon a block like a mask of hideous death while a river of blood
ran across the stones. The chittering of her people, still hidden in the trees,
sank into silence even as she died.
The fishers backed away
from the body, as if, since the death of the giant, they found the scent and
taste of her torn flesh noisome. Sander waited, expecting that unseen audience
in the trees to burst down upon them, clubbing both animals and the helpless
prisoners. He and Fanyi might have escaped whatever particularly grisly fate
the giant female planned, but they had certainly not won their freedom.
That beat had stopped.
Sander was no longer aware of it. But he could hear rustlings and movements in
the trees and braced himself for a final attack. When that did not come, he
grew even more apprehensive, fearful that they might not be killed at once by
the forest creatures, but rather be the victims of some crueler and more
prolonged fate.
The fishers crouched by
Fanyi, their heads up and turning from side to side as they kept their
attention fixed on the trees. Fierce as the animals had shown themselves to be
in that surprise attack, Sander thought they would be helpless as Fanyi should
the tree men use their nets.
Moments passed. He could
no longer even hear movement overhead. The sun beat down hotly in the clearing
and the smell of death was strong.
"They are
gone." Fanyi broke the waiting silence.
"What?" Sander
tried to raise his head higher to catch a glimpse of what might lie beyond the
curtain of the leaves.
"They have
gone," she repeated.
Perhaps they might have
for now. But that did not free their captives. The constriction of the ropes
binding him was now a torment, as his awareness turned toward his own condition
and away from the menace of the giant.
"Lie still,"
Fanyi said now. "I have heard of these vines. There is an answer to them
also. But be still—let me try to make Kayi understand what must be done."
He could not move at all
now, and his fear took another form—that the continued constriction of the rope
would slowly cut his body to pieces, crush his back with the weight of his own
pack and its smith tools. There was nothing he could do but be still,
whether at her orders or not.
The heat of the sun on
his face brought back the pain in his head, and he longed for water, for the
easement of his bonds. Kayi had crouched by the girl, muzzle nearly touching
Fanyi's face. They were utterly quiet as they matched stares with one another.
Meanwhile Kai prowled
about the clearing, stopping under each tree to gaze upward, as if in search of
more prey. Now and then his body, large as it was, was hidden behind some of
the blocks. Twice the fisher reared his length against a tree trunk, peering up,
his head swinging a little right and then left, as if he sought by scent what
he could not see.
Sander looked back to
Fanyi and Kayi. The fisher shuffled away from the girl and deliberately dabbed
one forepaw and then the other into the pool of blood that had dropped from
their dead enemy. With the same care she then scraped her claws into the earth
so that loose dust adhered to them.
Thus prepared, she came
back to Fanyi and set her filthy claws within the bonds of the net, plainly
using her full strength as she strove to tear the mesh.
It was necessary for her
to make many trips to recoat her claws against the sticky surface of the ropes.
But each time she returned to her task. Sander had some lapses from
consciousness. The pain in his head, the steady pressure on his back caused
blackouts, and he did not know how long they lasted. He expected the forest
creatures to return at any moment, and now he no longer cared. Finally he
passed entirely into that dark world which had been lapping at him.
He awoke, choking a
little, liquid spewing from his mouth. Then, still not quite aware, he
swallowed painfully once and again, as more water was dribbled between his dry
lips. But he could breathe, the pain in his back was no longer constant. He
shifted and knew that he was free from the net. Fanyi leaned above him, pouring
the water a few sips at a time into his mouth.
"We—" His
voice sounded fuzzy and far away.
"Can you
move?" she demanded. "Try! Can you sit—stand—?"
Her urgency reached him
only dimly through the haze that wrapped about him. But obediently the smith
dragged himself up to his knees, then, with her tugging at him, lurched to his
feet.
The sun no longer baked
them so fiercely, but they were still in the clearing and the giant's
body—Sander averted his eyes hastily.
"Come!" Fanyi
pulled at him until he staggered a pace or so ahead. Then he stopped, swaying.
"My tools!"
The first truly coherent thought struck him. He would not abandon all that
belonged to his past.
"Kai brings
them!" the girl snapped impatiently. "Come!"
The male fisher was
lumbering along, dragging Sander's pack, jerking at it when it caught against
the edge of a block or the branches of a bush. And since Sander doubted if he
could stoop to reclaim it and then keep going, he had to be content.
He wavered on, glad to
feel strength return as he went, even though the torment of renewed circulation
accompanied the motion. His mind began to clear also.
"The tree
things—" He strove to find words for his ever-present foreboding.
"They have not returned—I
do not know why," Fanyi admitted. "Unless when the fishers slew their
great woman they were so in fear that they will not face Kai or Kayi again.
Still they may come hunting. But the furred ones will not let them reach us
without warning this time."
"Where do we
go?"
"There is a
path," she replied. "It leads right—eastward. I think we are safer
heading for the sea than trying to return through the forest."
To that he agreed. Fanyi
had been carrying his dart thrower, now she pressed it back into his hold.
"This is your
weapon; have it ready. We know not what manner of revenge these beast-things
may plan."
He took it eagerly. If
she was right and the fishers could warn them of any future attack by the net,
then they would have a chance. He had seen no weapons other than the clumsy
clubs.
Since he could now walk
alone, Fanyi moved a little ahead, her own pack firmly against her shoulders,
Kayi bounding with her, while the larger male formed their rear guard. Sander
found himself listening.
The beat, which was more
vibration than sound, had been silenced. The whole woods was quiet now, too—no
more twittering of birds or other hints that any life beside their own had even
ventured under this green roof. It was only then that Sander caught, faint and
seemingly from very far away, a yelp he knew. Rhin!
But if the koyot trailed
them into this deadly tree trap, he might well be netted as they had been! And
Sander had no way of warning the animal not to venture here. Or had he?
The smith paused, drew
breath deep into his lungs, and then uttered a cry that bore no relation to the
whistle that usually summoned Rhin. Instead this was a deep-lunged yowl—the war
call of the great mountain cat. Whether Rhin could catch his meaning he did not
know—he could only hope.
Both fishers whirled to
face him, snarling. Fanyi's surprise was open. Twice more he sounded that cry,
thinking that the desperation which had set him to mimic it had indeed this
time produced almost the proper timbre.
"Rhin," he
explained. "He must not come and be caught. That is the cry of an old hill
enemy. But perhaps unlike it enough in his ears to be a warning."
The girl nodded, already
again pushing on. Sander could see that what she called a path must once have
been a road. Perhaps not as wide a one as they had followed earlier, but still
having remains of paving. Those tumbled blocks back in the clearing—now that he
thought about them he believed that they were too regular in outline to be a
natural outcrop. Perhaps they had also been set in place by man for some
reason.
To his relief Sander now
saw that the forest growth was getting thinner. And he caught a murmur that he
fiercely hoped was the sound of distant surf. Let them get out into the open on
the beach and they would be safe enough—there could be no overhead attack
launched there.
They quickened pace. Now
the smith felt strong enough to catch up his pack and sling it back across his
shoulders as they thudded along. There were blocks of stone poking through the
lighter brush. More buildings once? He did not know or care—to get into the
open was the important thing.
The growth of trees
became much lighter. Bushes, tall grass, and heaped stones formed barriers
around and over which they had to make their way. The fishers flowed along
easily while the humans had a more difficult time of it.
Open sun again—but now
well down the sky. And the sea! Sander stood on the top of one block he had had
to climb, making sure of that. And running along the sand, which spurted out
from under his pads as he came, was Rhin! The koyot startled the shore birds,
which arose with shrill cries; then his yelp sounded loud and clear.
They pushed through a
stand of stubborn briars, and sand crunched under their boots. The fresh air of
the beach blew away the last vile memory of the haunted woods. Rhin reached
them, nosing at Sander delightedly, then growling a little, as he must have scented
either the forest savages or their nets. His ears pricked toward woods as he
growled again more deeply.
"Not now!"
Sander told him joyfully. "We're free!"
They had no wish to
linger too close to that dark stand. Instead, they turned north again, this
time keeping to the beach where one could see for miles anyone or anything that
might come.
"Who—or what—were
they?" Sander asked that night when they made camp among the dunes, with a
cheerful fire of driftwood cooking the crabs Rhin had pawed from sand holes.
"Have you seen or heard of them before?"
"The tree
men?" Fanyi was repacking her bag, having searched carefully through it as
if she feared that some of its contents had suffered from rough handling.
"I do not know. I think they must be new-come here, for my people have
gone nutting in that wood each autumn and never before have we found such. You
ask 'what'—do you then believe that they are not in truth men?"
"I do not know. To
me, they seemed closer to animals, lesser than Rhin or your furred ones. And
why did they serve a giant?"
"There were many
strange changes in both man and animal during the Dark Time. My father,"
her hand cupped the pendant again, "he had knowledge of such changes. He
told my mother some animals now moved toward the estate of men. Perhaps it is
also true then that some men were dropping backward into animals. These forest
people are less even than the Sea Sharks—though perhaps they are fully akin in
spirit." That fierce light was again in her eyes when she spoke of the enemy
who had wiped out Padford. "I think that we were intended as offering to
placate their female."
Sander did not shiver,
but he would have liked to. What might have happened had not the fishers come
to their rescue? He did not care to dwell upon that. He noticed that this night
neither Kai, Kayi, nor Rhin roamed away from the fire, but were settling down
close to its light. Perhaps, they, too, were affected by the strangeness of
this region, sensing a menace that lay just below the surface.
He suggested that they
watch in turn, being sure to keep the fire lit, and Fanyi agreed at once. But
she pressured him into taking the first rest, pointing out that his heavy pack
had been such a hazard to him in the shrinking net that he had suffered more
than she. And, although he would have liked to argue the question, her good
sense made his pride seem childish.
When she aroused him,
the night had closed in. Rhin lay with his head pillowed on his forepaws, his
eyes yellow slits of awareness as Sander went to feed the fire. The fishers
were curled into two furry balls, and Fanyi settled herself in a sandy hollow
by them.
Above, the stars were
very bright and clear, and the ceaseless wash of the waves lulling. Sander got
to his feet, motioning Rhin to lie still when the koyot at once raised his
head. He walked a little down the beach, gathering more driftwood, feeling too
restless to remain still. As he started back, he faced toward that black shadow
marking the edge of the woods. Had the forest men come slinking after them? Would
those leave the trees to hunt down the slayers of their—what had she been: a
chief, mother of the tribe, even a supernatural figure with supposed powers of
a Shaman? They would never know. Only that she had had no common heritage with
either Fanyi or him, that she had been farther removed from their blood-kin
than even the furred ones.
This might be a world of
many surprises. It would be best that from now on their party should move with
great care, accepting nothing as harmless until it was proven so.
He tramped back to the
fire and fed in some wood. Rhin's eyes closed when he saw Sander settle down.
Fanyi lay, breathing evenly. In sleep her face looked very young, untried. But
she was not. He owed his life to her or at least to her furred ones. Somehow
that idea was one he did not altogether like. He had blundered around
like an untried boy on his first herd ride. There was little for him to be
proud of in this day's work.
Frowning, he pulled his
tool bag to him, drawing forth the tools, examining them one by one. The two
hammers he had found in Padford—those ought to be fitted with proper handles.
But there was nothing here except driftwood, and the strength of that he did
not trust. When he had time, he would search out some proper wood and see them shafted
again. He thought they would have excellent balance, once they were ready for
use.
Now he wondered about
the man who had used them. What manner of smith had served Padford? He would
like to ask Fanyi. But he thought it better not to call to her mind any thought
of her people and their doom.
That made him think in
turn of what she sought—some weapon out of the Before Time, one potent enough
to wipe out those raiders from the south. Did such exist still? He doubted it.
But that Fanyi did have knowledge of some hidden place, that he did not doubt.
Metal—
He thought of copper and
gold and silver and iron—those he knew, could fashion to obey his will. But the
others—the strange alloys that no man now held the secret of—if he could master
those also! His hand curled about the broken handle of the large hammer he had
found, and a kind of restless eagerness filled him so that he longed to get up
at his very moment and run—run to find the secrets Fanyi promised existed
somewhere.
He must discipline his
too vivid imagination. Fanyi's idea of what she sought was very vague. He must
not count on good fortune until he met it face-to-face. Slowly Sander repacked
the tools and knotted their bag. It was good fortune enough this night that
they were still alive.
For two days they plodded among the
dunes. Save for the birds, shellfish and crabs they foraged for, this land
might have been bare of any life. Far to the west showed the dark line of the
forest. Between them and it was a waste in which little grew but tough grass in
scattered clumps and some brush twisted by the salt winds into strange shapes.
On the third morning
they reached an even stranger desert land. The sea, too, now curled away to the
east, so what they faced was a slope leading downward into territory that had
once been covered by ocean but was now dry land. Here rocks had necklaces of
long-dead shellfish, while brittle carcasses of other sea life lay half-buried
around outcrops of wave-worn stone.
Sander wanted to alter
their path westward—hoping to skirt this desert. But Fanyi hesitated, her eyes
again on her pendant, in which she seemed to trust so deeply.
"What we seek lies
there!" She pointed straight ahead, out into the sea-desert.
"How far?"
countered Sander. He had little liking for the path she suggested.
"I cannot
say."
"We must be more
sure. To go out there—" He shook his head. "We have finished the last
of the meal. Even crabs and shellfish will not be found there. Though we filled
our waterskin at the pool among the dunes this morning, how long think you that
supply will last?"
"And if we turn
west, how many days may we be adding to our journey?" she countered.
He surveyed what lay to
the west. The beach land they had been following narrowed to a cliff barrier,
on which he could see trees. To return to any wood after their experience—no,
not if there were a way to avoid it. But he had to have some assurance that
they were not heading into nowhere without a better guide than Fanyi's vague
directions.
True, he could sight
some grass and a few bushes that had rooted out on the old sea bottom. It was
not quite so desolate as he had first believed. And there were rocks in that
uncovered landscape that would provide them with landmarks, so that they need
not wander in circles once they were out of sight of this land that had once
been the shore.
"A day's
journey," he conceded. "Then, if we find nothing—return."
The girl seemed hardly
to hear him, though she nodded. Now she allowed the pendant to drop again and
surveyed what lay ahead with an eagerness obviously not lessened by any
forebodings.
Rhin trotted confidently
along. But the fishers prowled back and forth, venting their displeasure by
hissing, following the others only when Fanyi coaxed. It was very apparent that
they, at least, had no liking for this open country.
For a space, the bottom
was sandy and fair walking. Then there began a gravelly stretch studded with
many water-worn stones. This footing shifted and turned under any weight. The
land they left must have formed, Sander deduced, one arm of a great bay in the
Before Days.
Sun shone through a huge
upstanding fence of wide-spaced rib bones belonging to some sea creature, or
perhaps they were the timbers of a ship so overlaid with the bodies of shelled
things that all that remained was as if turned to stone. Sander was not sure
which.
The sea-desert was not
evenly floored, for there were hillocks and dips. In the hollow of one small
valley they came upon a little pool ribbed with white salt, perhaps a last
remnant of the lost sea.
On and on; now that
Sander glanced back he could hardly see the true land from which they had come.
And his doubt concerning the wisdom of traveling in this direction grew in him.
There was a kind of rejection here—as if the life he represented was resented,
even hated by the ancient desolation.
At length, they reached
a deep cut and looked down its rugged sides. Below flowed a river. How to
cross? The fishers were clambering down the side, heading for the water below.
He and Fanyi might also do that, but Rhin could not. They would have to go off
course—west again, even farther out into the desert, hoping to discover a place
where there was an easier crossing.
The river solved one of
their problems, however, for Sander saw the fishers dipping their muzzles into
the stream, obviously drinking sweet water.
They trudged along the
edge of that gorge. Sander's hope was proven right, the rock walls began to
sink down while the river widened. They detoured around masses of encrusted
objects that he thought were ships, to come at last upon something else, the
remains of a wall of massive blocks, which were far too regular in pattern to
be the work of nature. Beyond that were other stones that might have once
marked the beginning of a road, as well as two great fallen columns, all so
overlaid with sea growth that it was plain they were very old, perhaps even old
when the Before Time had begun. He marveled at the work, and Fanyi traced along
the edge of a block with her finger tips.
"Old—old—" She
marveled. "Perhaps there was even another Dark Time when the world changed
to bring in the same sea that our Dark Time drove out. If we only knew—"
There was a wistfulness in her voice that he could well have echoed.
They dared not linger to
explore what the ancient sea had concealed, pushing on resolutely to where the
river now flowed out to the sea, well away from the Before shore they had
followed.
Dusk found them on the
new seashore, so once more they camped by the sound of beating waves. Here,
too, was driftwood enough for a fire. And the fishers, who had followed the
river, came into camp each dragging a large fish. Fanyi hailed their catch, a
delicacy her people knew but were seldom able to eat.
As the fish broiled on
sticks before the fire, Sander leaned his back against a water-worn stone and
stared out over the river. There was a current to be sure. But with the bed so
much wider and shallower here, he thought they could gain the other side in the
daylight without too much exertion. Then following it westward once more they
could also depend upon water as long as they paralleled its flow. Though the
river had taken them far off the course Fanyi had set, perhaps it was not to be
counted a major difficulty after all.
Fanyi laid out a pattern
of small shells. "It is a wonder of the sea, Sander-smith, that no two of
these is ever quite the same. The shape may be alike, yet the markings—there is
always some slight differing. There are some the Traders prize, and those will
buy a length of copper wire, even a lump of rusted iron, which still has a good
core. I—"
But what she would have
said Sander never knew. He had been watching Rhin. Now he made a swift gesture
with one hand and reached for his dart thrower. The koyot bristled, his lips
drawn back to show his teeth, his eyes near-slits.
Sander listened
intently. Fanyi crouched by the fire her hands resting on the backs of Kai and
Kayi, who were also hissing softly.
Now came a
splashing—from the sea or the river? Sander could not be sure just which
direction. Rhin growled again.
"A fire
torch!" Sander half-whispered to Fanyi.
Instantly she caught up
a thick branch of the driftwood, thrust one end into the flame. When that
branch caught, she whirled it around, to make the flame-blaze glow. With that
in hand, before Sander could stop her, she clawed her way to the top of one of
the large stones, swinging her improvised torch outward.
He scrambled up to join
her, a dart laid ready to shoot. A croaking sound came from out of the dusk.
Then the light of the torch caught a dark figure standing on the edge of the
river, its body glistening as if it had just crawled out of the flood.
The thing stood like a
man, erect upon its hind limbs. But for the rest—this was not even as human as
the forest men had seemed. Pallid skin hung in folds about its torso, while its
upper and lower limbs looked flat. It had a great gaping mouth from which
issued the croaking, and above the mouth were bulbous eyes. But—
Around its middle was a
strip of something that appeared to be scaled hide. Into that were thrust two
long, curved, deadly-pointed lengths that might have been fashioned, Sander
thought, of bone, not metal.
"Do not shoot!"
Fanyi cried out. "It is afraid. I think it will go—"
Even as she spoke, the
thing took a great leap backward, sinking into the river. The flame of the
torch did not reach very far, so it was almost instantly out of sight as it
swam.
"Fire—it does not
like the fire." The girl spoke with conviction, as if she had, in those
few seconds of confrontation, been able to read the water thing's mind.
Rhin passed below them,
racing to the edge of the river, howling madly at the swift-flowing surface. It
was plain the koyot had made up his mind that the river dweller was dangerous.
If they were to cross
the river to continue their journey, Sander thought, they must plunge into the
water in which the thing was clearly at home. He did not like the prospect that
faced them with the coming of daylight.
"What was it?"
Since this land was more Fanyi's than his, he turned to her for enlightenment.
She shook her head.
"Again—such a
creature I have not seen before. But there are tales that once something from
the sea came and broke the nets at Padford, taking also fishermen who were
unwary. It was after a great storm and the water turned red. It stank and so
many fish died men had to burn them in great heaps upon the shore. Later there
was no more trouble. But that was in my mother's mother's time, and none saw
clearly the sea things. It was thought that they had some intelligence—for the
nets were slashed where the cutting would do the most harm."
"It"—Sander
slid down to sit on her perch—"the thing did not look much like a
man."
"The creature is a
water thing," she agreed. "Listen!"
Above the wash of the
sea waves, the gurgle of the river, they caught a sound, though distant—a
croaking. Was the visitor they had sighted only the scout of a larger party?
Perhaps for them to remain near the river was folly. Still Sander hesitated to
move out into the dark.
In the end they decided
that, with the fire and the sentry service of Rhin and the fishers, they might
stay where they were. As Sander improvised a second torch to aid in hunting
more wood, Fanyi brought from one of the belt pouches a thick rod about the
length of her own palm. She turned the bottom of it firmly to the right and
then touched a place on its side. Straightway there flashed the light that had
transfixed him on their first meeting.
"This is a Before
thing," she told him with pride of ownership. "It was also my
father's. But he said that it has limited life and after a while it will die.
However, now we can use it to advantage."
Sander shook his head.
"If it will die, then it should be saved for a time of greater need. Since
you say these water things fear fire, fire we shall use."
With Fanyi holding a
torch he made a harvest of driftwood from some distance on either side of their
camping place, piling pieces high, hoping this would last the night. The fire
itself—unless there was warning of the water dweller's return—they would keep
low.
Once more they divided
the watch. This time neither the fishers nor Rhin relaxed into deep slumber.
Rather they dozed, rising at intervals to pad out into the darkness where
Sander believed they were making rounds of the camp.
He himself listened for
croaking. However, it had died away. Even when it was his time to rest, he kept
nodding awake to listen and watch the fire.
With the morning he went
down to the river, carefully judging the chance of crossing at this point.
Fanyi insisted that what she sought lay beyond, north and now a little west. If
they returned to land, retracing all the way they had covered yesterday, they
would still have the river to cross in order to reach their goal, and it could
well be patrolled, even back to the edge of the inner country, by the water
creatures.
Therefore, dare they
attempt to cross here and now?
The river current cut
sharply into the new sea. Sander did not like the way pieces of wood he threw
to test the strength of that current were whirled so swiftly past.
Secondly, he gauged the
river depth with a long piece of wood. Close to the shore he thought it about
thigh-high. Beyond that, he believed they might have to swim. And they would
have to fight the current also in order not to be swept out to sea.
This meant going back
upstream for a distance to allow some leeway. He knew the rivers of the plains.
But, except in the spring when they were in spate, none of them had ever
presented such a problem as this.
"Can you
swim?" he asked Fanyi, when she joined him. His own prowess, he knew, was
nothing to boast of. But at least, he thought, he could keep himself afloat by
his efforts long enough to reach the other bank. Always providing their visitor
of the night before, or his fellows, did not arrive to make things difficult.
"Yes, and
you?"
"Well enough to
cross this."
"It will be
better"—the girl echoed his own thought—"to cross here, I think. If
we return we shall lose much time, and it may be more difficult farther back
than easier."
They prepared for the
attempt as well as they knew how. Their bags were lashed high and tight on
Rhin's back; they stripped off their clothing to add to the burdens on the
koyot. Staff in hand, Sander gingerly stepped into the water. The flood was
chill and his flesh shrank from it. The tug on his body grew stronger as it
crept upward from his thighs to his middle. Cautiously he probed the bottom
ahead for a possible quick drop in footing that might be disastrous. Rhin
plunged in beside him, a little downstream, and Sander could hear a loud
splashing behind that told him Fanyi and her companions were following.
He had taken the
precaution of bringing a hide rope from his stores. This was anchored to Rhin's
back pack, then looped around Sander's waist, the other end in turn knotted to
Fanyi's belt.
Now the water was
shoulder high, and he had to fight to keep upright in it. A sudden slip of his
pole left him threshing without footing. Choking and sputtering, he began to
swim clumsily. Within moments his body brought up against Rhin's. The koyot
fought to keep his own way, as both of them were borne downstream.
Fear grew in Sander.
What if they could not break the hold of the current? Before starting, he had
given Fanyi strict orders that, if he and Rhin were overborne, she was to slash
the rope that looped them together so she would have a better chance for
herself. However, the pull was still taut because she had not done so.
Rhin swam lustily, and
Sander made some way beside the koyot, not daring to try to see how much closer
to the sea the current had already dragged them. He floundered on, feeling as
if he were as much entrapped now by the water as he had been by the forest net.
Finally the koyot found
footing and plunged up and on. Sander swiftly linked a hand in the rope making
fast the load the animal carried. A moment later one of his feet grazed an
underwater rock painfully, and he scrambled on until he could rise once more.
Keeping that hold on
Rhin, he splashed and fought his way up the opposite bank. The rope about his
middle was so taut as to nearly jerk him backward. He slewed around and caught
at it with both hands, fighting to pull it in.
Down in the river,
Fanyi's arms flashed into the air and disappeared again. Already she had been
carried a little past the point where Sander and Rhin had found footing. Sander
nudged the koyot with his shoulder, so that the animal added his strength to
the pull.
By their combined
efforts, Fanyi's body curved around in the stream. She was at last being drawn
up current toward them. Before Sander had time to think what might have
happened if they had failed, she waded ashore, her mass of hair water-slicked
against her head.
Down the bank toward
them flashed the fishers. Of the whole party, they had made the smoothest crossing.
Now they paused to shake their bodies furiously, sending drops flying in all
directions. But Rhin had swung around to face the river, and he snarled.
Sander caught sight of
V-shaped ripples cutting the surface of the water. He jerked the rope that
still linked him with Fanyi.
"Come on!"
He began to run, pulling
the girl along with him, very conscious of his present defenseless state. Rhin
trotted abreast of them, but the fishers played rearguard, snarling at what
traveled in the depths of the flood.
Sander did not pause
until they rounded some blocks of stone that gave him a momentary sense of
safety. Then he wriggled free the dart thrower from the burden Rhin bore,
loosening the ropes in the process to leave the koyot also stripped for action.
Scrambling on Rhin's
back, he climbed from it to the top of the tallest rock. There he lay flat, to
survey the back trail. By the morning light he had a clear view. Out of the
water trooped a number of the same creatures as the one they had sighted
before. There were perhaps a dozen of them, though they presented a slightly
different appearance from the first one, as each wore over his body—or its
body—a rounded carapace that might have been fashioned from some outsize shell.
Their round heads were covered in the same fashion, and there were even plates
strapped about the arms and legs. They had certainly come armored and ready to
do battle.
Their weapons were long
spears bearing wicked-looking barbed heads, designed, according to Sander's
craft-wise eyes, so that the barbs would break off in a wound. Their croaking
sound was more hollow, perhaps because of their helmets, but they kept up a
continual chorus as they hopped forward.
Although if they were
river dwellers, they were able to handle themselves on the sea-desert, for they
did not hesitate to advance. The fishers did not close on them instantly as
they had with the forest people. Instead, Fanyi's beasts wove back and forth,
just out of spear range, threatening and hissing, yet retreating warily.
Sander took careful aim
and fired. His dart struck home, but was partly deflected by a sudden shift of
his target, so that it lodged in the shell near the "shoulder" of the
creature, but missed the vulnerable patch between chest shield and helmet.
Still his attack appeared
to shake the enemy strangely. They ceased advancing and bunched. The one who
had been his target worried at the dart shaft until he worked it out of his
shell covering. Then he held the weapon up as if considering it unique. Their
hollow croaking grew stronger, sounding agitated. Or was that only wishful
thinking on his part, Sander wondered?
He had already set
another dart in the groove. But the river creatures offered such small
unprotected areas that he dared not fire again until he was sure of better
success. Fanyi, once more clothed, stretched out now beside him. Her hand
covered his on the stock of the thrower.
"Let me hold them
while you dress," she urged. "Under this sun your skin will burn
badly if you do not."
Sander could already
feel the heat of the sun. But to leave his post to her—
"Go!" She
nudged him hard with her shoulder. "I have used such weapons as this
before." There was an angry note in her voice, as if she resented his
hesitation.
The competent way she
handled the weapon was evidence that she spoke the truth. He laid three more
darts on the stone, then half tumbled down to dress.
Back again on the rock's
crest, he discovered that the fishers had withdrawn to the edge of the
"wall" on which he and the girl lay, while the river creatures had
apparently recovered from their surprise over the dart and were determinedly
crossing the sand and gravel toward them. The creatures hopped rather than
walked in men's fashion, yet they were not slow.
Just as Sander joined
her, Fanyi fired. The leader of the water pack dropped his spear. With a loud
croak of dismay, he dangled his "hand," a webbed member with four
equal-length digits. The dart had pierced that to form another finger set at an
angle.
Once more the enemy
bunched to examine their fellow's hurt. Sander wondered at tactics that seemed
stupid to him. These amphibians were well within range of the weapon, yet they
gathered around their wounded fellow, interested only in what had happened to
him rather than the party on the rocks. The creatures' seeming disregard of any
counterattack by the besieged was puzzling. Perhaps, having spears for weapons,
they could not understand a dart that came out of the air. They might even be
so stupid or of such an alien way of thought that they did not connect those
darts with the party they attacked.
As Fanyi surrendered the
thrower to him, she also offered some advice.
"Do not kill unless
you are forced to. Death might excite them to vengeance."
"How do you know
that?" Sander demanded.
"I do not know—no,
rather, it is that I cannot find words to explain." She seemed as puzzled
now as the river creatures were over the dart. "It is just as I know what
my furred ones think and feel. They are disturbed—they fear. But I believe that
they can be roused by hate so that their fear will be smothered. Then they will
not care how many of them die if only they can reach us. Now—they are of two
minds, they half-believe we are such as they cannot profitably hunt."
Sander could not quite
accept that the girl knew this for certain. She must be just guessing. Yet he
did not loose any darts even at targets that were tempting. He would wait out
this present round of the enemy's croaking to see what they would try next.
Now that Sander had time to examine more closely
their own temporary refuge, he noticed for the first time of the continuity of
the blocks of stone on which they rested. This, too, must be some very ancient
work of intelligent beings. The sun beat down so fiercely that he squirmed back
and forth across the surface on which he lay. To linger here was to invite
another kind of disaster.
The party of water
creatures moved at last. Two hunched down, holding their spears straight up in
the air. The others, including the one with the dart-transfixed
"hand," hopped toward the river.
Sander slipped down. The
time to move was now. He guessed that the enemy had gone for reinforcements.
And he was sure they themselves could handle the two remaining, if they were
trailed on into the desert.
Fanyi agreed to his
suggestion. She had been standing, her pendant once more in hand, turned
northwest, gazing back along the course of the river down which they had
traveled the day before.
"We shall have to
stay away from the river," Sander cautioned. "Water is their element,
and they will make the most of it." Luckily he had filled his bottle this
morning before they had crossed the stream. Only, as he surveyed the shimmering
heat of the sea-desert, he regretted that there was not a second or third
vessel to sling with their gear.
On the other hand, the
bare expanse of sand and stone, open to the full rays of the sun, ought to
daunt the water people. If they were indeed the amphibian race he judged them
to be, they would not choose willingly a long excursion over this scorched
land.
In fact, Sander decided,
as he examined the territory ahead with narrowed eyes, it might be well if they
themselves chose to travel more cautiously. He was well trained in his people's
way of herding under the night stars, using those distant points of light for a
guide. At night also they would have fire for a weapon so could travel nearly
as well as by day. However, first they must find a place in which to shelter
until sundown.
Once more he stated
aloud his estimate of their situation. That preoccupied expression smoothed
from Fanyi's face and she dropped the pendant.
"Our seamen also
steer by the stars," she replied slowly. "And I think that the heat
of the day here is such as would make any journey an ordeal. Yes, you have
judged rightly."
Again Sander felt a
prick of irritation. Of course, he had judged the situation correctly! He did
not relish that tone from her, hinting that she must weigh what he said and
then agree or disagree. Her statements that her will and power alone had kept
her people safe and that it was only because she was elsewhere they had been
raided had sounded, and still did, preposterous to him. Shaman she might claim
to be, with her tricks of foreseeing and the like, but his people held no faith
in anything save their own decisions and actions, and neither did he.
They started off at a
jog trot, the fishers bringing up the rear, Rhin once more carrying all their
gear except for the bolt thrower Sander held at the ready. The smith had also
thrust a half-dozen more bolts into his belt, close to hand. But he wished that
he had more. The loss of the two bolts he had already shot was grievous when
his armament was so limited.
Rhin, in spite of his
pack, forged ahead, ranging back and forth as he was wont to do on the plains
when hunting. Sander paused frequently at the beginning of their trek to look
back.
If two armored
amphibians were indeed pursuing, they managed to make such excellent use of the
unevenness of the ancient sea floor as to remain invisible. The farther the
fugitives ventured into what was increasingly a salt-encrusted and sere desert,
the surer Sander became that beings used to living in water could not trail
them hither.
That did not make him
relax his vigilance as they headed northwest by his reckoning. Fanyi now and
then gazed at her pendant as if it were a sure guide. He himself chose the old
method of fixing upon a permanent point, a feature that could not be lost to
sight, and aiming at that. Then, having reached that goal, he selected another.
Thirst followed as their
boots stirred up a fine dust impregnated with salt. To know that the river with
its endless bounty was closed to them, unless sheer desperation forced them to
its dangerous flow, irked Sander.
He had experienced heat
on the plains, and had ridden far during seasons when water was scarce. But
then he had also known the country well enough to assess the chances of finding
a spring or one of those seasonally dried streambeds into which Rhin dug with
the instinct of his kind to uncover seeping moisture. Where in this forsaken
land could they find such?
Every time they paused
to rest, the smith climbed the nearest elevation to look, not only back but
ahead. If they could just hole up, out of this punishing sun and wait until
nightfall.
During the fifth such
survey, he caught sight of a thing that lay a little to the east of their
present course. They were used by now to the relics of ancient ships, their
encrusted shapes even furnishing several of the landmarks by which Sander
traveled. But this was something out of the ordinary.
In the first place,
Sander was sure that he had caught a glint of metal. Secondly, the shape he now
studied was totally unlike anything they had sighted before. It was long and
narrow, in comparison with the other skeletons of lost vessels, and it lay a
little canted to one side, its broken superstructure pointed toward the rock on
which Sander balanced.
Also it did not seem so
aged. One end was crumpled up against a rise of reef, but otherwise, Sander
believed, it appeared nearly intact. He thought that it might have been left
thus by the falling of the sea that had uncovered this new land. It offered the
best shelter he had seen so far.
If they could find a way
inside that hulk, it would be what he had sought for them. And Fanyi eagerly agreed.
As they approached the
strange ship, Sander saw that his first valuation of it had been deceptive. It
was larger than he had thought. The outline seemed to puzzle Fanyi, for she
commented wonderingly that it was not like any ship she knew.
Once at its side they
were dwarfed by it. Though the plates that formed it bore streaks of rust, yet
the metal beneath had withstood the passage of time surprisingly well. Sander
thumped the surface, judging that under a thin crusting of rust it was firmly
intact.
Any entrance must be
made through the deck that slanted well above them. He unwound the hide rope
that had lashed the pack to Rhin and hunted out one of his largest hammers.
This he tied with well-tested knots. Then he bade Fanyi stay where she was,
while he rounded the narrow end of the ancient ship to the other side.
There he whirled the end
of rope weighted with the hammer about his head and threw. Twice it clattered
back, bringing flakes of rust with it. But the third time it caught so securely
on some portion of the superstructure that his most energetic jerks could not
dislodge it. He began to climb and moments later balanced on the slope of the
deck. Facing him was a stump of a tower broken off as if some giant hand had
twisted a portion free. There was no other opening he could see.
He crossed the slanting
deck to look down at Fanyi. Rhin, released from his back pack, was trotting
away. And, though Sander straightway whistled, the koyot did not even look
back.
Frustrated, Sander knew
this was one of the times Rhin was minded to go his own way. He guessed that
might be in search of water. Yet the koyot was heading west on into the desert,
rather than east as Sander would expect him to go. The fishers, however,
continued to prowl nearby among the rocks, plainly uneasy. Or perhaps they were
unhappy at being so far from the green-grown country that was their own.
Sander dropped the rope
end, having made very sure the hammer was well wedged into the broken spear of
the tower, and Fanyi climbed to join him. She stood there, her legs braced
against the tilt of the deck, her hands on her hips, her head turning slowly
from side to side.
"What manner of
ship was this?" she asked musingly, more as if she meant that question for
herself and not for him. "It is surely very strange looking."
Sander edged along to
the broken superstructure. Rust streaked its sides, but there was a space to
enter within, though dark. Here they needed Fanyi's Before Light, and he asked
her to use it. She probed with its beam through the break. He glimpsed the
remains of a ladder against one wall leading downward through an opening in the
floor. With Fanyi on the deck at the top, shining her light past him, Sander
descended, testing each ladder rung as well as he could before he trusted his
full weight to it.
He found himself in a
confined area, crowded with smashed objects, all sea-stained, that he could not
identify. However, the ladder continued. So he went on, reaching a larger room
where there were banks of strange-looking cases along the walls. All had been
water-washed and were broken. He called and Fanyi lowered the light, then
clambered down herself as he held the gleam upward to illuminate those steps.
When she stood beside him, she gazed in wonder at the enigmatic fittings along the
walls.
"What did they use,
these Before Men, to power their ship?" she asked of the stagnant,
sea-scented air about them. "There was no sign of a proper mast aloft—nor
oars."
Sander was intent on the
wealth of metal about him. It was plain that this ship had been the helpless
plaything of the great flood in the Dark Time, and waters washing through the
hole above had damaged much. Yet most of the metal was still stout. He could
scrape away the coating of sea deposits and rust to see it bright and strong underneath.
To his right, behind the
jumble of battered wall fittings that made no sense, there was an oval of a
door, tight shut. He moved cautiously through the debris that covered the floor
to feel about for some latch. There was a wheel there—perhaps one must turn
that.
But, though he exerted
his full strength of arm, the fitting remained immovable. He drew his hammer
from his belt and began a rhythmic attack on the wheel, though the quarters
were so cramped that he could not get a proper swing.
At first he merely
chipped free an age-long deposit of rust and sea life from its surface. Then
the stubborn latch yielded a fraction, feeding his excitement. His blows grew
stronger, until, with a sudden give, the wheel moved gratingly. Now Sander
delivered a fast tattoo, striking with a smith's eye at the most vulnerable
angle.
He had, he believed,
brought the wheel to face the notch that would release the door catch. Around
the edge of the door were encrustations that sealed it. He turned his attention
to chipping them away.
At last he rebelted his
hammer and set both hands to the wheel, urging the door open. A puff of
odd-smelling air blew out from the dark cave of the interior. Air—under the
sea?
Sander snatched the
light from Fanyi without any by-your-leave, sending its beam into the room
beyond. There was a table there that must have been securely fastened to the
floor since all the battering this strange ship had taken in its death days had
not loosened it. And it was still flanked by benches. Under them, rolled near
to the lower side—
He heard Fanyi catch her
breath. They had both looked on death, for that was common enough in their
world. But this was no death they had seen before. Those shrunken withered
things did not now bear any likeness to man.
"They sealed
themselves in," Fanyi said softly, "and then the sea took their ship
and there was no escape. Before Men—we look now upon Before Men!"
But these things, still
clad in rags of clothing—Sander could not believe that such as these had once
been men who walked proudly, masters of their world. The Rememberers had
chanted of the Before Men, that they were greater, stronger, far more in every
way than those who now lived in distorted lands left after the Dark Time.
These—these were not the heroes of those chants! He shook his head slowly at
his own thoughts.
"They are—were—only
men," he said, never aware until this moment that he had, indeed, always
held a secret belief that those ancestors must have been far different from his
own kind.
"But," Fanyi
added softly, "what men they must have been! For this ship sprang from
their dreams! I believe that this is one of those meant to sail under water,
not on its surface, such as the legends say men possessed in the Before
Time."
Sander had a sudden
dislike for this place. What manner of men had these poor remnants been who had
sealed themselves in a metal shell to travel under water? He felt
choked, confined, even as he had in the net of the forest people. Yes, perhaps
after all, the Before Men were of a different breed, possessing a brand of
courage that he frankly admitted he did not have.
He stepped backward,
having no wish to explore this ship farther. They could clear some of the
litter out of that upper chamber and shelter there until night. But these
remains should be left undisturbed in their chosen tomb.
"It is theirs, this
place." He spoke softly, as he might if he wished not to disturb some
sleeper. "Let us leave it wholly theirs."
"Yes," Fanyi
assented.
Together they pushed
shut that door upon the past and climbed the ladder to the upper level. As they
brushed all they could of the debris in the small compartment down the ladder
hole to free floor space, Sander came across lengths of wire, pieces of metal
that were hardly corroded at all. He recognized them as something the Traders
named "stainless steel," another secret from Before, for such did not
corrode easily—neither could it be copied. From these pieces, knowing to his
disappointment that he could not hope to carry much, he made a judicious selection.
Some of the bits could be worked into dart heads, always supposing they could
find a place where he might be able once more to labor at his trade.
Fanyi, for her part,
combed through the litter for scraps of material on which appeared lines and
patterns that she declared were part of the old art of writing. The most
portable of these she tucked into a small sack.
In the end they cleared
a goodly space in which, cramped though it might be, they could shelter. The
fishers refused to come on deck, though Fanyi coaxed them. The pair settled
down instead under the shade of the tilted ship. Of Rhin there was no sign. Nor
was there any hint that Sander could see, after a searching survey of that part
of the surrounding desert he could examine, of any pursuit by the amphibians.
They shared out a
handful each of Fanyi's dried fruit, allowing themselves and the fishers each a
limited drink. Then they curled up to await the coming of dark.
The day was hot, but
lacked the baking, drying heat of the outer world, so they managed to doze.
Sander awoke at last in answer to a sharp familiar yelp. There was no mistaking
the cry of a koyot. He crawled over Fanyi, who murmured in her sleep, ascending
the ladder to the deck.
Rhin reared on his hind
feet, his front paws planted against the curve of the ship's side. He yelped
again, sharply, with a note that demanded attention. Yet it was not a cry of
warning.
Sander swung down by the
rope. Rhin nosed at him eagerly. The koyot's muzzle and the hair on his front
legs were wet—or at least damp, with an overcoating of the sea-bottom sand
plastered there by moisture. Rhin had found water!
"What is it?"
Fanyi appeared above.
"Rhin has found
water!"
"Another river?"
Sander wondered about
that with foreboding. Since their experience with the amphibians, from now on
he would look upon all streams warily. But water they must have, or else back
trail west completely.
Now for the first time
he wished there was some more direct method of communication between man and
koyot, that he could ask Rhin a question and learn what lay out toward the east
where the other had disappeared earlier. But he was assured in this much: Rhin
already knew the menace of the amphibians; therefore the koyot would not lead
them into any ambush. He said as much, and Fanyi agreed.
The sinking of the sun
removed the desert's direct heat. But they still suffered from the rise of salt
dust about their feet. Rhin, once more bearing his pack, trotted confidently
forward in a direction that, to Sander, only took them farther from the land.
However, his confidence in the koyot was such he was sure the animal knew where
he was bound.
Before the moon rose,
the fishers suddenly pushed to the fore of the small party, loping forward with
their usual sinuous gait until they disappeared into a section of towering
rocks that must have once been reefs showing above water. They formed
knife-edged, sharp ridges, rather than hillocks that could be climbed.
On the other side of one
of these, they came to a second deep drop in the sea-desert floor. But edging
this was another tumble of those ancient worked blocks. Among them Fanyi's
light (which she had been forced to put to use in this uneven footing) picked
out a curving curb. Lying within it was the sheen of water, like a dull mirror
that had nothing to reflect.
The pool (Fanyi's light
moved in a circular pattern to pick out its circumference) was an oval, far too
symmetrically formed to be of nature's fashioning. At one side, some of the
curbing had given way, allowing the water to lap over and run away in a small
riverlet to the edge of the drop, spinning over it in a miniature falls. The
drop there was beyond the power of the light to plumb.
Sander tasted the water.
Sweet and fresh. He drank from his cupped hands, dashed it over his dusty face.
Small rivulets dribbled down his neck and chest, carrying away the grime of the
desert. The fishers plunged their muzzles in deep, sucking with audible gulps.
Fanyi followed Sander's example, drank and then washed, uttering at last a
small sigh of contentment.
"I wonder who built
this," she said, as she sat back on her heels.
Sander brought out their
water bottle, dumped its contents into the sterile sand before he rinsed it, preparatory
to refilling. A sweet water spring in the midst of the ocean—or what had been
the ocean! But long before that, it had been on land. The sense of eons of
vanished ages hung heavy about this curbed pool. Men reckoned seasons now from
the Dark Time. And the Rememberers had counted some three hundred years from
the end of one world and the beginning of this one.
But how long before that
had this sea land been uncovered for the first time so that men—or at least
intelligent beings—raised these stone piles that even long ages had not
completely worn away, titanic building that raging seas had not entirely
erased? He felt dazed when he tried to think of years that must certainly be
counted, not by generations of men, but rather by the slow passage of thousands
and thousands of seasons.
There was nothing here
of that aura of despair and loss that he had felt in the undersea ship. Not
even a tenuous kinship linked him with these ancient-upon-ancient builders.
Perhaps they had not even been human as he and his kind now reckoned humanity.
He wished that Kabor, the senior Rememberer of the Mob, could witness this,
though there would be no hint of memory that the sight could awaken within his
well-trained mind.
They drank deeply again,
leaving the forgotten pool. Twice they had had the good fortune to find water
in the desert. Sander could not be sure such luck would hold for a third time.
It seemed to him that they had best now angle back west. There was no game to
be hunted here. Hunger could strike them as swiftly and in as deadly a fashion
as lack of water. The sooner they reached true land, the better, whether they
were able to locate Fanyi's goal or not.
The smith half expected
her to protest when he suggested an abrupt swing west. But she did not, though
she held her pendant for a long moment or two, focusing the light on its
surface, as if by that she could check the path they must go.
Here they could not make
good time. The ground was very rough, for the ridges left by old reefs sent
them on long or short detours. Their clothing and their bodies, their faces,
even their hair, were thick with sandy dust, and the coats of the three animals
seemed matted with it. As the night wore on, Sander kept looking ahead for some
shelter in which to wait out the day.
After the moon rose,
they gained a measure of light. Fanyi snapped off her Before Torch. It was
perhaps an hour or so before dawn when Sander felt a sudden drop in
temperature. He had been sweating so that the chill of this new breeze made him
shiver. They halted for Fanyi to rearrange her belongings and put on her
overcloak. Now they could see their breath issuing forth in white puffs.
The change had come so
quickly Sander wondered if some kind of a storm was on its way. Although no
clouds yet masked the stars above, nevertheless he was anxious for them to find
some secure shelter.
Ahead a dark mass
projected well above the surface they toiled across. He strained to see that
rise better, wondering if they were approaching a one-time island that now
stood like a mountain above the denuded plain.
Fanyi flashed her light,
holding her pendant directly in its beam.
"That way!"
Her voice rang out as she shifted the light to point ahead, toward the dark
plateau. She seemed so sure that Sander, for the moment, was willing to follow
her lead without question.
By dawn they arrived at
the foot of a cliff. Falls of dressed stone, stained by rusty streaks, made
Sander sure that above them now lay the remains of a Before city. The scattered
and shattered debris about them gave warning that devastation had hit hard
here. There could be little left of any value above—even if they could make the
climb.
If this city had once
held the storehouse Fanyi sought, then her quest must certainly be doomed to
failure. Sander, too, felt a pinch of disappointment, even though, he told
himself, he had never truly believed in her rumored treasure house of
knowledge.
When he glanced at the
girl, he saw no sign of any chagrin in her expression. Rather she eyed the
tumble of stone as if she saw in it possibilities for ascent to what lay above.
And her manner was brisk as if she were sure she was on the right trail and
what she sought was near.
"This is the
place?" he asked.
Fanyi had her pendant in
her hand again. Slowly she pivoted, until she no longer faced the cliff, but
rather once more the western lands.
"Not here,"
she said with quiet confidence, "but there." She waved to the more
distant shadow of the land.
Sander believed that the
city above had been built on a cape projecting out into the vanished sea, or
even an island. To reach the true shore of the Before Days one would have to
travel still farther west.
They needed food and
water. That either could be found in the tangle of shattered ruins above, the
smith doubted. He thought that perhaps their best plan was to keep to the sea
bottom, heading directly for the land.
However, he had not
foreseen the coming of the storm, which that earlier cold wind had heralded.
Clouds arose out of nowhere in only a few breaths of time, while the wind
became a lash of freezing cold, under which they cringed.
The animals made their
decision for them. Like two streaks of looping fur the fishers were already
swarming up the fall that formed a vast and uneven stairway to the ruins above.
Rhin was not far behind. There was that in the quick flight of all three that
Sander found alarming enough to goad him to follow. Rhin's senses were far more
acute than his own. In the past he had been saved by the koyot's superior gifts
of scent and hearing. If Rhin chose that path, there was an adequate reason.
Both the fishers and the
koyot were surefooted on that broken trail. Sander and Fanyi, shivering under
each blast of wind, had to go more slowly. Too many of the blocks rocked under
their weight, some crashing down under the pull of the wind. They flattened
themselves to each stable surface they reached, forcing themselves to grope
farther up when they caught their breaths again.
At last they crawled
over a dangerous overhang of perilously piled materials to reach a wilderness
of mounds from which protruded rusty shells of metal, likely to crumble at a
touch.
But there was also a
show of vegetation, vines withering now with the touch of frost, saw-edged
grass in ragged patches, even a wind-sculpted tree or two.
Sander's first thought
was that they must keep well away from any pile of rubble that seemed likely to
crash. He kept glancing overhead as he felt his way along, cautious lest he
step on something that would shift disastrously under his weight. Fanyi moved
behind him, choosing in turn each step he had pioneered.
At least the force of
the wind was blunted here by these mounds. And, although the cold was intense,
they were less tormented by freezing blasts.
It began to rain. And the
rain was as cold as the wind, the force of it penetrating their garments,
plastering their hair to their skulls, seeming to encase their shivering flesh
with a coating of glass-thin ice. Sander had known storms on the plains, but
nothing such as this.
The wind roared and
howled over their heads in a queer wailing, perhaps because it whirled through
openings in the mounds. Now and then they could hear crashes as if the gale
brought down new rock falls. Then, when there came a lull, Sander heard the bark
of Rhin.
"This way—" He
turned to the girl. But the words he mouthed were lost in the rise of the
wind's fury. He reached out to catch her hand.
They rounded a mound, to
see before them a line of sizeable trees. The storm whipped their branches,
ruthlessly tearing off leaves in whirling clouds that were quickly borne to
earth by the weight of the rain.
Sander staggered
forward, away from the treacherous mounds into the fringe of the trees. The
branches absorbed some of the force of the rain but not all of it. Rhin paced
impatiently back and forth, his head swinging as he looked from Sander to the
way ahead, patiently urging the human to hurry. Of the fishers there was no
sign.
They felt underfoot the
relative smoothness of one of the paved ways, though the trees and bushes had
encroached thickly upon it. Here there were no looming piles of blocks to
threaten them as they hurried after the koyot. In a few moments they came out
into a clearing where there was a shelter made of wood at one side. Its staked
walls met a thatch of thickly interwoven branches. A single door stood open,
and there was no sign of any inhabitant, even though this building was plainly
of their own time.
Sander plucked thrower
and bolt from his belt and waved Fanyi behind him, as he cautiously slipped
toward the open door.
When Kai poked a nose
from the doorway that he knew his fears were needless. In a last dash, the
koyot, Sander, and Fanyi reached the opening and scrambled within, Sander
jerking the door to in their wake.
It must have been open
for some time because there was a drift of soil he had to loosen before he
could close it firmly against the fury of the storm. And since there were only
slits, high-set under the roof, to give any light, he found it difficult at
first to view their surroundings.
This was not the rude or
temporary hut he had guessed it to be at first sight, but a large and sturdy
building. The floor had been cleared down to a reasonably smooth surface of
stone, which might once have been a part of a road. Against the far wall was a
wide fireplace constructed of firm blocks, its gaping maw smoke- and
fire-stained but now empty. There was a box to one side in which he could
distinguish some lengths of wood standing end up.
Fanyi had pulled out her
light and shone its circle of brilliance along the log walls. Shelves hung
there. For the most part they were bare, save for a small box or two. Under the
shelves were the frames of what could only be sleeping bunks. These were still
filled with masses of leaves and bits of brush, all much broken and matted
together.
Sander caught the faint
scent of old fires and, he thought, even of food. But there was also an
emptiness here which, he believed, meant that it had been a long time since the
place was inhabited.
"This is a clan
house," Fanyi said. "See—" She held her light beam high on one
wall showing a big metal hook set into the log. "There they hung divider
curtains. But this was a small clan."
"Your people?"
He had assumed that Padford had been the only settlement of those folk.
Fanyi shook her head.
"No. But Traders perhaps. They live in clans also. They do not take their
women or children with them on the trail, but sometimes they have talked of
their homes. And this city would be a fine place for their metal searches. They
may have cleared this portion of it and moved on—or else heard of richer
hunting grounds elsewhere. I think this has been empty for more than one
season."
The building was stout
enough, Sander conceded. Now that a bar had been dropped into the waiting
hooks, sealing the door, he was far less aware of the storm's force. He headed
to the hearth, choosing wood from the box. The lengths were well seasoned, and
he had no difficulty in striking a spark from his firekit, so that the warmth
of flames soothed them as well as gave light to their new quarters. The fishers
lay by the fire, licking moisture from their fur. Even Rhin seemed not too
large for the long room.
Shelter, warmth—but they
still needed food. Fanyi delved into the few containers on the wall shelves.
She returned with two with tight sliding covers. These contained a small
measure of what looked like the same kind of meal Sander had found in Padford
and some flakes of a dried substance.
"They cannot have
gone too long ago after all," Fanyi observed, "for this meal is not
musty or moldy. And the other is dried meat."
Straightway, she shed
her square cloak, leaving it to steam dry before the fire. That done, she mixed
cakes of the meal and meat flakes, having passed to the fishers and Rhin the
major portion of the latter.
Sander prowled about the
long room, taking note of its construction. Much work had gone into its
building. He could not believe that this was only a temporary structure. Rather
it must have been meant to stand. Perhaps it was intended for seasonal
occupation.
In the far corner he
came upon a circular piece of metal, pitted and worn, but still solid, set in
the stone of the floor. There was a bar crossing its top, and he thought that
with pressure applied through that the lid could be raised. Perhaps there was a
store room below, with more supplies than the meager amount Fanyi had found.
He went back to the
woodbox, chose a length and returned to lever up that strange door. It took
some effort, but at last he could slide the round metal to one side. Crouching
low he stared down into thick darkness. There was, he saw as the fireplace
flames flickered a little in this direction, the beginning of a ladder of
metal. So there was indeed a way into the depths.
Lying belly down, he ran
his hands down the ladder as far as he could reach. The steps that formed it
had been patched with a crude stripping of other bits of metal. But the smell
that arose to him did not, he believed, come from any storage place. It was
damp and unpleasant, so much so that he jerked back his head and coughed. The
larger fisher had come to the opposite side of the hole, thrusting its head
forward to sniff. Now Kai hissed, expressing his own dislike of the unknown.
Sander wriggled the cover back into place. He had no desire to go exploring
down there in the dark.
Sander took the further
precaution of wedging a length of wood through the lifting handle so that it
protruded against the hard floor on either side, hoping that this might provide
a lock. He had no idea what might threaten from below, but his adventures in
the forest and with the amphibians had been warning enough to take care in any
strange circumstances.
Now and again the house
shook from a gust of the wind. They had drawn as close as they could to the
fire, shedding their soaked clothing by degrees to dry it piece by piece.
The wood box had been
well filled, but Sander, fearful that the supply might not last through the
storm, had been eyeing the shelves along the wall. He believed they could be
battered free and used to feed the flames. For now it was enough to feel the
heat and be sure they had found a shelter, not haunted and dangerous as the
ruins might have been, one made by those of their own species.
The roar of thunder was
often followed by a distant crash. Sander believed that the gale took new
tribute from the rubble mounds. And the small windows high in the eaves gave
frame to brilliant flashes of lightning. The fishers and Rhin seemed uneasy, no
longer settling in the fire warmth as they had at first.
Sander watched them
narrowly. He could not be sure that it was only the wildness of the display
outside that affected the animals. Instead, his imagination suggested menaces
creeping toward their shelter. Twice he got up, first to inspect the bar across
the door, then that other he hoped would seal off the hole in the floor. Both
seemed tight enough.
Once they had eaten,
Fanyi seated herself near the hearth, her cloak belted about her while she
spread to dry her scanter undergarment. Her mat of hair straggled in wild
tufts, which she made no attempt to put into order. Instead she sat with her
eyes closed, her hands once more clasped over her pendant. There was about her
an aura of withdrawal. She might have been asleep, even though she sat straight-backed
and rigid. If she was not sleeping, she must be using another method to block
out the present, retiring fully into her own thoughts. That this might be part
of her Shaman's training Sander accepted.
In time the fishers
quietly came to crouch, one on either side of her, their heads resting on their
paws. But they were not asleep, for whenever Sander made the slightest move, he
could see their bright eyes regarding him.
He was restless, feeling
shut out and cut adrift by Fanyi's absorption. Rhin at last lay down between
the fire and the door. But Sander could see that the koyot's ears were ever
aprick, as if he still listened.
The thunder rolls were
dying and the lightning no longer flashed in the high windows. However, the
drum of rain on the roof over their heads did not grow lighter. After their
trek by night, Sander longed to sleep and he found now that he nodded, started
awake, only to nod again. He had no desire to climb into one of the bunks, his
wariness keeping him from relaxing entirely. And his vigilance was proven
necessary when Fanyi gave a start, her eyes snapping open, her head up as if
she listened.
Yet none of the three
animals displayed similar unease.
"What is it?"
Sander demanded.
He saw the tip of her
tongue sweep across her lips.
"There is
thought—seeking thought—" she answered, but she spoke almost absently, and
as if she did not want to lessen her concentration.
Her words meant nothing
to him. Thought? What was seeking thought?
"There is some
one—some one who is Shaman trained," she continued. "But this—"
Her hands moved away from her pendant. She held them up and out, lightly
cupped, as if to catch in her palms some elusive stream of invisible water,
"This is so strong! And it is not wholly pure thought—there is something
else—"
"I do not
understand what you are saying," Sander replied brusquely, trying to break
through the air of otherness that clung to her. "I do not know the ways of
Shamans. Do you mean that someone is coming?"
Again he glanced at the
animals. But they were quiet, even though they watched. He could not believe
that Rhin would allow any stranger to approach without giving full warning.
Fanyi's expression was
one of excitement, not fear. It was as if she were a smith and before her lay
some problem of smelting for which she now clearly saw the answer. He, himself,
well knew the feeling of exultation such rare moments could bring.
"It—there is no
enemy." She appeared to be choosing words. "There is no awareness of
us—that I could read at once. I feel the power of a sending, but it is not
entirely like my power, and I cannot tell the nature of the matter with which
it is concerned. Only there is one who sends. Ah—now it is gone!" She
sounded disappointed. "There is no more reach—"
That she believed
passionately in what she spoke of, Sander knew. But he could not accept those
facts that seemed so much a part of her beliefs. A Rememberer, now, spent long
years of "remembering"—of listening over and over again to chants of
past events, which it was necessary the Mob be able to draw upon for help in
untangling some new problem. The lineage of all the kin was so remembered that
there not be too close uniting of birth relationships, weakening the people as
a whole. The care of the herd, the very contours of the lands over which they
had roamed in the seasons upon seasons since the Dark Time, all that lay in the
mind of a Rememberer, to be summoned at will. But this seeking thought—? How
could one seek save physically by eye, voice, body?
"The Traders have
these seekers?" he asked now. That breed of organized wanderers, who had
sought out the Mob, seemed little different from his own people. They were jealous
of their secrets, yes. But those were secrets of trails and of the places where
they found their basic stocks, the metal that was so necessary for making tools
and weapons. They told wild tales of the lands they crossed to bring that
metal, yet most of the Mob had been agreed that there was method in those
stories—meant to warn off any curiosity on the part of outsiders. Traders had
been known to kill lest some favorite supply place be tapped by those not of
their own particular clan. But they said nothing of this mind-seek.
"I have never heard
that such was so," Fanyi replied promptly. "The Traders who came to
Padford"—she shook her head again—"they were no more nor less than
any of the villagers. Yet we have already seen strange peoples who are not of
our blood. Think you of the forest savages or of those who swarm in the river.
This world is very full of wonders, and he who travels learns."
"The Traders tell
wild enough tales, but those are meant to afright men and keep their own
secrets safe."
"Or so we have
always thought," she returned. "But perhaps there is a small seed of
truth at the center core of such."
Sander would have
laughed, but then he reconsidered. It was true that he had been shaken out of
his complacency about the superiority of his own species by their two brushes
with forest and river dwellers. Though the Mob had never met any except
herdsmen like themselves or the far-ranging Traders, could they say that those
were the only people left in the world? The fishermen of Padford differed
in coloring and life ways from his own kin. And he had heard of the Sea Sharks
who made up the slaving bands from the south, though no man had ever understood
why they collected the helpless to take into captivity. Those, too, were men—of
a kind.
Now he began to recall
some of the Trader stories. Suppose she was right? Suppose there were
armored beasts of giant size roving elsewhere, slaying any man they met; flying
things that were neither man nor bird but mingled something of each in an
uncanny and horrifying way, their talons raised against normal men? It was
easier to believe that the earth still bubbled and boiled in places, that if
any ventured too far into such tormented country they died from the poisons
filling the air or sank by inches into a steaming mud from which they could not
fight free.
"You see"—she
smiled now—"I have led you to rethink what you have heard. Therefore,
perhaps it is also reasonable to believe that elsewhere there are Shamans to
whom I am as but a small child, still unlearned in even the simplest of the
healing ways. What"—she flung her hands wide as if to garner in against
her breast some thing that seemed precious to her—"what marvels may exist
in this world, open to our finding if we only have the courage to seek for
them! If someone has learned to mind-seek—then I shall also do this! Am I not
of the kin-blood to whom such knowledge is as meat and drink? Young and untried
I may seem to such ones, yet I can say in truth—we share some gifts of mind,
therefore let me learn of you."
Sander watched her
excitement, troubled. Yes, he could understand her thirst for learning, was it
not also his? But what he wanted was a learning that brought concrete results,
that did not deal with such unreasonable matters as thoughts that were loosed,
as it were, to roam. Rather he wanted to know more about what he could make
with his two hands when their skill was well harnessed by his mind. It gave him
an uneasy feeling to think of using thought in some other way, not to accompany
physical action, but in place of that—if he had guessed aright what she hoped
to gain.
"I
believed"—he strove now to return her to the obvious—"that what you
sought was a weapon of vengeance for your people."
"And do you not
know," Fanyi flashed, "that thought itself can be as able a weapon,
if it is skillfully used, as those forged darts of yours? Yes, I have a debt to
the dead; do not believe that I have ever forgotten that." There was a
flush rising beneath her dark brown skin. "Now—" She rose to her feet.
"I say we should sleep. My fur people, your Rhin, they shall serve as our
watch."
"The fire—"
Away from the hearth it
was cold.
Fanyi laughed. "Do
not worry. Kai knows much." She laid her hand on the head of the larger
fisher. "He shall watch the fire, and well. This he has done for me
before."
She chose a bunk along
the nearer wall, taking her now dried and warmed under-robe to wrap around her.
Sander watched her settle in before he followed her example. The last thing he
remembered seeing was the larger fisher lifting a piece of kindling from the
box, catching the length between his powerful jaws and pushing it into the fire
with the dexterity of one who indeed had performed that same act many times in
the past.
So Sander settled
himself to sleep. And he was deep in a dream wherein he trudged through a long
dark tunnel, drawn ever by the sharp tap-tap of a hammer on metal, seeking a
smith who had all secrets and from whom he must learn.
A cold touch on his
cheek brought him out of that corridor before he ever caught sight of the
industrious smith. Rhin loomed over him, and it was the koyot's nose that had
touched his face. The animal lowered his muzzle for a second such prod as
Sander came fully awake and sat up.
The sound of the wind,
the heavy pelt of the rain, was gone. It was so still that he could hear the
sound of his own breath, a faint crackling of the fire. But the fishers no
longer lay by it. They were ranged on either side of the barred door, facing
it. And when Rhin saw that Sander was fully awake, he looked in the same
direction.
Sander sat up and
reached for his boots. They had dried after a fashion, but he found it hard to
force his feet into them. While he struggled to do that, he listened.
He could pick up
nothing, but he relied fully on the warning of the animals and he did not doubt
that there was someone or something near enough to arouse their instincts of
alarm. The Traders returning to their house?
That need not be a real
matter for fear. The laws of hospitality, which were scrupulously kept save among
the Sea Sharks, would excuse their intrusion here in such a storm, jealous
though the Traders were. Sander hoped furiously that this was the case.
Still, he caught up his
dart thrower and loosened his long knife in its sheath, as he padded, as softly
as he could, across the room to lay his ear tight to the barred door.
That Sander heard
nothing did not mean that the alarm was false. Now he reslung his weapons in
his belt and turned to the wall on which hung the shelves. They might be used
as a ladder, allowing him to peer out one of the high windows.
Sander swiftly cleared
the remaining containers from the shelves he selected and tested the anchorage
of the boards by swinging his full weight upon them. Though the wood creaked
protestingly, they held firm. He scrambled up, to crouch perilously on the narrow
top plank. Struggling to retain his balance, he reached farther overhead and
caught at either side of the narrow window opening.
These had been covered,
sealed against the air, by pieces of glass, a refinement that surprised him.
Had glass, the most fragile of inheritances from the Before Time, actually
existed in this rubble in pieces large enough to be salvaged?
Sander brought his face
as close as he could to that surface. As he tried to peer outside he discovered
that the glass was not perfectly clear, for it carried bubbles and distortions
within it. Yet those imperfections did not prevent a good sight of the clearing
immediately before the house.
The darkness of the
storm was past. By the angle of the pale sunlight that struck full against the
door, he judged it was late afternoon. But it was not time that interested
him—rather what might be prowling out there.
A wide expanse lay clear
immediately before the door. The brush, which formed the first rank of the
wood's growth, stood some distance away. On the ground was a light scuff of
snow and that was not unmarked!
The snow must have
fallen near the end of the storm. Already it began to melt under the direct
rays of the sun, especially around the edges of numerous tracks. Through the
bubbled glass Sander could not make out any clearly defined print, but they
were larger than those made by any animal he knew.
Shapeless as they
seemed, there was something about their general proportions—Sander would not
allow himself to speculate. Nor could he even be certain that more than one
creature had left its signature there. A single unknown thing might have
scented them, plodded back and forth for a space.
Sander shifted on his
narrow perch. He could see where those tracks had emerged from the wood, but no
sign they had returned thither. Was the creature prowling around the back of
the house now?
At that moment the
silence inside and out was broken by a high, wailing cry, startling Sander so
he almost tumbled from his spy post. He heard from below the answering growl of
Rhin, the hissing of both fishers, then a soft call from Fanyi:
"What was
that?"
"I do not
know." Sander twisted his body around, striving to see further both right
and left. "There is something prowling outside. But I have not yet sighted
it."
His last word had hardly
left his lips before a bulk shuffled into the sun, coming from the left as it
had just completed another circuit of the house.
The thing halted before
the door, its out-thrust head nearly on a level with the window from which he
viewed it. What was it? Animal—? Yet it walked upright. And now that Sander
studied it more closely, he thought that its covering of matted and
filthy-looking skin was not part of its own hide, but rather clothing of a
sort.
Clothing? This was a man?
Sander swallowed. The
thing was as huge as the forest female had been. Its head, hunched almost
against its shoulders suggesting that its neck must be very short indeed, had
an upstanding crest of stiffened hair, the ends of which flopped over to half
conceal small eyes. Now it impatiently raised a vast clawed hand, or paw, to
push the hair away.
They had felt no kinship
with the forest people, and this was an even greater travesty of the human
shape. The legs were short and thick, supporting a massive trunk. In contrast,
the arms were very long, the fingertips scraping the ground when the creature
allowed them to dangle earthward.
Its jaw was more a
muzzle than the lower part of a true face, and a straggle of beard waggled from
the point of it. Altogether the thing was a nightmare such as a child awaken
from screaming for comfort.
Now it shuffled forward,
planting one wide fist against the barred door, plainly exerting pressure.
Sander heard the grind of the wood against the bar. Whether that would hold—?
He dropped hastily from
his perch. The creature outside now aimed blows against the door, and the bar
might or might not continue to hold, while the snarling of the koyot and the
fishers grew into a wild crescendo. It was plain that they had reason to fear
the attacker.
"It is—"
Sander gave the girl a quick explanation of what he had seen. "Have you
heard of such before?"
"Yes, from a
Trader," she returned promptly. "He said that these haunt the lands
of the north and are eaters of men. You see, smith, here is one of their tales
indeed proven true."
The crashing against the
door was steady. The bar might hold, but would the pins that supported it prove
as stout? For them to be caught within—As far as he had seen, the thing carried
no weapons, but with those mighty hands what more would it need?
No wonder the builders
of this place had set it above that floor bolt-hole. Sander crossed quickly to
that, jerking the wooden latch he had inserted with such care. As he levered up
the round top, the whole house began to tremble under the assault from without.
"Get a torch!"
he ordered Fanyi. She had warned him of the limited life her own light might
have, and he had no wish to be caught in some dark run below.
The girl ran to the
fire, snatched up a long piece of wood, and thrust one end into the flames.
Silken fur swept past Sander's arm. The fishers were already flowing into the
opening. Rhin—could Rhin make it? Stripped of his burdens, Sander hoped so. The
koyot trotted to the smith's side, dropped his head to sniff into the opening.
Then he turned his rump
to the hole, cautiously backed in. As the outer door cracked down its middle,
Rhin disappeared as if he had fallen. A moment later he yelped reassuringly
from below. Sander tossed down the bags Fanyi handed to him, held the torch
while the girl swung onto that patched ladder.
After she was well down,
Sander wriggled the cover back halfway over the hold, leaving but a narrow
space to squeeze through. He lowered the torch to her reaching hand, lying
belly-flat to accomplish that exchange, then sought the ladder himself.
Partway down, he tugged
at the metal cover, making a last great effort at the sound of wood breaking
aloft. In the flame of the torch he could see now a metal bar fastened to the
underside, a crude piece of work that must have been added long after the
Before Days. With a last frantic lunge he sent that across, locking the lid
above his head into place.
They had descended to a
large round tunnel, he discovered. There was no sign of the fishers, but Rhin
waited. The koyot whined softly, plainly liking none of this place, now and
then noisily sniffing the ill-smelling air.
If they were to advance
from here, the koyot must drop to his haunches and crawl. Fanyi had stuck the
torch upright in a ring set roughly into the wall. Now she was busy knotting
their gear into back packs, since it was plain Rhin could not transport it
along these confined ways. Sander hoped desperately that the tunnel grew no
smaller or the koyot could not force a way through it.
"Look!" Fanyi
pointed with her chin as her hands flew to tighten knots.
The piece of wood she
had brought from the house was nearly consumed. But, leaning against the wall
under the hoop that held it, were a number of better-constructed torches, their
heads round balls of fiber soaked in what Sander's nose told him must be fish
oil.
It would seem by these
preparations that the builders of the house had foreseen emergencies when it
would be necessary for them to take to these underground ways. Was the presence
of the beast now above the reason why they had left their well-wrought shelter?
Sander lighted one of
the torches and divided the rest, giving half to the girl. Then, bending his
head a little, he started down the tunnel, hearing the complaining whines of
Rhin as the koyot edged along with Fanyi behind him.
There was no way of
telling how long that stretch of tunnel was nor even in what direction it ran.
Part of it had collapsed, been redug, and shored up. Finally they came to a
hole hacked in one side and struggled through it into a much larger way, one in
which Rhin could stand upright. The floor of this was banded by two long rails
of metal that came out of the dark on one side and vanished into it again on
the other. The fugitives paused, Sander unsure whether to turn right or left.
"Aeeeeheee!"
Fanyi gave her summoning call to the fishers, and she was straightway answered
from their left.
"That way." It
was plain she had full confidence in her companions. "They have ranged on
and now believe they are heading out—"
The smith could only
hope her confidence was well placed. Torch in hand and held at the best angle
to show them the uneven footing, he turned left.
There seemed to be no
end to this way under the Before City. Though Sander was almost sure that the
thing that had besieged the house could never squeeze its bulk through the
opening in the floor, even if it could tear loose the lock on the lid, he kept listening
intently for any hint they were being pursued.
His torch picked out
trickles of slimy moisture down the walls of the larger tunnel. Yet it seemed
quite intact otherwise, with no fall of roof or sides to threaten them. Then
the light picked up a mass that nearly choked it.
As Sander drew nearer,
he saw that this was not composed of any slippage of the wall, rather it was
rusting metal that filled the opening top to bottom, leaving only narrow
passages on either side. Those the fishers had undoubtedly been able to venture
through. And he and Fanyi could undoubtedly do so also, but he doubted if Rhin
could force a way.
Handing the torch to the
girl, Sander shrugged out of his pack and brought from that his tool bag. He
chose the heaviest of his hammers and went to face the rusty mass.
Under the first of his
blows the metal crumpled, some of it merely crumbs of rust. Whether it could be
treated so, to open a passage, he could not be sure, but he would try. In spite
of the chill damp his exertions brought the sweat running so heavily that he
had to stop and strip off his shirt as well as his hide jacket. And his back
and arms, having foregone the discipline of daily work for too long, ached.
Still, he swung and
smashed with a rhythm that speedily returned since he was so used to it. Foot
by foot, he cleared a wider passage to the left. Luckily not too much of the
obstruction needed to be beaten away. Rhin pushed carefully along behind Fanyi,
who held the torch high. Midway through, that brand was exhausted, so she lit a
second from the supply she carried.
The metal was very
brittle. Sander guessed that constant damp had fed the consuming rust. He
studied the wreckage when he paused for breath, trying to guess what it had
been. It had, he decided, probably transported men or supplies beneath the
surface of the city.
They coughed as the dust
from his hammering arose, until Fanyi tore strips from her clothing and tied
them over their mouths and around Rhin's muzzle, wetting them from the water
supply in their bottle.
The crashing blows of
the hammer made Sander's head ring. If the monster had followed them down, it
would be in no confusion over which direction it must take to follow them.
There was a final
subsidence of a last metal plate and once more they faced the open way. Sander
was hungry as well as dry-mouthed with thirst. But any remedy for that state
still lay before them. All they could do was to struggle along as quickly as
they could.
Not far ahead was a
branching of the way. Once more Fanyi sounded her call to the fishers. But this
time there came no answer. And though they pushed the torch close to the
surface of the ground, they could detect no tracks. Sander turned to Rhin. For
the first time the koyot moved out with more assurance than he had shown since
they had taken to this underground way.
He lowered his head to
sniff along the edge of those rusted shells of rails and to search the ground
between them. Then he gave a sharp yelp of command and trotted along the inner
of the two ways. Luckily they came to no more of those plugs of metal. But the
passage sloped downward, and there were spreading patches of wet upon the
walls, signs also that at one time water had risen to a point within a
hand's-breadth of the roof.
Sander watched those
walls. It could well be that they had been loosened with the passing of the
years, that even the small disturbance made by the passing of their own party
could bring about a fall, entrapping or killing them all. Under his urging,
they made the swiftest passage that they could. Yet that seemed to him to be
agonizingly slow, and he listened tensely, not now for the monster that had
attacked the house, but rather for any sound of shifting over their heads.
Fanyi called out and
pointed ahead. There was a pile of the same rubble as he had seen in the mounds
above. And this choked the whole of the way. But over it was a jagged hole in
the roof, under which the debris made an unsteady platform.
A head hung in the open,
eyes staring down at them. It was plain that the fishers had not hesitated to
try that escape route, as dubious as it looked. Kai's head disappeared as Rhin
moved forward.
With caution, the koyot
placed his forepaws, one after the other, part way up the mound of crumbling
stuff, which sent a trickle of gravel and small stones thudding down as he so
moved. He stood still, nosing ahead at the next portion of the rise, as if
scent could assure him whether or not it would bear his weight.
Sander and Fanyi edged
away as Rhin made a slow climb. The koyot panted as he went, his tongue lolling
out of his half-open jaws, drool dripping from its tip. He planted each paw
with delicate precision.
Up again, and another
cascade of finer rubble. Only one more length and his head would be out of that
hole. Sander crept to the edge of the mound, held the torch as high as he could
to give Rhin all possible help.
Once more gravel rolled,
bringing with it that same coarse sand that had slipped under their feet when
they crossed the sea-desert. Now Rhin's head and shoulders were out into the
opening. His muscles bunched as he lunged up, scrabbling furiously on the edge
of the opening with his forepaws.
Sander jumped back to
escape the slide the koyot's efforts caused. Now Rhin showed his head once more
in the hole, looking downward and uttering a series of barks as if urging the
humans to duplicate his feat as soon as possible.
The smith lit a second
torch and then a third. These he planted butt down in the pile so they threw
full light over that treacherous shifting surface. He shed his pack once more
and pulled forth his coil of braided hide rope before he spoke to Fanyi.
"I am going up.
When I make it, lash our packs, then stand well clear until I pull those up.
After that I will drop the rope. Make it fast to your waist, and take all the
time you need for the climb."
With the rope's end tied
about his middle, he faced the slope. That last slide of gravel and small
stones had luckily uncovered the edges of a few larger rocks that promised more
stable footing. He tested the lowest of them as best he could and then
cautiously scrambled up on it.
The space was narrow, hardly
wide enough to afford room for his toes as he felt above, his hands slipping
through loose material twice, before, under the moving stuff, he could locate a
firm block. Wriggling carefully along, he managed to reach the second perch.
Rhin gazed down, his yelps increased in volume. It was plain he was offering
his full encouragement.
This last bit was even
more tricky. Rhin's emergence had broken the edge. In order to reach the
crumbling remains, Sander must squirm forward over what looked in the limited
light to be a very uncertain bit of surface. He remained where he was for a
long moment, trying to breathe evenly, to steady his nerves before he moved
out. Though he had never admitted this weakness, Sander had never taken
joyfully to any scramble up a height, even when the surface he sought to climb
was more hospitable. He did know enough not to look back, to concentrate only
on what lay immediately ahead. He could not remain forever where he now was;
there was nothing left to do but trust to fortune and his own strength and make
this last attempt.
Now he dug both hands
into the mass, seeking some better support. His nails tore, and he felt sharp
pain in his fingers, ground between moving stones. But at last, he tightened
his hold on something that did not shift as he slowly exerted more and more
weight.
Sander pulled himself up
as the whole surface under him appeared to crack. Somehow he got a firm brace
under one knee, used that to push out farther ahead. He was still inches away
from the edge, and he feared more than ever to trust any hold.
Rhin's head had swung.
Without warning the koyot snapped, his jaws closing on the hide jacket that
strained tightly over Sander's shoulders. The fangs in those jaws grazed skin
as well as covering, and Sander gave a startled yell.
Rhin's unexpected move
brought him up, and he surged, much as the koyot had before him, out, skidding
free across the self-encrusted ground under the full light of a large and
glowing moon.
After that it was easy
enough to jerk up their gear, find a convenient small rock to weight the rope,
and drop it once more to Fanyi. With a line lashed about her, and Sander's
strength added to hers, her ascent was far easier and speedier than his
struggle had been.
Once both were aloft,
they had a chance to look about them. To the west rose the lines of a sloping
beach. To the east was the plateau that once must have been an island, holding
the near vanished city. The tunnel they had followed plainly had once run under
the arm of the sea to connect the island with the main continent.
But where they were was
certainly too open. That monster had perhaps not followed them into the lower
ways. But if it or perhaps its fellows were denned in the city, one such could
sight their small party here in the open and be on their trail again.
Sander found his body
trembling as he stopped for his pack. His exertions in the tunnel, his hunger,
and the tension of that last climb were taking their toll. To reach the
one-time shore—to somehow find a shelter there—that he must force his body to
do.
At least they could give
the packs to Rhin here in the open. Sander fumbled with the rope, packing and
lashing the gear. They had the rest of the torches still, but it was better not
to light them and so mark themselves to any hostile eyes. They must make the
moonlight do.
Stumbling often, Sander
walked beside Rhin, Fanyi on the other side of the koyot. The fishers had again
vanished. The smith supposed they had headed toward the beach.
He wavered as he walked,
trying to control the shaking of his hands, ashamed to display his fatigue to
Fanyi.
Luckily the terrain
sloped upward gradually. There was no cliff to climb. Once up on the shore,
they were ankle-deep in beach sand, faced by a wilderness of rocks, with grass
growing among them. Sander lifted his head enough to look for the wood that had
masked this same shore to the south where they had left it what seemed a very
long time ago.
However, there was no
dark line of trees. This land was far more open, though here and there were the
same mounds of rubble that had marked the island. It was plain that this city
had been a place of great extent, its buildings spreading also to the mainland.
"Let us find some
shelter quickly." Fanyi's voice held a note of strain. "I cannot say
how far I can now go or how long I can keep my feet."
He was grateful to her
at that moment, he did not know how much longer he could keep going either. Yet
some inner pride kept him from making the same confession.
In the end they both
hooked a hand in the ropes that held Rhin's burden, so that the koyot was more
than half supporting them as they reeled into a fairly open space, a hollow
where some bushes had rooted.
Snow had fallen here and
still lay in small patches, reflecting the moonlight. But the punishing wind
had died, and the night was very still. Sander shivered. His fingers were stiff
and numb as he fumbled with the knots that fastened their gear, letting it thud
to earth. Out from behind one of the hillocks that marked the ruins flashed the
fishers. Kai carried a limp body in his mouth, dropping his burden at Fanyi's
feet. He had brought in a very large hare.
Rhin, now bare of back,
sniffed once at the game, made a low sound in his throat, and trotted off
purposefully, intent, Sander knew, on providing his own food. The smith studied
this hollow they had chanced upon. At least two of the rubble hills stood
between them and the arm of the sea-desert. They could not spend the night
without warmth and food.
He knelt to hack at a
wiry bush. The dry and sapless growth broke easily under his touch. Moments
later he had a small fire ablaze and was able to turn his full attention to
skinning and gutting the hare.
For two days they kept
to the campsite. There was no threat here of any of the dangers they had met
elsewhere, no sign that the monstrosity from the old island had its kin here.
Sander went hunting, using his sling to knock over hares and a stunted-looking
kind of deer that was smaller than even Kayi. These animals were so bold that
Sander believed they had never been hunted—a further proof this land was safe
for the wayfarers.
The days grew colder,
their nights were spent between fitful dozing and care of their fire. Snow fell
again, not heavily, but enough to cover the ground. Sander disliked the fact
that their tracks to and away from their camp were so well marked across that
white expanse. He tried every dodge known to disguise these, only to admit that
he was unsuccessful.
There was no way of
adequately curing the hare skins. But they scraped them as clean as they could,
then lashed the pelts together in a bundle. Sander already knew that their
clothing was not heavy enough for this climate, so they might soon be reduced
to using those hides, smelly and unworked as the pelts were, for additional
warmth.
Fanyi sat for long
spaces of time, the pendant clasped tight in her hands, so entranced that she
was little aware of what was going on about her. Twice she reported that she
had again encountered what she persisted in calling the "seeking
mind." Neither time, she was sure, had that thought carried awareness of
her. Nor was there, to her infinite disappointment, any way of her tracing it
to the source. Which was just as well as far as Sander was concerned. He
mistrusted her accounts of what he still could not accept as possible.
During his hunting he
also prospected for metal. But if anything useful had remained here after the
Dark Time, it must have been mined long ago by Traders. He did come upon holes
recent enough to suggest that they had not been made during the catastrophe
which had changed the world, but were due to burrowings since that time.
The sheer size of this
expanse of debris-strewn wilderness was amazing. How many Before Men had lived
here? Far greater numbers surely than any Mob could count. Sander had followed
Rhin to the bank of another river, this one half-choked with fallen stone,
which must wind to the now distant sea on the other side of the raised island.
Man and animal were both
wary of the water. Rhin stood guard while Sander filled the water bag. So far,
however, Sander had neither heard nor seen any evidence of amphibians. There
were some fish—he took one with an improvised pole and line—a long narrow
creature that startled him with its likeness to a snake and that he quickly
loosed again, knowing he could not stomach its clammy flesh.
It was near the river
that he found the head. Not the head or skull of any creature that had lived, rather
one wrought in stone. Big as his two fists balled together, it was clearly very
old, the neck being broken raggedly across. And it was the head of a bird, with
a fierce proud look about it that somehow attracted him.
He brought it back to
show to Fanyi. She turned the carving around in her hands, examining it
closely.
"This," she
pronounced firmly, "was an emblem of power or chieftainship. It is a good
omen that you have found it."
Sander half laughed.
"I do not deal in omens, Shaman. That is not the way of my people. But
this is a thing that was well made. If it had a special meaning for him who
wrought it, then I can understand why he dealt so well in its fashioning—"
She might not have heard
him; that withdrawn look had returned.
"There was a great
building," she said. "Very tall—very, very tall. And this was part of
a whole bird with outspread wings. Above the door was that bird set—and—"
Fanyi let the lump of stone fall to the ground, rubbed the back of her hand
across her eyes as if to push something away. "It had a meaning," she
repeated. "It was the totem of a great people and a far stretching
land."
"This land?"
Sander glanced around the heaped mounds. "Well, if it were such a totem,
then its power failed them in the end."
Slowly Fanyi reached forth
a hand once more and touched the broken-off head. "All totems failed in
the Dark Time, smith. For the land and sea, wind and fire turned against man.
And what can totems do to stand against the death of a whole world?"
She took up the head
once again and set it on a stone, wedging it upright with smaller pebbles.
After she had made it secure Fanyi bowed her head.
"Totem of the
dead," she said softly, "we pay you honor again. If there lingers any
of your power to summon, may you lend us that. For we are the blood of men, and
men fashioned you as a symbol to abide in protection above their strong
places." Her hands moved in gestures Sander did not understand.
Let Fanyi deal with
unseen powers and totems; he was much more interested in the here and now. Yet
looking upon his find, Sander thought that he would like to wrap it in clay and
bake from it a mold into which he could run easily worked copper, to fashion a
symbol tied with the past. But the head was too heavy to carry with them now.
It was far better he cling to the scraps of metal he had found in the wreckage
of the ship.
He grew impatient. They
had rested here long enough and gained their needed supplies, for he had dried
some of the meat in the smoke of the fire. To remain longer brought them nothing.
"Your guide—that
thing you wear," he said to the girl. "Where does it point now?"
Again she turned her
head to northwest. But to go in that direction meant trailing through more
remains of the city. He would have felt freer and more at ease had they headed
straight west where he guessed these graveplaces of Before Men's holdings might
dwindle away.
Sander, in spite of his
impatience, allowed two more days to add to their supplies. The weather was
clear but colder each morning. However, there were no more such storms as had
struck at them earlier. Finally, on the fifth morning after their winning to
what had been the old shore line, they started off. Above, the sun was bright
as it climbed, giving a welcome warmth.
As usual the two fishers
slipped away and were soon hidden from view by the mounds and walls of rubble,
leaving here or there a pawprint to mark their going. But Rhin was content to
accompany Sander and the girl.
Fanyi had the pendant
ever in her hand. Now and then she pointed out a direction with such certainty
that Sander accepted her guidance. He wished that he could examine for himself
that oval with its winks of what he took to be shining stones. That the Before
Men could have fashioned a true direction finder he did not doubt, but neither did
he believe he could fathom its secret now.
At last, however, at
last he asked: "How does that thing speak to you, saying we must go right
or left?"
"That I do not
know; I know only a little of how to read what it has to say. See?" she
beckoned him closer, "look, but do not touch. I do not know how another's
spirit might influence this."
The pendant was oval,
but not flat, having a thickness of about the length from the tip of his little
finger to the first knuckle, while the metal from which it had been fashioned
was bright and untarnished, probably one of those mysterious alloys whose
secrets baffled all those of his calling. Set in a circle stood the stones,
round and faceted. These were of different colors and there were twelve of
them. But, bright as they were, Sander's full attention was caught by something
else. In the metal moved a visible line of light, which was not steady.
"Watch," Fanyi
bade him. She swung her body abruptly to the left. On the pendant the line
moved also, so it still pointed in the same direction that it had previously,
save that now it touched a different one of the stones.
"My father,"
she said softly, turning again so that the short bar of light touched the same
stone it had formerly, "knew many things. Some he was able to teach my
mother and later she taught me. But he died before I entered this world. This
was his great treasure. He swore by some magic of the Before Men it could guide
the one who wore it to the place from which it came. The closer one approaches
that place, the brighter will grow this pointing line. And that is the truth,
for I have seen it do so each day we have traveled. I know that which we seek
is a place of great knowledge. Perhaps the Before Men had some warning of the
destruction of their world and were able to prepare a storehouse that even the
great upheaval of the Dark Time could not destroy."
Sander was impressed by
that band of light. It was true that it did swing when Fanyi moved. And he
could believe it was meant for a guide. What manner of man had her father been?
A Trader who had hunted through the ruins and chanced upon such a cache as he
had not believed existed? Or some other, whose tribe perhaps possessed a
Rememberer with a greater store of Before Learning than any the Mob knew?
"Your father—was he
a Trader?"
"Not so. Though he
traveled with the Traders to Padford. He was a searcher, not for metals, but
for other men. Not to enslave them as do the Sea Sharks, rather to learn what
they had kept from the Before Time. He had recorded much, but"—she looked
unhappy—"when they made his grave barrow, my mother placed within his
hands that book he had used to set down what he had learned. A book is of
writing—much writing marked on pieces of smoothed bark or cured skin. My mother
knew that was his greatest treasure; therefore it was meet that it be laid in
the earth with him so in the Afterward he would have it as another would have
his tools and weapons. For my father said that words so marked down were the
greatest tools of all—"
Sander shook his head at
that. The saying was foolish. How could marks such as she had made in the dust
with a bit of twig be more to a man than the tools with which he wrought
something or the arms with which he could defend his very life?
"So my father believed!"
Fanyi raised her head proudly, as if she might have caught Sander's thought.
"But if his records lie with him, I have this." Her fingers closed
tightly about the pendant. "And I think it is only a small part of other
wonders."
During their journey that
day Sander took a chance now and then to glance over Fanyi's shoulder at the
pendant. They had to detour, sometimes even to backtrack, around piles of
ruins. Each time the line of light changed course, so that it ever pointed in
the same general direction, no matter which way they went.
It seemed to Sander that
there was no end to this city. Whence had come so many people; how long and
hard had they worked to bring hither this stone to raise buildings? His wonder
intensified.
During the ranging of
the Mob, they had at times found remains of old cities. Mostly they have
avoided the piles of debris, for there was a taboo because such were sometimes
the source of a sickness-to-death. The younger men had once or twice prospected
a little for metal. However, what they found was so rust-eaten as to be of
little account. It was better to depend upon the Traders, who apparently were
ever ready to risk any danger to secure the lumps they brought to the mobs.
No city Sander had seen
went on forever! Or near to that. But if there had been any metal worth the
plundering here it had been taken long ago. Birds nested among the bushes that
cloaked the sides of the more stable piles of rubble, left white smears of
droppings down weather-worn blocks. At this season the nests were deserted, but
they could be seen because the leaves were stripped from the branches by the
wind.
Twice Sander used his
small sling. And once was lucky, bringing down another of the giant hares. This
they roasted at nooning, saving their dried meat for later. They had seen
nothing of the fishers. Rhin sniffed at some of the stones and now and then
growled low in his throat, as if he caught some faint scent there he did not
like. Each time Sander tensed, searched the ground nearby for any track. He feared
most a monster like that on the one-time island.
Still, whatever traces
the koyot picked up must have been old, or perhaps not of the lumbering
creature. And there were no trees about to attract the forest people.
In his searching for
wood at their night's camp Sander stumbled on a discovery that shook him. A
huddle of bones lay in a small hollow, and not the bones of man. The leering
skull, its jaw supported by a rock, was twice the size of his own. And he saw,
driven into one of the eye holes, a dart.
Cautiously, he freed the
missile. In pattern it was not too different from his own. The metal had been
well worked, the handicraft of a trained smith. But it carried no marking
Sander recognized. He squatted down to examine the skeleton more closely.
This must certainly be
the remains of a monster. However, he believed the kill more than one season
old. He wondered why the slayer had not retrieved his dart. Such were not to be
wasted and each hunter thought first, after bringing down his prey, of reclaiming
his weapon. Perhaps the monster had been shot at a distance, then still living,
but wounded to the death, had reached here before it collapsed.
Sander made a careful
circuit of the surrounding territory, to come upon a second find, a gaping hole
in the side of one of the mounds. A later landslip had nearly refilled it, but
the original opening was not so obscured that it could not be distinguished.
Perhaps Traders, intent upon uncovering some treasure here, had been attacked
by one of the half-beasts. He could almost reconstruct what had happened.
Perhaps the men had
suffered so grievously from the monster's onslaught that they had fled, taking
their dead and wounded with them. This evidence of a battle, old though it
might be, was alarming.
He pried loose the dart.
The point showed a small film of rust, but that he could scour away with sand.
And any addition to his own supply was useful.
Sander was not yet
satisfied. With a whistle he summoned Rhin. The koyot, once he sniffed the
skeleton, growled fiercely, showing his fangs. But when Sander urged him past
the collection of bones to the hole, he showed no great interest. Whatever
scent had hung there must have long since disappeared. Now Sander sighted
something new, beyond a ragged pile of rubble—deep lines rutted in the earth.
There was only one
interpretation for those. A cart had been brought here, a slightly smaller one,
Sander estimated, than those the Mob used for their plains travel. And it had
been loaded heavily, enough to impress this signature of the wheels deeply into
the soil. So the diggers had not been entirely routed, they had taken away
whatever they had found.
But if this land was the
hunting ground for a band of Traders, his own party could be in danger. Even
though they had not the outward appearance of seekers for metal, the Traders
were jealous of their sources. They might attack any intruders in what they
considered their own territory, without waiting for any explanation of the
trespassers' business there.
This site was old,
judging by the condition of the landslip and of the monster bones. However,
that did not mean that the explorers who had left that excavation were gone
from the ruins. A city as large as this would prove too rich a ground to be
forsaken quickly.
So now they had a new
element to guard against. Sander knew that Rhin would not accept any stranger
unless he himself vouched for such a one. Even Fanyi might have been attacked
at sight had it not been that the fury of the fishers had won her protection
until Sander had accepted her in peace. Therefore, they must depend upon the
koyot to give them both protection and warning. The smith had no wish to trade
darts with any Trader. He needed the knowledge and the supplies those could
uncover too much. The ones he had met were amiable men, though shrewd in
bargaining. They were not like the Sea Sharks with whom all men had a quarrel
from the moment of sighting. He hoped that if any exploring party did cross
their path, Rhin would give warning early enough so that they themselves could
make plain their lack of threat.
When he reported his
findings to Fanyi, she did not seem disturbed.
"It could even be
the men of Gavah's kin. It is he who comes down coast in the spring—did come
down coast"—she corrected herself bleakly—"to deal in Padford. Our
Smith, Ewold, swore his metal was very good."
"What did you trade
in return?" The Mob had offered dressed leather and woven wool from the
herds, both of which the Traders appeared pleased to accept. He wondered what
Fanyi's kin had produced that had moved the Traders to carry their metal
hither. To his mind the village had not seemed productive of much that would
lure any speculators to their doors.
"Salt fish and salt
itself," she returned promptly. "Our men went out to the sea-desert
for that. And we had sometimes a surplus of grain and always dried fruit. My
mother offered herbs that their healers did not have. We were not so poor a
people as you believe, smith!"
"Did I say
that?" he countered. "To each people their own way of life."
"Perhaps you did
not speak it, but it lay in your mind," Fanyi replied with conviction.
"The Sea Sharks took more than kin out of Padford in their raid. I wonder
why do they so prey, snatching those of their own species to bear away captive
on their ships?" She asked that question as if she did not expect an
answer. "We have heard of them, not only from the Traders, but from our
elders. In the south they preyed upon us also. We were once a more numerous
people, but we lost youths and maids to the Sharks. That is part of our
memory, smith, though we have none of your Rememberers to call it forth at
will."
"I have heard of
the Sharks only from Traders," Sander confessed. "At least they keep
to the coast, and we have not seen them inland. Unless the White Ones were of
their breed—"
"The White
Ones?"
"When I was very
young, they came. They were a strange people, charging to instant battle as if
their lives depended upon our deaths. We were not able to parlay with them to
establish the boundaries of grazing lands as we do with other Mobs. No, they
killed all—child, woman, man, koyot even—for they had a peculiar dread of them.
Out of the north they traveled with their wagons. To draw those, they had not
koyots but creatures like deer, save they were very large and carried on their
heads huge spreads of branching horns. They acted as if they wanted all the
world for theirs alone, to clear out all the Mobs of the plains. When my people
learned of their blood-swollen madness, Mob linked with Mob, together we met
them on a field where they and their beasts died. For when they saw that we
would triumph, the women slew their own children and themselves. They put edge
even to the throats and hearts of their beasts. It was such a slaying no one of
the plains shall ever forget.
"We found strange
things among their wagons. But it was decided that all they carried must be
accursed because they acted as madmen. Thus their possessions were piled in
great heaps. On those we laid their bodies and the bodies of their beasts. They
were fired until at last there remained only ashes. Then did all the Mobs who
had gathered to defend their land decide in council that a Forbidding was to be
laid upon that place, one set in all our Rememberers' minds. Thus, none of any
clan-kin gathered there would ever visit that field again.
"Our own dead we
buried in hero barrows along the way to the place of blood, so that the
earth-spirit part of them might watch for us. Though some men believe," he
added, "that men have no earth-spirit part, that just the body, like
wornout clothing, remains of a man when breath is gone from him. But there were
enough of those holding otherwise that this was done. Now when any of the Mobs
range to the north with their herds, the new-sworn warriors and the maids near
to the time that they will choose a tent mate, all ride with a Rememberer to
the line of the barrows. There he chants the tale of the White Ones and their
madness."
"Why were they
called White Ones?"
"Their hair, even
among the young, grew very pale, and their skins, though they rode under the
sun, were also bleached. But it was their eyes that betrayed the greatest
strangeness, for those were of one color, having no pupil—being only like balls
of polished silver. Unlike those we have seen in the forest or that thing that
battered into the house, they wore the forms of men so that we could call them
kin. But for the rest—no, they were not of our kind."
"Whereas the Sea
Sharks are," Fanyi said firmly. "They wear the forms of men like
ourselves, but they have the inner spirits of devils spawned from the
dark."
She was anchoring the
sticks holding their meat at just the right distance from the fire to broil.
Twilight was already drawing in. Rhin had vanished. But Sander could not deny
the koyot that chance to fill his stomach, even with so many possible menaces
ranging in the dark. The smith gave a start, his hand instantly on his dart
thrower, as there was movement in the shadows. Fanyi's fingers closed about his
wrist.
"It is Kai and
Kayi," she said. "Though one may mistrust all shadows here, yet there
are still some we hold as friends." She crooned softly to welcome the
fishers.
Fanyi caught the head,
first of Kai, and then Kayi, holding them between her palms as she gazed into
the eyes of each fisher in turn. Then she spoke:
"They have found no
sign of others here. In this much, fortune continues to favor us."
Perhaps fortune favored
them, Sander decided somewhat grimly, yet he was still uneasily aware that in
this broken land a whole Mob might move silently and unseen. There was no
reason to relax their watch.
Again they shared out
sentry duty for the night. He sat in the early morning hours, feeding the fire
now and then. Rhin watched beside him as he listened to the sound of the river
below and to noises out of the dark.
The attack came
suddenly—between one breath and the next—not springing from the shadows, but
somehow within his own mind. Sander could not even cry out against that
invasion, and he had no defense to raise. Instead he felt as if he stood in another
place, the features of which were veiled from him, even as he could not see the
one—or thing—that had summoned him, overbearing his will as easily as a man
might overbear in strength a child.
This was a sensation he
could not find words out of past experience to describe. His very thoughts were
seized upon ruthlessly, to be sifted and drained of what the other wished to
learn. Sander had confused mental impressions of scenes—broken buildings,
movement in and among those. Yet when he fought to see clearly any part of
that, all faded, dissolved, changed.
Then there was only the
fire with the night beyond. Yet Rhin's head was up, the koyot's eyes blazing
with reflection from the flames. Beside him the fishers had reared, all turned
to face Sander. Alone of their party, the girl still lay quietly asleep.
Sander heard Rhin growl
softly, deep in his throat. A light hiss came from at least one of the fishers.
The smith raised his hands feebly to rub his forehead, feeling weak and
frightened. No hint that such could happen to any man had ever come to his
people, been hinted at by a Rememberer. He had been in two minds over Fanyi's
claim of unseen, intangible power—was this what she had meant by "seeking
thought?" Who had so sought him and for what purpose? Sander felt
violated by that invasion of his mind.
Kai hissed, baring teeth
in Sander's direction. The smith flinched from the beast's open enmity.
Rhin—Sander glanced quickly to the koyot. There still came that low growl from
the animal. Yet, when Sander's eyes met Rhin's squarely, the sound died. The
smith, who had never tried to communicate with the koyot after the same fashion
Fanyi used with her fishers, had now an impression that Rhin had detected the
mental invasion but now accepted that Sander was again himself.
The smith longed to
shake Fanyi awake, to demand of her what could have caused this attack that was
certainly of some Shaman's brewing and not of normal man. As his first fright
and dismay faded, he knew a rising anger. No one must know that he had been so
used. He sensed there had been contempt in that exploration of his thoughts,
that he was deemed to count for little in the estimation of whoever had netted
him for a moment or two with that invisible mind control. No, he would not ask
her.
Instead, Sander began to
rummage in his smith's bag. As he did so, he repeated mentally one of the
secret working chants. Dimly he recalled something his father had once
commented upon. There were supposed to be places from the Before Time where
strange influences could seize upon a man, bend him to an unknown service. But
there was an answer to such, a defense that was part of a smith's own secrets.
Sander's fingers closed
upon some of those lengths of wire he had ripped loose in the old ship.
Measuring them, he began to wind the strips into a braid as tight as he could
pull them. Then he fitted the loop around his own head, so that a portion of it
crossed his forehead directly above his eyes. That done he pulled it free once
more to weave the ends and make it firm.
Iron—cold iron—had a
meaning reaching from the Before Times. It could be a defense when worked in
certain ways. He had never had reason to test that belief, though many of the
Mob wore amulets of cold iron. Some he had fashioned himself according to their
desires. Then he had secretly thought it a baseless superstition, only in favor
because having such toys about them gave men a feeling of security within their
own minds.
Now—now he could accept
the idea that there were enemies—or an enemy—here who were in some way to be
more greatly feared than monster, White One, or jealous Trader.
Having finished his
crude diadem of rusty metal, Sander set about weaving some smaller bits into a
complicated knot that he strung on the thong of hide. This for Rhin. He did not
know whether the koyot might be influenced by the same invasion that had shaken
him, but what precaution he could take, he would.
There remained Fanyi and
the fishers. The animals, Sander believed, might not let him near them. They
were an aloof pair, tolerating man and koyot only because of the urging of
Fanyi. While the girl—she had seemed excited, even pleased when she had caught
a suggestion of that "seeking thought," making it clear she welcomed
contact with any who could use it. He supposed that was the result of her
Shaman training. But if such contacts were accepted as normal and right by the
Shamans—! If he had his way, he would leave her at this moment, strike out into
the dark.
Outrage and fear pulled
him strongly. However, such emotions he would not yield to. No, they would
continue to travel together until—until Fanyi might give him reason to believe
that she was far more akin to that—that seeker—than she was to him and his
kind.
The metal pressed
harshly against the skin of his forehead. Sander still repeated mentally the
words of power that must be said at the fashioning of any tool or weapon. Now
he fed the fire again. The fishers settled quietly once more beside Fanyi.
Whatever influence had invaded their camp to strike at him must have withdrawn.
Sander lashed shut his
smith's bag, stowed it with his gear. He could see the dawn light slowly
creeping up the sky across the cliffs that banded the river, and he hoped this
day's journey would bring them to the end of the city, or, if not that, to the
goal Fanyi sought. He had begun to dislike heartily this maze of mounds and
wreckage. If earth-bound spirits did exist, then surely uncounted dead walked
here. And since it was unlikely that any man had done them honor at their burial,
they would be answerable to no restraints.
Sander shied away from
such thoughts. He did not believe in any earth-bound part of the dead. And he
would not now be reduced to a child who fears the dark because his imagination
peoples it with monsters. No—no—and no!
Fanyi stirred, opened
her eyes slowly. Her expression, Sander noted with a return of uneasiness, was
much like that she wore when she fondled the pendant at intervals and seemed to
retreat from the outer world.
"It is there—he is
there—" Her voice trailed away. She blinked as if throwing off the last
remnants of a vivid dream. Then, as she sat up, her face was alight with an
eagerness he had never seen before. The excitement she had shown when she had
caught the "seeking thought" was but a pale illusion compared to
this.
"Sander—it
is there! Do you hear me?" She caught at his arm, shook him with a fierce
energy. "I have had a foreseeing!" Her face was still alight with
excitement and joy. "We shall come to it soon—the secret place. And there
will be someone there, someone important."
"Who?" he
asked flatly.
A small shadow of
bewilderment crossed her face, driving out the joy.
"I—do—not—remember.
But—this was a true foreseeing. We shall find what we seek!"
Her enthusiasm daunted
him. Had she had reservations all these days behind the confidence she seemed
to draw from her pendant? Was it that she truly had not been sure that it would
lead her—them—anywhere? He guessed so, but said nothing. It was plain that she
now was very sure indeed of success.
"What," she
asked, "is that you are wearing?" Her gaze was fastened on the band
he had braided. "It is made of metal wire. Why did you make it? Why do you
wear it?"
"That is my own
secret," Sander answered stolidly. He had no intention of letting her know
what had happened. "A smith's secret."
She accepted that. Nor
did she question it when he fastened about Rhin's throat the other bit of
twisted metal, though he knew she was watching him closely.
The fishers flowed away
with their usual speed. And after eating, Sander reloaded the koyot, making
fast the back burden in such a way that not more than two jerks of a single
cord could loosen it. If they were to face danger, Rhin was not to be
handicapped at the onset of any fight.
Fanyi led out, her eyes
ever seeking the pendant. The mounds of rubble were thinning, with more space
between them to give room to a stronger growth of first brush and then trees,
the latter thickening in girth the farther they went. They continued to
parallel the river bank and gradually the land sank, so that the cliffs which
hung above the water were no longer so high.
Not long after leaving
camp they came into a wide, open stretch rutted with the marks of carts. Rhin
lowered his nose to sniff, but he did not growl. To Sander's trail-wise eyes,
these all looked old, made some time ago. But there were so many of them,
crossing and recrossing, that it was plain in the past there had been a great
deal of traffic in and out of the city. Also the deep impression of most ruts
hinted at heavy loads.
He caught no sign of any
koyot pad tracks mixed up with the cut of cart wheels. Rather there were
others—those of the famous greathounds of the Traders. For the first time since
they had left their night camp, Sander broke the silence, though he believed
Fanyi had been so intent on her own thoughts, perhaps mulling over the dream
she termed a "foreseeing," that she had hardly been aware he and Rhin
were with her.
"If your sign
points us in this way," he observed, "we may not be the only ones to
find your storage place. The Traders, or whoever has combed this city, seem to
have passed here in force."
The girl shook her head.
"I do not believe that any Trader knows of what we seek. It is not metal,
the work of Before Men's hands, rather it is work of their minds. I know of no
Trader who would concern himself with such."
"Do you know of all
the Trader clans?" he countered. "We, on the plains, have contact
with four bands who come regularly, nearly thirty men in all. We have never
seen their women. How many came to Padford?"
"I can remember
twenty," she answered promptly. "And my father—but he was no Trader.
There may be others like him, seekers of knowledge."
"Yet he traveled
with the Traders," Sander pressed. "And it is known that that is not
their way, to allow any not of their kin to follow their trails."
"My mother said
that those who brought him treated him oddly, almost as if they feared him in
some manner. Yet he was not a man who carried his weapons loosed or who
quarreled easily. She said she was sure that the Trader chief was pleased when
they left and my father chose to remain behind for the winter. Yet he said he
would go with them when they came again, for he thought to travel even further
to the south to learn what lay there. And they did not refuse him when he
spoke."
Sander grew a little
tired of this mysterious father who had been laid in his grave place before
even Fanyi was born. He seemed to have made such an impression on the Shaman
mother who had taken him to her house that she treated him with a reverence and
awe that was not usual among her sex.
The women of the Mob
chose their mates. Yes, and discarded them if they were not satisfied with
their bargains. His father had been chosen twice. But the latter time he had
declined the proposal, for he already had a son to learn his mysteries. And no
smith wanted to divide his power when the days came that his own arm was no
longer strong enough to swing the greatest hammer. Sander had been raised
mainly in a household of men: his father, his uncle, who had so sharp a tongue
and narrow a mind that no woman had ever looked upon him with favor, himself
who was apprentice.
Any tenthold was eager
to supply a smith with well-worked clothing, a portion of baked meal cakes,
blankets woven from the wool of the herds, in exchange for what his father
could fashion in return. Those of their own tent had never gone empty of belly
or cold of body, even though no woman's loom or cooking pots rode in their
travel wagon.
But for the most part a
man owned only his weapon and his tools, all else belonged to a woman. It was
she who fitted out her daughter, when the maid came to choose, and counseled
her to choose wisely and with an eye for the future, mainly among the older men
and not the youths whose skills were yet unproven.
Was this custom also
held among Fanyi's people? If that were true, and Sander expected it was, then
the women of Padford could well have drawn aside from a stranger such as her
father, seeing no security in such a union that was bound to be a short one.
However, their Shaman had welcomed him, spoke of him with unusual respect,
nursed him until his death. The unknown traveler must indeed have had some
force of character to win such a response.
"It is not
usual," Fanyi continued, "for a Shaman to wed. Her powers should not
be limited by showing favor to any one man. Yet it is also necessary that she
breed a daughter to follow her in her craft. Therefore, when my mother chose a
far traveler, the village was content. Only she found him to be much more than
she supposed. And when he died, her mourning was not of ceremony only but from
the heart."
"You
say"—Sander felt a little uncomfortable at that note in his companion's
voice, as if he had walked into the private portion of a tent without being so
urged by its owner—"that a Shaman must bear a daughter. But what if there
comes a son—?"
Fanyi laughed.
"That will never happen, smith. We have our own secrets and in some things
we can even outwill the ways of nature. The first of my clan, she who survived
the Dark Times, had a learning new even then. And this she gave to her
daughter, and from daughter to daughter that was passed. We do not breed
sons, only daughters—and only one to each generation. For that is our
will—though it can be altered if we are minded, only we are not. For there is
no place for a boy-child in a Shaman's house."
As they were journeying,
the land had opened out before them. The outline of an abrupt rise ahead showed
such sharp pinnacles, such knife-edged clefts as Sander had never sighted
before. Here the river rushed faster, with a roar. They rounded a point to see
before them a mighty falls, a mist half-veiling the falling water, spinning out
in filmy threads to hide the full length of that downpour.
On the other side of the
river the land lay more level, those nodules of saw-edged rock less discernible.
Sander halted in some dismay as he sighted plainly what lay ahead. Some great
force had twisted and rent this land. Flows of lava had caught blocks of stone,
tangles of warped metal, now rusted and eroded. The landscape was such a
gigantic mixture of things made by man held captive by nature, frozen into what
seemed an impenetrable barrier, that it daunted them.
Yet the ruts of the cart
tracks headed directly forward into a country they would have sworn no wheel
could cross. Fanyi stared at that jumbled barrier across the land.
"A wave—a wave that
swept in from the sea," she murmured. "A wave as high as a mountain.
A wave that carried with it most of the city—a wave that broke here and so lost
its hold upon that which was heaviest. Such a wave as it is said carried the
ship of my people inland. Now I marvel that they survived—unless their wave was
smaller."
"It does not matter
how this was made." Sander came directly to the point. "We are
concerned with finding a way through, if your guide still tells us that must be
done."
She studied the pendant
and then nodded. "The indicated path still lies straight before us. But
these"—she pointed to the wagon ruts—"say that others must have found
a road, one large enough to take their carts."
Sander did not point out
that traveling such a well-marked path might well be inviting ambush. For the
moment he could see no other chance of penetrating that unbelievable mass
ahead.
"Look!" Fanyi
pointed. "A building!"
For a moment he was
startled by what she pointed out. Then he saw the wreckage was not a complete
building, merely blocks still perhaps connected by the metal sinews the Before
People used to tie together their masses of stone; but enough of those blocks
were intact to make a shell of sorts hard-rammed against a pinnacle.
The hugeness of the
disaster that had left its own monument here was overpowering. He had accepted
all his life the tales of the Dark Times, of the titanic forces that had
overpowered the Before World; he had seen the rubble of tumbled cities, the
sea-desert. But not until he stood before this breath-taking crumbled mass that
been thrown by the force of a raging sea upon tormented and shaken earth, there
to be rooted after the water's retreat, had it even been directly brought home
to him what fury had been loose upon his kind and their world. As Fanyi had
said, it was hard to believe that any man could have escaped what had struck in
the Dark Time. Even the chants of the Rememberers did not reveal the deep
despair of those who must have fled, only to be licked away by water or
engulfed when quakes opened the very land under their feet.
Fanyi had covered her
face with her hands.
"It is—" She
could not find words, he realized. Any more than he could summon them at this
moment.
He put his arm about her
shaking shoulders, drew her against him, two small humans standing before the
death sign of a world.
At length Sander, with
difficulty, wrenched his gaze away from that incredible wall.
"Do not look at
it," he told her. "Watch the ruts; maybe you are right and those will
guide us through."
Resolutely, he stared
down at the rough marks on the ground. Here and there were bared lumps of stone
over which the wheels must have grated. The way turned farther from the cliff
edge, away from the falls. Those, too, Sander would not look upon. There was a
kind of horrible fascination about the down-dash of that water, as if a man
observing it too closely might be led to leap, following the flow. The
thunderous sound beat louder and louder in their ears as they half stumbled,
half fled along the path.
Sander noted that Rhin
was now running, nose to the ground, as if on a hunting trail. The koyot did
not even appear to notice the horrible mountain range of debris. Of course, the
smith understood, to Rhin's mind, intelligent as the animal was, it would have
no meaning. Only to man who had lost so much would the sight deliver a hard
blow out of the past.
Now the wagon track
narrowed. They drew opposite the falls, and the sound was such they could not
have heard each other, even if they had tried to exchange some form of
encouragement. There was a single set of tracks and those ran perilously close
to the drop. Sander edged his back to the wall of the heights, facing out,
drawing Fanyi with him. Their clothing, hair and faces, were wet with spray as
they moved along crabwise, as far back from the edge as they could push. Rhin
had bounded ahead, but they moved by slow degrees. Sander felt giddy, he fought
a desire to leave that mass of stone and tangled debris behind him, to advance
to the water side. If he did that, he believed, he would be lost.
Fanyi with the fingers
of one hand gripped his furred overjacket so tightly her knuckles were bleached
pale. In her other hand she had palmed the pendant, and her lips moved as if
she recited some Shaman's words of power.
Their journey seemed to
last forever. Twice they dropped to their bellies and crawled in order to
continue to hug the side wall, for masses of stone or rusty, broken metal
projected outward. Yet the wagon ruts continued, and Sander knew a vast respect
for those who had dared to drive along this way, or else the others had done
this so often that the first surge of terror in the face of the overwhelming
disaster of mankind had been long since forgotten.
To the right, now that
they were at last past the falls, there spread a lake, dotted with islands of
rock and a reef or two of long-cooled lava. On the far side of the lake, which
they could only just sight, was an opening that must lead to another river, as
if the lake had two outlets.
A second wall of debris
began to rise, this time between them and the lake. Here Sander saw evidence
that the road had been opened partly by man's labor, using tools that had left
marks on stone blocks, or cut away masses of metal. The space so cleared was
hardly wider than a wagon, a small wagon, while the labor it must have cost
could only make Sander believe there must lie at the end of this trail some
rich reward equal to such effort. Having passed the falls, Sander began to
trot, Fanyi running lightly on beside him. He sweated as he went, his heart
pounding as he refused to look any higher than the surface of the very rough
way before them. It began to slope downward.
They had passed beyond
that portion where the road had been cut by man. The way opened out again.
Ahead they could see that this slope continued down nearly to the level of the
lake's water.
On their side of the
lake there was no sign of vegetation. This grim and deadly mass supported not
even the most stunted bush. But across the lake the yellow and red of trees in
fall leaf showed, and a green line along the shore where reeds might be
growing.
It was as they dropped
down into this lower way that they met Rhin and the fishers. All three animals
stood barring their path as if in warning.
Rhin gave a summoning
yelp, and Sander began to run, though he watched his footing that he might not
crash by catching a foot in one of the deeply worn ruts. The koyot's stance
suggested excitement, also a certain wariness. Now Rhin's pointed muzzle swung
to the heights where the gigantic flood had deposited what it had carried
inland.
When the fishers saw
that the two humans were coming, they humped away to be lost among the crannies
and pit holes of the distorted range. Rhin gave a last warning yelp, scrambled
off in the same direction.
Among these fantastic
heapings of stone, twisted and broken spikes of metal, some caught in congealed
lava pools, there were plenty of places one could take refuge. The boom of the
falls was loud behind them. Though he strained his ears, Sander could catch no
sound which arose above that, since Rhin had given tongue. The smith climbed a
spur of wreckage, testing each step above before he put his full weight upon
it, then turned to reach down a hand to Fanyi.
Together they reached a
place where a jagged pinnacle had split off from the mass of parent rock.
Jammed into the cleft between the two was a mass of debris that looked none too
steady. There were far too many sharp-ended bits to afford them any but a
precarious perch. Yet here the fishers had flattened out, clinging to their
choice of support with their claws. Rhin crouched, his belly tight against the
uneven rock and metal, frozen into immobility. So well did his gray-brown coat
fade into the background that Sander knew the koyot was practicing one of his
hunting tricks. He could thus lie for patient hours intent upon the burrow of a
hare or a deer trail that led to water.
There was barely room
enough left for Sander and the girl to crowd in beside the koyot. Once there
Sander made ready his dart throwers. Rhin gazed back down trail, the way they
had come. His ears pricked forward, and Sander could feel the vibrations of a
growl the animal did not voice aloud.
Sander leaned closer to
the girl so his lips nearly brushed the now unkempt hair above her ear.
"Do your fishers
know what danger comes?" Not for the first time he wished that he and Rhin
had a more complete form of communication. He believed that Fanyi could read
the thoughts of her two furred ones, or at least guess more accurately what
their action indicated.
She wriggled about to
gaze steadily up at Kai. The fisher's fangs showed in wicked promise.
"Something
comes," she made answer, "and from more than one way. See how Kayi
faces forward, while Kai faces back? We are between two sources of
trouble."
Sander grimaced. This
was all he needed. He had perhaps ten bolts, and there was his sword knife,
also the sling with which he hunted. A pebble propelled by that might be useful
and dangerous in its own way, but it would be necessary to aim with great
accuracy. He laid his darts ready to hand, then jerked loose Rhin's burden,
leaving the koyot free if there was to be a fight.
For a long space it
seemed that the alarm had been false. However, Sander knew the range of the
animals' hearing far exceeded his own. They might even have scented what
prowled along that narrow road. Then—
The sound that filled
the air whirled him back in time to his childhood. With it came a stab of fear
as sharp as a sword point thrust into his flesh. Such a clamor had long ago
tortured the ears of the Mob so much that they had stuffed in bits of grass to
deaden their hearing.
It was the battle horn
of the White Ones! No one who had ever heard could forget it. Now that bray
pierced the roar of the falls as easily as if the clamor of unleashed water did
not exist.
In turn the horn was
answered by a croaking, a booming series of cries, which were even more
startling. For they did not proceed from any human throat.
Up the trail from the
lake they came in great hops, those weird amphibians who were like the river
dwellers in the desert. Their bodies were encased in the same shell-fashioned
armor, while each held a wickedly barbed spear. The huge shells from which they
had made their helmets so overhung their countenances that, from the perch
where Sander's party hid, they could see nothing but the shells themselves.
As the amphibians came
into sight, they broke ranks, climbing into hollows and crevices, squatting
there on their haunches. Like Rhin, they carried with them an inborn camouflage
that made them nigh invisible as they burrowed into their chosen nooks,
preparing an ambush, Sander was sure.
Once more came the sound
of the battle horn. One of those huge antlered beasts, such as had served the
White Ones who had died on the plains, came into view. This time the creatures
did not pull a trail wagon; rather, it carried a rider, his boot toes tucked
within a band lashed about its middle. The White One who so rode advanced with
caution, his mount picking a slow way. Only two or three steps did the antlered
one take into the open. Then it shied back, grunting deeply.
There was bared metal, a
sword twice the length of the knife Sander wore, in the hand of the rider. His
head, covered by a peaked hood of hide, swung slowly right to left and back
again. Only when the battle horn boomed again, delivering an order, did he urge
his mount on. Fanyi reached up, laid one hand on each of the fishers' muzzles,
to quiet them. Once more Sander felt the vibration in Rhin's body. But they all
froze without a sound.
A second of the huge
deer (if deer those were) advanced into the range of their vision, with more
behind. However, the riders moved with such caution Sander was sure they
expected trouble. Not one of the amphibians had moved. In fact, when Sander
glanced in their direction, even though he had seen them settle in, he could
distinguish only one or two of them, and these only because he recognized the
crevices they had chosen.
The White Ones' eyes
searched the ragged walls. As the last one pushed out into the descending
trail, Sander saw the long sweep of the war horn now slung across his back.
Their party was small, only a half-dozen. They could well be scouts for just
such an invasion as the Mob had defeated when Sander was a child.
Their outer coats were
made of long and shaggy fur, matted and filthy. Binding the coats tightly to
their bodies were wide sashes of stained and dirty cloth. They did not appear
to speak to one another as they drew to a halt, but their hands were upheld,
the fingers moving in quick jerks, which perhaps conveyed meaning.
It was apparent that
they disliked what they saw or sensed ahead, yet some strong need pressed them
forward. The leader urged his mount on, his hand ready on his sword. However,
the spears of the hidden amphibians were twice—three times the length of that
weapon. Any of the water creatures could bring down such a rider before he
would be in range to retaliate.
Sander, now watching the
enemy, saw a movement of one of those shafts, a readying for battle. At that
moment an impulse arose in him to cry out—to warn the White Ones. Only his
knowledge of what had happened on the plains more than ten years ago kept him
dumb. Then the White Ones had been like demons, slaying without any mercy,
finally killing themselves lest they have any contact with his own people.
Their utter ruthlessness was so much a part of his clan tradition that normally
he would have had no wish to raise a single finger in their behalf. But they
still wore the guise of men of his own species, while those waiting to spear
them down had no part of any world he knew.
Fanyi's hands fell on
the smith's shoulders. She exerted force to pin him in place, cramping his arms
so that he could not have launched a dart without a struggle, which would
betray them to both parties.
Her lips formed a
distinct "no." He had a flash of dislike and fear. If Fanyi could
read his brain, as she might be doing, he did not like it.
The leader of the White
Ones paced warily on. Then a spear whirled out of nowhere. Only a swift swerve
of his mount kept the man from impalement. The amphibians boiled out of hiding,
hopping forward, spears forming a wall of points. It was apparent the White
Ones could not hope to attack, having only the weapons Sander saw in their
hands.
The man bearing the
horn, riding several lengths behind the swordsmen, now made the first move. He
swung the horn around, setting the rounded mouthpiece to his lips, steadying
the length of dull metal against the neck of his mount. His cheeks puffed and
he blew mightily.
The shock of sound sent
Sander's hands to his ears. He felt Rhin quiver, as if the high notes were a
lash laid across the koyot's muscular body. Fanyi loosed her hold on the smith.
Instead, she pressed a hand again on each fisher's head, though those animals
twisted and writhed.
As much as that blast
had affected their own party, it had an even greater effect on the amphibians.
Two dropped their spears and fell to the ground, where they lashed out with
arms and legs, as if in torment. Their fellows retreated, a retreat that became
a rout when they reached what seemed a safe distance from the swordsmen. The
White Ones booted their mounts into a trot and rode after the fleeing water
creatures. Now the leader of the riders leaned over to strike at the necks of
the two amphibians on the ground, stilling their writhing bodies. Both parties
vanished in a whirlwind of dust, rounding the turn in the trail up which the
amphibians had come earlier.
Sander made no move to
lead his own party out of hiding. He still suspected that the White Ones were a
scout squad and behind them toiled such a tribe as had come down on the plains.
However, Rhin relaxed
and the fishers squirmed from Fanyi's hold, uttering cries as if to urge their
companions on. Thus Sander was forced to accept the idea that these White Ones
were not being followed, at least not closely. If that were true, the sooner he
and the others were away from this debatable land the better.
He paused by one of the
fallen amphibians, though he did not look, or want to look, closely, under that
mottled brown shell helmet, at the thing's face, now slack in death. But he
picked up the spear and trailed it with him.
The shaft was far too
long, but he believed it could be cut to a shorter length. The barbs that
crowned it were so cleverly wrought that, against his inclination, he paid
tribute to the smith who had fashioned them. The material was not metal, rather
bone, skillfully carved. He shuddered at the thought of how such a head would
tear into flesh. The barbs were slender. Undoubtedly they would break were the
spear to be withdrawn, leaving fragments to fester within the wound.
Released by the lifting
of Fanyi's will and hand, the fishers humped around the curve of the trail and
disappeared, following both the White Ones and the retreating water creatures.
Sander remained in two minds about the wisdom of continuing. If there was
another company of White Ones somewhere behind them, they could well be caught
in a pincers between two deadly teams of fighters. But for the same reason he
could not suggest retreat.
If they could be as
fortunate the second time to find a hiding place among the chaos of the rocks,
they might have a chance to escape. But a man should not risk his life easily
on the turn of fortune alone.
The mass of storm wrack
still towered over them. As they went, no more shattering blasts from the
battle horn sounded. However, when they turned a curve, to see before them the
shore of the lake, they witnessed the last of that engagement.
The White Ones rode up
and down along the shore. Plainly they were not tempted to follow their enemies
into the lake where those swam with the ease of creatures in their natural
element. The escaping amphibians left tell-tale vees of ripples, showing very
little even of their heads above the surface.
The land, which was
level here, widened out. Sander made a quick decision to leave the road and
turn left to skirt the edge of the heights. A quick climb aloft there might be
their own salvation if the White Ones sighted them.
In this manner they
crept along, sometimes traveling on their hands and knees; Rhin also crouched.
Stone cut through their garments, bruised their hands; yet that hardship was
nothing if they could pass unseen as far as riders and swimmers were concerned.
To the north the White
Ones seemingly gave up their hopes of attacking those in the lake. The riders
drew together, and Sander caught the flutter of their hands as they conferred
in soundless language.
Finally the party of
mounted men broke apart. Two booted their antlered beasts back the way they had
come, sending Sander, Fanyi, and Rhin flat against earth behind the nearest
outcrop of the heights. The smith lifted his head cautiously. In so much his
fears had been proven right. Those riders heading east must be going either to
report or gather reinforcements. His own party's salvation was to make their
way as quickly as possible past the other riders settling down on the lake
shore.
Keeping to the broken
foothills was the best answer. The enemy mounts, larger and much heavier than
Rhin, needed room in which to maneuver. They could not crawl along the ground
as the koyot now prudently moved.
Still, to hug the side
of the heights made for a very slow advance. The one advantage was the many
hiding places the rough exterior of the slopes offered.
Luckily, the White Ones
appeared to have no thought of immediate exploration here. Perhaps they feared
other opponents beside the water things they had so easily routed. This land
was made for ambushes. A handful of the Mob, had they darts enough, might
tumble the whole of the White Ones' tribe into swift death. Sander was certain
he had not sighted any dart throwers among that band. Surely, if the riders had
had such weapons they would have loosed them at the amphibians.
Their creeping carried
them well past the riders at last. Now Sander waved Fanyi and Rhin to their
feet. A screen of debris, studded with outthrust masses of stone and eroded
metal, stood as if it had been intended as a barricade. Behind that, although
they could not hurry, at least they made much better time.
Twice Sander climbed the
crest of the barricade. It was really a vast layer of completely fused
material, which must have broken from the heights behind it, to form a jagged
foothill. From cover there he could survey the back trail.
He marked the ruts of
the road, which still ran along the bank of the lake. The riders were now following
it at a slow walk. Plainly, the White Ones were not pushing their pace.
Finally, the leading
rider slipped from his beast, with the others following suit. Their mounts
strode out into the shallows of the lake where some green of water plants not
yet stricken by frost showed. Dipping their heads, the animals wrenched off
great mouthfuls of the vegetation, champing lustily. The men had taken up their
position beside a large jutting rock and were opening their saddle bags.
Sander realized that he,
too, was hungry. But they could not linger here. The more distance they put
between themselves and those scouts, the better pleased he would be.
His party worked their
way on, discarding no caution, through great masses of refuse crushed by the
ancient waves and left by the draining sea. Sander longed now and then to test
some bit of metal he saw embedded in that debris. With this at hand—why had the
Traders ever sought the more eroded and destroyed city? Or had that trail been
meant to lead here in order to plunder this huge chaos?
Yet there were no signs
of any delving about. In fact, Sander believed, it would be very chancy to try
it. Now and again, just as the mounds in the city had been trimmed by a brisk
wind, these masses broke loose and came crashing down. So he kept one eye
overhead, to avoid passing near any height that looked unstable.
They halted at last
because they were too tired to keep going. Sharing out their meat and water,
Fanyi gave a great sigh. Rhin lay panting heavily after he had gulped his
portion. The humans' boots had suffered from the broken ways over which they
had come. Sander cut loose the bundle of uncured hare skins and tied them
around their feet, fur side in, hoping to provide a little cushion and protect
what was left of their boots.
Fanyi rubbed the calves
of her slim brown legs. "Never have I traveled such a trail as this,"
she commented. "Those ruts were bad enough, but this scrambling up and
down is far worse. And how long will it last?"
He knew no more than
she. The crumbled stones, the lava-engulfed wrack of the ancient sea, was
everywhere. Some peaks of rock rose mountain-high, plainly up-thrust from the
earth's crust at nearly the same time the sea had swirled in. It was a
nightmare land, and Sander gave thanks to fortune that they had traveled it so
far with no more than scraped skin or a bruised and battered hand, to show. It
was plain that they must hole up before the coming of night. Even Fanyi's
precious Before light could not guide them over such rough ground.
The lake was so large
that even with all their traveling they had not yet reached the western end. It
tantalized Sander every time he climbed to view a path before them. But he had
been warned by the adventures of the White Ones. To go near that occupied water
would be an act of folly. They must keep to these harsh, broken lands for
safety.
Some time before sundown
they chanced upon such a place as Sander thought would serve. Two massive
slides from the heights had spread into the lower land, now forming walls of
fused fragments. Between these lay a stretch of relatively smooth ground. They
dared not light a fire, even if they could have found wood. Fanyi had recalled
the fishers, and she curled down between their furred bodies, perhaps warmer so
than she might have been by a fire. Sander had Rhin.
The animals rested
quietly, displaying no unease. They ate quickly, with evident relish, the
chunks of dried meat Sander doled out, though the fishers were so easily
satisfied the smith suspected that even in this desolate land they had found
game during their earlier roaming. However, none of the three showed any
interest in vanishing again as the night closed in. When the dark was really
thick, Sander borrowed Fanyi's Before light. Shading that with one hand, he
made his way down to the edge of the slip that formed the western wall of their
refuge.
There he snapped the
light off and stared intently eastward. If the White Ones still followed the
wagon trail, they might not be adverse to setting up a camp with a fire. But he
caught no sight of any flame.
It was only when he
turned again west, ready to grope his way back to their own hollow, that he
sighted a spark of what could only be firelight. He was sure that the White
Ones had not ridden past them during the afternoon. Therefore those scouts had
not lit this beacon. For beacon it appeared to him, so high was it set. As he
watched, it began to blink, slowly, in a pattern of off-and-on.
In the same fashion the
Mob sent warnings across country when there was danger to the herds. But these
blinks bore no resemblance to the code in which he had been trained. Sander
whirled around, facing east again.
Yes, he had been right
with that guess! There was another high-placed spark of light that blinked in
answer. White Ones? Somehow he doubted it. The men who had scattered the
amphibians this morning appeared to be riding a new, unknown trail. But who
else would signal among these tormented hills?
Traders? That seemed far
more of a possibility. All that Sander knew concerning the strictly kept
secrets of their own places arose in his mind. They could well have posted
sentries in the heights, sentries who had marked both the coming of the White
Ones and Sander's own party. Were the White Ones as much enemies of the Traders
as they had proven to be for the Mob on the plains?
At this moment he
fervently hoped so. That fact would make his own position and that of Fanyi
much the stronger. A mutual enemy could draw together even un-friends in a time
of peril.
The light to the east
gave a last wink and vanished. As he turned his head, he saw that that to the
west was also gone. He crept carefully back to their camp and settled down
beside the koyot. He could hear Fanyi's breathing through the dark, even and
peaceful. He guessed that she was already asleep.
But Sander did not
follow her swiftly. There was something that seemed to loom over him, spreading
outward from the congealed storm wrack. This had been a place of death, not
only of men, but also of their ambitions, their dreams, all that they had
fashioned. If any earth-tied spirits existed, where better could one hear their
broken whispering, their pleas for life, their fear of a death so terrifying
that their minds could not imagine the blotting out of their world?
Some of that horror that
had gripped him in the morning, when he and Fanyi had looked for the first time
upon this place, stirred in him now. He was cold with more than the chill of
the night. Almost, he could hear screams, shouts of those lost and long gone.
Sternly, Sander set
himself to the regaining of good sense. His lips moved as he recited the power
words of the smith. A man made tools and weapons with his hands—after a pattern
his mind sketched for him. Those who used them in time died and were laid there
in their barrows. This was the natural way of life. The dead who might have
perished here in the Dark Times—they were long gone. And the things they
fashioned were not the things Sander understood. He might be of their distant
kin, but he was not of their clan; they had no hold on him.
He fought imagination,
put out of his mind as best he could that memory of the fragment of a building
he had seen still partly intact and plastered against the cliff. The Before Men
had had great knowledge to serve them, but it had not helped them escape the
Dark Time. What good then was all their special learning when the earth and sea
turned against them?
Slowly, he considered the
quest that had drawn him here. Very far in the past now lay the taunting words
of his uncle. They no longer awoke a flame of anger within him. Below these
tormented mountains, his own life seemed very small, nearly meaningless. Yet it
was his life. And if there lay ahead what Fanyi had promised, the wisdom
of the Before Men that he could take for himself, then he would not be as small
either. His fingers flexed as he lay, thinking of patterns he had long carried
in his head, things he would do if he could work the unknown metals—
It would not even matter
much whether he returned to face down those elders of the Mob who had decided
that he was too untried and young to take his father's place. No, what would
matter most was the fact that he would know—know and use skills he had
dreamed of but never found.
He pillowed his head
against Rhin's haunch, resolutely shutting out the terror of the heights,
intent upon what lay here and now.
With morning they
circled down to the lake where Sander filled their water bottle while Fanyi and
the fishers kept watch. Here the water had an odd, metallic taste. But Fanyi
pronounced it harmless, saying that the minerals in it might well be
beneficial, for she brewed such for healing. There was no sign of the
amphibians. However, Sander noticed on one of the rocky islands, well out from
the shore, a mound of set stones in which a dark entrance hole opened directly
on the lake. He believed that this might mark a home of the creatures.
They turned away again
from the easier surface of the wagon road, to scramble along at the edges of
the hills. The open space was slowly narrowing again, sooner or later they
would be forced back closer to that rutted track. Sander kept listening. Their
own feet, muffled by the hare pelts, and the pads of the animals woke little or
no sound. But even the slip of a stone seemed to echo far too loudly!
Once more the road began
to climb. Here some of the ruts had been filled with stones, and the debris had
once more been cut back on either side. They must now return to that cut, for
to climb jagged rocks on either side offered a risk Sander did not want to
contemplate. There was too much danger of a fall.
He forced the pace,
wanting to be quickly out of this gap where they were so clearly visible.
Somewhere in the battered heights above, that light he had sighted in the night
must mark a sentinel's post. He had no doubt that they had already been noted
and spied upon. Yet the challenge Sander continued to expect did not come.
Beyond this second
narrowing of the level land, the heights sloped once again. And from the peak
the road cut, they caught a good view of what lay ahead. There were some rises,
but none as tall as those behind, and far less of the battered wrack of the
waves had been planted here.
Instead, below was a
growth of grass, scattered trees wearing scarlet and gold, some stands of pines
showing dark green. And—Sander paused, in startlement.
It looked like a cross
between the village of Padford, with its wooden and stone walls, and the mobile
tents-on-wheels used by the Mob. A deep ditch had been dug, into which some
water from a river feeding the lake had been diverted. Beyond that ditch, earthen
walls mounted high, crowned with a wall of tree trunks. The tops of these were
hewn into points like a defensive stake barrier, save these trunks were larger
and more firmly set than any such wall he had ever seen before.
Clustered within were
tents-on-wagons—much larger than those the Mob hauled to form their own
temporary clan-towns up and down the plains. The tents-on-wagons circled an
open space wherein stone had been used to construct a rough tower, standing
perhaps twice the height of the tents about it. From cooking places before each
tent rose trails of smoke. People stirred about, coming and going. A band of
loose animals, herded by one mounted man, trotted out of the enclosure, across
a bridge which could be lowered or raised to span the ditch.
Hounds! Then this must
be a Trader stronghold. Unlike the people of the Mobs, the Traders bred
different animals. The hounds, as they were called, were akin to Rhin, yet
different, in that their ears did not stand erect, but flopped on either side
of their heads. And instead of uniform coloring, they were splotched, spotted,
marked with white and red-brown patches or feet. No two ever looked alike. The
Traders seldom rode on their long treks, but used these beasts to carry their
stock. But Sander had never seen them in such number before.
Surrounded by the
trotting hounds was an inner core of deer-like creatures, larger than those
Sander had long hunted. Having left the village, the hounds were spreading out,
still guarding the deer, their noses close to the ground, coursing off in
different directions much as a koyot would do when released to hunt. Their
herder kept on, riding alone straight after the deer in the general direction
of the gap.
The fishers, reared on
either side of Fanyi, began to sound their hissing battle cry. But she
instantly had a hand on each. It was plainly her will, not her light hold that
restrained them. Rhin watched with interest but did not growl. He knew Traders
of old and had fraternized with the hound pack-hounds they had brought with
them.
The hound that bore the
rider suddenly gave tongue and began to run. And behind Sander came a voice,
sharp and clear:
"Stand! Or do you
want your throats torn out, fools?"
That question was asked
in such a tone that Sander did not doubt the questioner was quite ready to
enforce his command. He allowed his hands to drop into full sight, his weapons
still in belt and shoulder strap. Inwardly, he was deeply ashamed to be thus
easily taken by a hidden sentry.
The rider arrived
swiftly, for the hound ran at top speed, while the fishers snarled in open
rage. Still Fanyi kept them under control. Rhin yelped, the hound answered with
a deep bay.
Sander longed to turn
and see who kept watch behind, but he knew the folly of making any move, which
might bring instant hostile reprisal.
The rider pulled to a
halt before them. He wore the leather breeches and furred overjacket of a
plainsman. But his face was half-hidden by a black beard trimmed to a point,
and his ear length hair was mostly covered by a cap of yellow-white fur. His
hands held a thrower ready, dart in the slot, and there was no welcome to be
read in his expression.
"Who are you?"
His demand was abrupt, as he eyed first Fanyi and then Sander, though, Sander
noted, he kept shooting wary glances at the fishers.
"I am Sander,
smith. And this is Fanyi, Shaman of Padford—" Sander answered with an
outward show of confidence, which he hoped he could continue to assume.
"A smith and a
shaman," returned the rider. "And why do you wander? Or are you
outriders of some Mob?" His two questions were frankly hostile.
"You are Jon of the
Red Cloak," Fanyi spoke up in return. "I have seen you in Padford.
That was five seasons ago."
"I was there. But a
Trader goes many places during his travels. And what does the Shaman of Padford
do here? You are tied to your people by the Great Will you obey. Do the men of
Padford wander, then?"
"Not so. Most lie
dead, Trader Jon. How many the Sea Sharks might have taken, I cannot
number."
Though he still held the
dart thrower steady, now the man gazed intently at the girl.
"Sea Sharks, eh?
You say they raided Padford?"
"They killed, they
burned, they took," she repeated with emphasis.
"But he—" The
thrower moved a fraction to indicate Sander. "This smith is not of your
people. How came he, and why, to this land? No Mob favors leaving their plains,
except for good reason."
"I had good
reason," Sander returned. "No Mob has two smiths. Therefore I come to
seek knowledge—more knowledge of metals."
The man's gaze grew
fiercer. "You are bold, smith, to say thus you come to steal our
secrets!"
"I care not,"
Sander answered, "where the metals are found. It is the working of them
that means much to me."
"So,"
commented the Trader, "any man might say, were he found where he has no
right to be."
"Do you then,"
Fanyi asked, "claim all this?" She indicated the land about them.
"What it contains
is ours by right of discovery. You," he snapped at Sander, as if by any
prolonged conversation he weakened his case, "loose your gear"—he
pointed to the bundles on Rhin—"and let me see what you have stolen—"
Though he had no idea of
the strength of the force that might stand behind him, Sander refused to play
meek any longer. He knew enough of Trader ways to realize that if one did not
stand up to them and bargain, one was completely lost. He folded his arms
across his chest.
"Are you then chief
here?" he asked. "You are not head of my Mob, nor even a Man
of First Council, unless you so declare yourself. I do not take orders—I am a
smith, one with the magic of metals. Such are not to be ordered about by any
man without reason. Nor," he continued, "does one so address a
Shaman."
The man made a sound
that might have signified scornful amusement.
"If she was Shaman
of Padford, and Padford is no more because of the Sharks, then is her claim of
Power false. As for you, smith," he made a taunt of that title, "more
than words have to prove your worth."
The fishers growled,
Rhin echoed them, while the hound bristled and showed his fangs in turn.
"Control those
beasts of yours," ordered the Trader, "or else look to see them dead.
Move on, carefully. We shall see what the Planners make of you."
Fanyi glared at Sander.
He read warning in her look. The fishers were still growling, but they had gone
to four feet again and she walked between them, her hands resting on their
backs as they moved, flanking her, down toward the town.
Sander followed. There
was little else he could do. He heard a scrabbling behind him and realized that
his caution had been right as three riders on hounds moved forward to box him
in as he went.
Some of the loose hounds
came bounding closer as the party followed the rutted road toward the ditch
bridge. They bayed and growled. Rhin and the fishers, their fangs showing, made
ready answer to the challenges the other beasts offered. But there was no
attack, for the riders sent the hounds off with a series of cries not unlike
barks.
Men issued from the
village to await them. It was one of these who called to their captor:
"Ha, Jon, what have
you gathered in? These are no Horde stragglers."
"They are invaders
no matter what they look like," the rider returned. "But if you want
to trade blows with the Horde, those also come. The signals have been
seen."
Fanyi stopped short of
the bridge. "Trader, my companions will not enter here. Bring out your
Planners."
"Dead animals can
be easily transported—"
The girl raised her
hands and brought them together in a loud clap. Her eyes caught and held the
eyes of the threatener. He looked as if he were struggling vainly to make some
further statement or give an order, but something had locked his lips.
"I have spoken, and
the Power is mine, Jon of the Red Cloak—know I not your true name? Thus, I can
command you to do this thing. Get hither one of authority that we may speak together."
Sander believed the
rider struggled between his own will and that of the girl. He looked furious,
yet he slid down from the back of the hound and tramped heavily over the
bridge, those gathered there making way for him.
Fanyi's face bore that
look of concentration that Sander had seen her wear when she had sat with the
pendant in her hand. Though he found it hard to believe in her reputed
"power," it was plain at this moment a man, who was not even
conditioned to accept her decisions as her own people had doubtless always
been, was obeying her orders against his own will.
There was a closed look
about the men who surrounded them. Though this was obviously a well-established
town, no women or children showed in that silent crowd. Sander did not like the
inferences one could draw from their quiet and from their set expressions. The
jovial, open friendliness the Traders displayed when visiting the Mob was gone.
All those warnings concerning their jealous guardianship of their own territory
were now, to Sander's thinking, made manifest by this lack of welcome.
In a world where
strangers, unless they were openly hostile like the White Ones and the Sharks,
were made guests and asked for stories concerning their travels and lands
farther away, this suggestion of hostility shocked Sander. However, he was a
smith, no one could deny that. And in any civilization a man of such skill must
be truly welcome. He glanced from face to face among that assembly, striving to
see a forehead tattoo matching his own. Was there no smith here at all? As
fellow members of a craft that had its own secrets, he could claim acceptance
from that one man at least in this village.
But he could not sight
on anyone's skin the blue hammer brand. Still he rehearsed in his mind the
work-words by which he could prove his claim to the metal mysteries.
There came another
parting of the crowd and Sander saw Jon again. With him was a much older man.
The newcomer walked haltingly, using sticks which he dug into the ground to
support his forward-leaning body on each side. He held his head at a stiff and
surely painful angle. For all his crookedness of body his gait was swifter than
Sander would have thought possible. He nearly matched Jon's strides in spite of
his own more limited steps.
Alone among the Traders
the newcomer bore a forehead marking. For a moment Sander thought that here
must be the smith he had sought. Then he realized that no man so frail of body
could carry out any but the easiest metal work. And his tattoo was not of a
hammer, although it had a strange familiarity. At first, Sander could not
remember where he had seen before the profile of that fierce-eyed bird head.
Then he recalled the broken bit of stone he had found along the river, the
symbol Fanyi said had once stood for a great and proud country.
The bird-marked man
stopped before Sander and his group. For a long moment he studied each in turn,
both people and animals. At last he spoke in a voice so deep and rich it seemed
almost too powerful for his thin body.
"You"—he
singled out Fanyi from the first—"are of Power. You"—now he swung his
head around a little to look at Sander—"are a smith of the plains people.
Yet you travel together with these who are your companions. What matter brings
so strange and diverse a band together?"
"I am of
Padford," Fanyi replied. "But Padford no longer is. The Sea Sharks
came and—" She made a gesture of negation.
"I have heard it
said," the other said, "that the Power of a true Shaman can walk in
those people who believe."
"It was the time of
the Great Moon," Fanyi answered steadily, though her face was bleak.
"I answered the call of my need. It was at that time they struck."
The old man's lips and
jaw moved a trifle as if he chewed upon words in some manner that he might thus
test truth by the taste of them. He made no comment, only swung a second time
to Sander.
"And you, smith, as
you name yourself, what brought you out of the plains, away from your Mob and
kin?"
"My father
died." Sander gave him the truth, seeing no reason to disguise it. "I
was young, too young, my uncle claimed, to be full smith, though my father had
named me so. There is no place in any Mob for two smiths—therefore I claimed
out-right."
"The impatience of
the young, was that it, smith? You could not bend your pride, but rather chose
to live kinless?" There was, Sander believed, a note of derision in that
query. He held his temper manfully.
"There was also the
wish for knowledge."
"Knowledge!"
That sharp word cut him short. "Knowledge of what, smith? Of some treasure
trove you could plunder to buy your way back to your kin? Was that it? Hunt
metal for yourself so that Traders cannot make their living!"
A growl akin to Rhin's
rose from the crowd about them. Before Sander could answer, the other
continued:
"And what treasure
have you looted, smith? Turn out your gear."
Sander wanted to balk,
but he knew that he would thus only provoke a struggle that would do no good.
Sullenly he went to Rhin, unknotted the bag holding his work tools and the
small bits of metal he had pried and broken loose in the ship. As he unrolled
the covering, Jon pounced on one of those lengths of battered wire.
"See, he has—"
the Trader began with a kind of triumph, then he held the wire closer to his
eyes. Dropping that length, he pawed over the rest of Sander's small store.
"Look you, Planman!"
The Trader held a
fistful of the ship's stuff closer to the old man.
"Whence had you
this?" the latter demanded.
"There was a ship,
one caught in the sea-desert. This came from the inside of that," Sander
explained. The Planner must be half-smith, himself, or have an eye
smith-trained, else he would not have seen that it was any different from what
they might find in a ruined city.
"And this ship was
of metal?" demanded the Planman.
"All of metal.
There were dead men within its belly, and they were not bones."
To his surprise the
Planman nodded. "It is then like unto the one Gaffred uncovered in the
mountains last year, one made to travel under the surface of the water."
That, to Sander's
incomprehension, appeared to convert the Planman from suspicion to at least the
first stage of offering hospitality. Fanyi repeated that her animals would not
enter the town, which for a short period raised again a chorus of doubts from
the Traders. But at length it was agreed that Sander take housing with their
smith (who had suffered an injury, which had left them for a time without a
worker), while Fanyi would be allowed to stay without, camping in one of their
trail wagons now parked for the season.
Sander did not like
being separated from the girl. She had let these people assume that they had
been drifting along together, two lost ones without kin, saying nothing of the
strange storage place she sought. He had followed her lead, as after all hers
was the claim on the site to which that finder of the Before Time served as a
guide. But he thought that the Traders believed there was some deeper tie
between them than just expediency and so considered him hostage to warrant
Fanyi's presence.
Sander knew that to be untrue.
There was nothing to prevent the girl from going off by night. And if she did
so disappear, his lot among the Traders was going to be anything but easy.
There was also the knowledge of the White Ones heading this way. But when he
mentioned them, he discovered the Traders were confident of their own means of
defense.
Kaboss, the smith,
greeted Sander's arrival with a hardly enthusiastic grunt. He surveyed the
plainsman's kit of tools, not quite with a sniff of disparagement, but with the
air of a man who had in the past discarded as unworthy very similar pieces. The
bits of ship wiring, however, intrigued him. And he put Sander through a most
exhaustive examination concerning everything he had observed about that
stranded hulk.
One of Kaboss's own heavy
hands was wrapped in bandages, and once or twice when he flexed his fingers
without thought, he gave an exclamation of pain. He allowed Sander to eat—such
a bowl of well-seasoned stew as the plainsman had not tasted since he left the
Mob—and then bore him to the smithy where he pointed out a pile of repair work
that had stacked up there because of his injury. Like any Trader he haggled
over terms, but at last Sander struck a bargain that was satisfactory enough
and went to work with a will.
Rhin had been quartered
in a stable and given a gorge-feed of dried meat. Now after licking his paws,
sore from the travel in the mountains, the koyot had gone to sleep.
Sander paid close
attention to his work, though the time for it was short, since the day had been
well advanced before they had reached the Traders' town. Yet also he tried to
think what might come next. That Fanyi would calmly settle down as a part of
this clan, even if she were granted full kin-right, he did not believe. And
neither would he stay if she went.
Kaboss was full smith
and would take over again entirely once his hand healed. Sander had left his
own people rather than be counted apprentice for more years. He had no
intention of playing that role among strangers. And in spite of what he continued
to tell himself was reasonable common sense, he did believe that the Shaman
knew something when she talked of a storage place of knowledge. The pendant had
more than half converted him to her point of view. He had never heard or seen
anything like that before.
Kaboss's household was
small. His housemate was a silent woman, looking older than her chosen man, her
hair streaked with gray, though she was dressed in a manner to show the
importance of their household, wearing a thick necklace of much burnished
copper, four silver rings, and a belt of silver links about her dull green
robe. She did not speak often and then only to the serving maid, who scuttled
about, an anxious frown on her face as if this were a mistress no one could
hope to please.
There was no sign of an
apprentice. Then Kaboss mentioned that he had such, a younger son of his
brother, but he had been gone for some days now on an expedition scouting for
metal to the north.
Under questioning,
Sander told something of their trip, their meeting with the amphibians, and the
attack of the monster upon the house on the one-time island. Kaboss was much
interested in that portion of his tale.
"Such are still to
be found then!" he commented. "They were once so great a danger that
we could not hunt lest they corner us. Then we had a great roundup, calling in
the clan of Meanings and the clan of Hart, and that day we killed full twelve
of them. Since, they have troubled us no more, so we thought them all gone. Now
come these you call the White Ones, also to cause danger. The stream
people—they are of little account. One can handle them easily enough on
land."
The woman suddenly
leaned a little forward in her cushioned chair. She stared intently at Sander,
as if she heard nothing Kaboss had said, or if she did, it meant but little.
Now she pointed to their visitor.
"Tell me, stranger,
why do you wear iron in that fashion about your head?"
He had forgotten the
twisted wire he had set there in hope of not repeating that experience with
what Fanyi termed the "seeking thought." Now his hand went up to
touch the band in half-surprise.
The woman did not wait
for his answer but continued:
"You seek the
protection of the 'cold iron,' is that not the truth, stranger? There has come
to you something you cannot understand, something no man seeks, is that not
so?"
Kaboss stared from
questioner to Sander and back again. Now he edged a little away from the
younger man.
"Spirit-touched!"
The woman smiled, not
pleasantly. "I wonder that you did not see it for yourself, Kaboss. Yes,
he is spirit-touched. And such I will not have under this roof. For it can be
he might open a door for what we cannot see or feel. Take him forth and leave
him with that other, who frankly says she speaks with that which is not. Do
this for the safety of not only this house, but all our clan."
"Planman Allbert
sent him here," Kaboss began.
"This house is
mine, not that of Planman Allbert. And I think if any discover you have sheltered
such a one, you will find we have more un-friends than friends."
Reluctantly, Kaboss
arose and beckoned to Sander. "The house is hers," he said heavily.
"So any choice is hers. Come, stranger smith."
Thus did Sander find
himself again in exile, a whispered explanation to the gate guards enough to
send him and Rhin packing out into the night.
Still bemused by the
rapidity of what had chanced, he started for the tent-wagon that had been
assigned Fanyi. He was not in the least surprised to find it empty, even her
pack gone. Slinging his own burden up on Rhin, he impressed upon the koyot a
need for trailing. And mounted, his koyot's nose sniffing the trail, he rode
out once more.
That Kaboss had expelled
him so easily from the village without referring to the Planman made Sander
uneasy. As he rode on, he pondered what appeared too quick a change of
attitude. The woman had certainly made clear her own feelings—which suggested
that perhaps the Traders themselves had encountered just such a brain-touching
invasion as Sander had met. They knew the meaning of "cold iron,"
which had been for a long time a legend. Sander had never known it to be
invoked among his own people. Perhaps this circlet would have awakened
questions had he worn it while with the Mob, but here the trader-woman had
instantly named it for what it was—a protection against the unseen.
But the Planman had been
so emphatic that he remain with Kaboss.
Had the old Trader been
slightly too emphatic on that point? Sander's thoughts coasted away in another
direction. Suppose the Traders suspected that it was not chance wandering that
headed Sander and Fanyi in this direction. Being constituted as they were to
think first of the discovery of hidden treasure, they would readily accept a
suggestion that these trespassers had some such search in view. But, rather
than try to force a secret from them, the easier way to discovery would be to
loose both on some pretext and then trail them.
Sander did not doubt in
the least that the Trader hounds could scent with the same efficiency and
expediency as Rhin. Already men might be mounting, to skulk behind.
There was, however, the
matter of the White Ones. Would their invasion be feared enough so that the
Planman dare not detach any of their fighting force to hunt down Sander and the
girl? The smith had nothing but guesses to add together, but he thought that
the sum of them was enough.
For himself, he saw no
need for secrecy. If there was any knowledge to be had, why should it not be
open to all comers? He would not deny the Traders their share. But what if it
were the White Ones who came after them? Sander shook his head firmly as he
rode, though there was no one to witness. No, he wanted no enemy to benefit by
anything Fanyi might uncover.
Rhin was plainly following
a trail that was open and fresh-set. For the first time Sander considered
Fanyi's attitude. She had made no attempt to wait for him. Did she value his
possible aid in her quest so little that she had shrugged him off? He felt a
pulse of anger at that. It was as if he were inferior, one who was of no use to
her now. Perhaps the pendant had given her some secret sign that she was close
enough to her goal to make his company no longer necessary. He resented the
idea he might have been used and then so easily discarded.
Half believing this, he
did not urge Rhin on, hot as the trail was. The fishers were too-formidable
opponents. And if he had been only a temporary convenience as far as Fanyi was
concerned, there was no reason to think the girl would not use the animals
against him. They had no kin ties—she and he.
Now and then he glanced
back at the dark blot of the Trader village. There was certainly no stir there
yet. However, that did not mean that he was not under observation. They might
want him well ahead before they began their hound-mounted pursuit.
There was no cover in
this part of the valley. The village was situated closer to the heights on one
side, while to the north curled the river. Rhin trotted toward the water,
sniffing now and again at the ground. The night was frosty-clear. Sander
huddled into his fur overjacket, drawing the hood, which usually lay between
his shoulders, up over his head, pulling tight its drawstring.
He was tired, and his
arms and shoulders ached dully from the unaccustomed labor of the afternoon
when he had exerted his best efforts to impress Kaboss with his skill. Before
that had been the tension and fatigue of their struggle through the heights with
the alarms along the way.
Sander knew that he
could not fight off sleep too long. Even as he rode his head nodded until he
would snap fully awake again. How could Fanyi have gone so steadily, though of
course she had not labored at a forge for part of the day past.
Rhin reached the river
bank and paused, nosing the ground a few paces right and then left. Finally the
koyot barked, and Sander realized that those he followed must have taken to the
water here, though he wondered at Fanyi's recklessness since she knew that this
flood in the lower regions was occupied by the amphibians.
Did the trail here go
west or north? Sander tried to push aside the heavy weariness of his body and
mind to decide. Ever since they had reached the land from the sea-desert, the pendant
had pointed continually west. He could not believe that the direction had now
changed so abruptly.
Therefore, Fanyi and the
fishers had taken to the water in a simple move to confuse any hounds set
behind them. If he prospected up stream, he might come across the trail where
they had issued forth again. Only the point of emergence could be on the other
side of the stream; if so, he would have only half a chance to find it.
With knee pressure he
urged Rhin west, paralleling the river. There was a moon tonight. But it was on
the wane and its light was limited.
As he rode in and out
among a growth of brush, Sander suddenly jerked entirely awake. That band he
had set about his head—it was warm! No, hot! And getting hotter! His hands went
up to jerk it off, and then he hesitated. That was what the unknown wanted.
Cold iron. No, hot iron, iron that could blister and sear. The pain was to
force him to rid himself of his defense.
It was iron heated in a
strong blast of air-fed flames. Impossible for it to be this way in the chill
of the night. It could not be! Sander began the chant of the smith's
work-words. The band about his head burned like a white-hot brand, only that
was what the other wanted him to think! Somehow Sander realized that. So the
heat was only an illusion—a dream—that was sent to rob him of his first
protection.
If this torment was only
a dream—then that heat did not really exist. Determinedly, he kept his hands
down, fought against the agony of the branding. This—was—not—real!
Now Sander singsonged
aloud the smith's chant. He had not believed in Fanyi's boasted powers. But he
had to believe that this existed, or he would not feel it. Yet he
stubbornly told his shrinking, hurting body, it is not true! There was
no fire, no forge, therefore there was no heat in the thing he wore. Cold iron—cold
iron—
Those two words became
mixed with the others he spoke. Cold iron!
He was not quite sure
when the heat began to ebb. For by that time he was only half-conscious,
clinging to one thought alone, that the iron was truly cold.
Within his overjacket,
his coarse wool shift was plastered to his body by the sweat of pain. He
wobbled so that he could not have stayed on Rhin had he not seized with both
hands upon the koyot's hide where it lay in loose rolls about the animal's
neck. The iron was cold!
Rhin stopped—or had the
koyot been halted for long moments while Sander fought his battle for survival?
The smith did not know. Only, he realized, he was slipping from the saddle pad.
On hands and knees, he dragged himself under the down-looping branches of a
pine, sinking deep into a drift of ancient needles. There he huddled, passing
quickly into exhausted sleep from that unimaginable battle.
Sander's sleep was
dreamless, and when he awoke, a shaft of sunlight flashed on the stretch of
river he glimpsed between two bushes. His first memory was of the strange
attack. Quickly he slipped off the band, his fingers searching his skin for the
tenderness of a burn. But there was no mark there. Soberly, he once more put on
the band of wire. Perhaps, if he had allowed belief to settle in his mind, he would
have been scarred. It was still hard for him to accept the fact that such
things could happen.
Yet who knew what
marvels the Before People had controlled? Fanyi's pendant was more than Sander
had ever imagined could exist. There was Fanyi's father—that stranger she had
never seen—the man who was not a Trader, but one who, of his own will, traveled
to seek out new knowledge of the world. Sander knew of no other man who was so
moved. A Mob crossed plains lands because of the needs of the herds on which
their wealth was based. The Traders made their long treks for gain. But a man
who roved merely to see what lay on the other side of a hill or beyond a
valley, such Sander could not yet understand.
Rhin! Sander stared
around. The koyot was not sharing his sleeping place as they always did when on
the trail together. There were no paw prints in the needle carpet. And Rhin
must still be burdened with all of Sander's gear. Cautiously, the smith edged
down the river bank, onto a stretch of coarse gravel. He knelt, threw back his
hood to splash chill water over his face. The shock of it brought him
completely awake.
Because he had no other
choice, Sander loosed the whistle the koyot would answer if within voice range.
But, though he listened, there was no yelp, no matter how distant. Only one
thing remained, lying on the pine needles—the knot of iron he had made for the
koyot. Caught in it was a tuft of yellowish fur, as if Rhin, in some agony like
to his own, had pawed it free.
Had Rhin run before the
hounds of the Traders? One hound the koyot could have met fang to fang.
However, if those of the village had loosed their pack in full, it could well
be that the koyot had fled before a collection of enemies he dare not face by
himself.
If so, why had Sander
not been captured by the Traders? His hiding place under the pine was certainly
not so secure a one as to be overlooked by any of their hounds.
Had Rhin gone on a hunt
of his own? Perhaps, but deep inside, Sander doubted that. The smith drew up
his hood once more and lashed it tight. He had his dart thrower, his belt
long-knife—and little else save the clothes he wore, which by now, his nose
told him, should be discarded for fresher ones. His gear, tools, food—all else
had vanished with the koyot.
Sander had no intention
of returning to the Trader village. He might lack the koyot's nose for a guide,
but he had a strong feeling that westward lay the answer. Also such a trail
carried him away from that haunted land where both the amphibians—he warily
glanced at the river, striving to sight any suspicious disturbance of the
water—and the White Ones could lay ambush.
Sander drank deep,
striving so to somewhat satisfy the hunger he felt by filling his empty stomach
with water, then climbed the low bank. There was no sign of any trail, so he
strove to keep the river in sight in order to make sure he was not wandering
heedlessly. Now and again he gave his summoning whistle, hoping against hope
that the koyot would either return or answer.
As the sun grew warmer,
Sander unlaced his hood. Being a plainsborn man, he did not like this wooded
country, thinly set though these trees were. He remembered, with shame for his
own heedlessness, how back by Padford he had thought that the forest could
provide shelter. Now he knew what the tree-shadowed land really held.
So he strode along,
thrower in hand, dart set in the groove ready for firing, his hearing strained
to catch the least sound. A light wind shifted leaves from the trees, and once
or twice Sander caught the call of a bird. But he might have been the only man
crossing a deserted country—until he sighted a streak of mud where a clump of
sod had been pushed aside.
There, in the clay, was
half of a handprint—a small one. Once his eyes were so alerted, he discovered
other indications that here Fanyi must have emerged from the water, slipped on
the clay, and thrown out a hand to support herself. That she had made no
attempt to hide such traces argued to Sander that for some reason the girl had
not feared any pursuit this far from the village. Or else she was now in such a
hurry that haste meant more than concealment.
Realizing that she could
not be too far ahead, he searched for other signs of her passing and found a
few—a broken branch tip, a twisted stem, a smear of leaves scuffed up from last
year's carpet. The trail angled away from the verge of the stream, heading more
to the south where trees grew thicker on upward-sloping ground.
Sander passed through young
woods onto the surface of an ancient road. There was no trace here of the
wreckage that stretched behind. Perhaps in this small pocket of the earth there
had been less havoc wrought during the Dark Time. The road, to be sure, had
breaks in its surface and was drifted over by soil in which grass and weeds,
now fall-dried, rooted. But it was an easy path. In that soil Sander read not
only of the passing of Fanyi and her fishers, but imposed over those in two
places was an unmistakable paw print which could only belong to Rhin! That the
koyot had deserted him to follow the others shook Sander.
He knew that Fanyi
exerted a greater measure of control over the fishers, or perhaps one might say
she was able to communicate more fully with them, than he did with Rhin. But he
would never have believed that the Shaman could have such influence with the koyot
as to deliberately draw the animal away from Sander himself. Unless, he
corrected himself, she saw in this action one way of defeating pursuit.
To discover that Rhin
must have been tolled away only made stronger his own determination to hunt
Fanyi down. He plodded ahead, not with speed, but grimly, not now to be turned
from the way.
Those he followed had
kept to the old road, going openly, as far as he could judge from their tracks,
as if they had no reason to expect pursuit. The road began to climb more
steeply on a grade that nearly equaled the stark heights behind.
Sander was hungry, but
that no longer mattered. Though once, when he came across a place where nuts
were being gathered avidly by bustling squirrels, he picked enough of the
tough-shelled harvest to nearly fill his hood. He paused to crack a few nuts
and munched as he went. Although they tasted good, they were hardly as
satisfying as the stew he had eaten in Kaboss's house, a meal that seemed now
like some long-past dream.
Reaching the crest of
the slope, the smith could look ahead down a long descent. A light haze hung in
the air, yet he did not sniff smoke, only saw that tendrils were clouding the
distance. However, there was no mistaking what did lie directly ahead and to
which the old road ran. Here once more were ruins, yet these had not been
reduced to mere mounds of rubble lacking any sign that said they had once
housed men. Nor were these battered fragments flattened by a storm like the
ones he had viewed yesterday. No, there was enough form left here and there to
reveal distinct structures. It seemed to Sander that, even as he studied the
ruins, an odd haze began to descend upon them, ever thickening to hide more and
more of the structures.
That this must be the
place Fanyi had sought, of that he was convinced. He lengthened his stride,
trotted down the broken road with a desire to reach the ruins as soon as
possible. His aching legs, his empty middle, as well as the westward-reaching
sun told him that the day was fast waning.
As soon as he approached
the ruins closely, he could see that the road was choked in places by barriers
of fallen stone, and no attempt had been made to clear them. In fact, he
spotted several large chunks of metal undisturbed, and wonder grew in him. This
certainly was within easy range of the Trader village. Why had they not come
mining here?
The very fact that such
treasure lay in the open roused his caution. Sander hesitated, searching the
ground for tracks of those he had followed. When he saw nothing, he retraced
his own steps until the claw marks of one of the fishers—Kai's by the size of
it—drew him to the right. There a second road opened, narrower than the other,
which turned north sharply, heading away from the main mass of the ruins.
Trees and bushes narrowed
in, reducing the surface to perhaps a quarter of its original expanse, so the
way was hardly wider than a foot path. But pressed into the leaf mold and soil
there were tracks, clear and deep, openly left to be traced. Fanyi, the
fishers, and Rhin. Sander could not tell whether the koyot had already joined
the girl or was still simply following her.
The roadway curved
twice, then ended in an expanse of pavement that reminded Sander of that on
which the Trader house had been built back in the lost island city. There were
three buildings, or the remains of them, bounding three sides of the square,
the road having led into the fourth. Their windows watched him with hollow eyes
that opened on emptiness.
Sander took one step out
onto that surface and swayed, falling forward to his knees. The pain in his
head, shooting inward from the iron band, was so excruciating that he could
feel nothing but its agony, he could not think at all. Instinct alone made him
throw himself backward. Then he lay gasping from the shock of the pain, though
it was now gone as suddenly as it had struck.
Some time later he
squatted on his heels at the mouth of the road to study the scene before him,
thoroughly baffled. He had fought through tough brush and around trees, making
an outer circuit of the place, only to discover that it was surrounded by an
invisible barrier that could react to his "cold iron" viciously and
instantly, dared he attempt to approach past a certain point.
No legend from the
Rememberer's vast store, no tale of any Trader, mentioned such an experience as
this. There was, as far as he could see, no movement, within that protected
area. Yet Fanyi, the fishers, and Rhin had certainly come this way.
After intent study he
had noted several tracks across the disputed space where he dared not venture
without being literally swept from his feet by a force generating sheer agony
in his head. So he had proof that they were here. But why he could not follow—?
Sander believed he need
only remove his self-wrought protection and step out. But an inner core of
caution argued against any such act. To surrender to the unknown so completely
was not in his nature.
Though he had tried the
same trick he had used on the trail, striving to make his mind dismiss the
onslaught of the pain attack, that did not work here. This force was infinitely
greater, and perhaps his own power to withstand it had been sapped somewhat
during the first bout.
Go—he had to go on, that
he knew. But he could not, wearing the band. His choice was as simple as that.
Nevertheless, his dogged desire to find out what lay behind all this would not
let him retreat. Slowly, with a feeling that he was surrendering to an enemy,
Sander worked the wire circlet loose, stowing it in the front of his outer fur
jacket beside the knot he had made for Rhin.
Rising to his feet, he
approached the open, moving with the caution of a scout in unknown territory,
his weapon ready to hand. Still, he was convinced that what he might find here
could not be brought down by any dart, no matter how well aimed.
Out he went, stopping
where he had been struck down before. For a moment there was nothing—nothing at
all. And then—
Sander stiffened, set
his teeth. That thought—the thought that was not his! Now he had no escape, for
it held him enmeshed as securely as had the web of the forest men. Against his
will, his most fervent desire, he marched forward, straight toward the middle
of the three buildings.
Was this the answer to
Rhin's desertion, to the open trail he had followed? Had Fanyi and all three of
the animals been so compulsively drawn in the same fashion?
Sander wavered as he
went, his will battling against his body in a way he would never have believed
possible. Was this a taste of the "power" Fanyi had so often spoken
of? But he could not believe that the girl he knew generated this.
He was not being
compelled toward the tottering walls of the building after all. Rather, he was
being pointed directly at an opening in the pavement on one side. He could see
that this was not part of the original building, for the edging of the cut,
though fashioned from blocks of stone, was very rough and crudely made in
comparison to the rest of the structures.
The thought of going
underground gave him an additional spurt of strength to battle the will controlling
him, but not enough to break its hold. Nor could he raise his hand to the iron
circlet he had so recklessly put aside.
Sander reached the
crude-faced opening. He could see the end of a ladder, and his body, enslaved
by that other's will, swung over and began to descend. This must have been a
tight fit for Rhin. But undoubtedly the koyot had come this way, for Sander
caught the acrid scent of the animal's body in the enclosed space.
This burrow was not
dark, so there was no need for torches, as Sander saw when he reached the
bottom of the ladder and looked down a corridor. There were cracks across the
plain white walls, but none had split open. Set at intervals along those walls
were rods giving forth a glow of light. Not all of them were burning; several
were twisted and befogged. But enough were in action to give full sight.
Save for those bars of
light, there was nothing else along the hall, not the break of a single door,
while the way appeared to stretch on and on. Only, part way down its length, that
same haze that had half veiled and distorted his view of the city hung again,
so he could not be sure what lay behind it.
He was given no time to
pause, for again his feet moved him forward, passing between the first two bars
of light, heading forward. When he screwed his head around as far as he could
to look back some moments later, Sander discovered that the distorting haze had
closed in behind him even more thickly, so he could no longer see the ladder at
all.
The corridor was wide
enough for half a dozen men at least to march abreast and high enough so that
Rhin would not have had to crawl on his belly to traverse it. The walls had a
slick coating that looked shiny in the subdued light. But the floor, made of small,
closely fitted red blocks, was not slippery.
Sander breathed in air
that was fresh, carrying no such taint as had that of the tunnel under the
city. Now and then he was sure he could detect a faint current against his
cheek.
Then the way ended in a
cross hall, wide and well lighted in the same fashion. This ran both right and
left, its sources hidden by the haze in either direction.
No decision was allowed
to Sander here either. His path was already decided for him. Mechanically, he
swung left and walked steadily ahead.
Though side openings
showed here both right and left, Sander was held to the main passageway.
Eventually he reached the head of a stairway, one again leading down. There was
evidence that some of the ceiling had fallen. Props of metal had been rammed in
place against the walls; beams of the same crossed overhead, supporting cracked
masonry.
Once more Sander
descended. Had some of the Before People waited out the Dark Time in
underground burrows? The stories he had heard of the rending of the earth
itself by quakes could not have made any such plan a safe one. Here in this
broken portion most of the wall lights were dark, leaving only an eerie glow at
intervals. There was no change, except for the cracking in the walls
themselves.
He counted the steps as
he went down—twenty of them. And he could only guess at how deep this way now
lay below the surface of the outer world. The props, rough as they looked
against the remnants of the smooth wall, had been well set and braced. There
had been a great deal of work down here to insure that these passages would
continue to be usable.
By whom? Traders? All
the metal-hunting Sander had seen evidence of had been carried on aboveground.
The fact that so many of these reinforcing beams and braces were made of solid
metal—strong, unblemished metal—made him wonder. To waste such a highly
marketable product was not the way of the Traders.
The mist that had
floated the upper ways was missing here. Instead, where the lights still
existed, the monotony of the corridor showed clearly. The will that was not his
continued to force the smith ahead.
He passed a small
wagon—if wagon it was without a means of harnessing any sort of draft beast.
The object against the wall did have two seats in the front with a smaller
fifth wheel mounted on a post before one of those seats. The thing was
completely wrought of metal.
In his excitement at the
profuse use of a material rarely found in an unbattered, much less uneroded
condition, Sander could almost forget for an instant that he was as much a
prisoner as if his arms had been lashed to his sides and he was being jerked
along by a rope.
The first horror of his
predicament had dulled a little. He no longer struggled uselessly against the
compulsion, rather yielded, conserving his strength, his mind busy with
questions that perhaps never could be answered, but among which might just lie
some suggestion that would serve him later.
No Rememberer's tale had
ever hinted at an unbelievable situation where the will of another could take
over the rule of a man's body, compel him to action. But the knowledge that a
Rememberer carried from the Before Days was admittedly only fragmentary.
Sander's people had not
even been natives of this part of the world in that legendary time. Therefore,
they might not have known what was being accomplished elsewhere. That someone
could activate very old machines, such as the wagon he had just passed—yes,
that he could accept without question. For the work of one man's hands might be
repaired with patience and the proper tools. It was that very hope of
accomplishment that had brought him north.
But the tampering with
another's thoughts—that was another matter. To him such an invasion by mind was
as alien as the monster on the ancient island. He decided now he had but one
possible chance—to allow whatever force was summoning him now to believe that
he was wholly docile, until he could learn what lay behind his capture.
The wall braces were no
longer in evidence. Sander had passed beyond the section of corridor that had
been threatened. Here the walls showed no cracks at all under the lights, none
of which were dark here, all glowing equally. By their light Sander saw a
doorway at the end of the hall, with further radiance beyond it.
Then he heard something—Rhin's
sharp bark! The sound was the same the koyot always gave when greeting Sander
after any absence. In this much he had been right—the koyot was waiting for
him. He stepped through the door and blinked, for the light within was far
greater than that which had lined the corridor.
He found himself in a
room of medium size, but an odd room, for the side walls ended just above the
level of his head, sprouting pillars to rise farther, ending against the
ceiling far above. The room was empty and without any break in the walls at
all, save that door through which he had just entered. Yet he was sure that it
was only part of a much larger space.
At that moment the
compulsion that had led him here vanished with the swiftness of one snap of a
dry stick. Yet Sander was sure that, should he try to retrace his way, he would
not be allowed to do so.
He had heard Rhin's
bark, and it had come from this direction. Therefore, there must be a way out
of this room, leading beyond. Methodically, Sander turned to the nearest wall.
Though his eyes could detect not the faintest line of any opening, he began
running his fingertips over the slick surface. Squatting down, he began a
search upward from floor level, rising up to stretch his arms near to the wall
top in a careful sweep of touch.
The construction was not
of any stone that he had ever known, for this surface was smoother than any
rock could be worked. And it was chill to the touch. Yet in some places he
chanced upon a slight radiated warmth. Some of those spots were hardly larger
than the fingertips exploring them; he could span others with a flattened palm.
And they occurred only
on the wall directly facing the door, he discovered, after he had made a
complete circuit of the small chamber. Since these were all he had found,
Sander returned to them, tracing their positions carefully.
Hands—they were set in
hand patterns! If one laid one's palm so, fitting into the larger space, then
one's finger tips just touched the small spots if the fingers were spread as
wide apart as possible. One hand was directly right and one left, but to fit
them properly one had to stand with one's body pressed to the wall, arms
extended to the farthest limit. Sander took that position and pressed his flesh
into the warmth of those invisible holds.
Heat flared. He had wit
enough not to snatch away his hands. In a second he knew that this radiation
was not as hot as it first seemed. But he was equally startled when a
disembodied voice spoke out of the air overhead, as if some invisible presence
now stood directly behind him.
What it said was
gibberish for the most part. But to his vast amazement Sander grasped words out
of the smith's chant, words that were the deep secret of his own trade. There
was an interval of silence, and once more the same stream of sounds was
uttered.
Sander moistened his
lips with his tongue. A—smith—? One of his own calling? Well, he could
only try. With his hands still on those hot areas, he raised his own voice, to
send, echoing hollowly through the space, the work chant, that which contained
those words he was sure he had heard.
And the wall—the wall
turned! The section of flooring on which his boots were planted swung with it,
completely around, carrying him to the other side. This was so far different
from all his past experiences that he could not move for a long moment or take
his hands away from the wall that had behaved in so improbable fashion, to look
about and see where it had transported him.
Shivering a little, the
smith forced himself to face around. He stood in another room, perhaps slightly
larger than the first. However this one was not bare. There was a table with a
top clear as glass, only he had never seen any fragment of glass so large. Its
legs were fashioned of metal tubes. There were two stools fashioned of the same
material, clear-topped, metal-legged.
In the corner of the
table rested a box about the length of his full arm, the width of his forearm.
While on the top of that a number of small knobs were raised, each of a
different coloring or shading of coloring. Again there was no door. And when he
ran his hands over the wall that had so unceremoniously delivered him here, he
could no longer locate those warm places for his hands.
Baffled, he approached
the table cautiously. On the small surface of each box knob there was a
marking, akin, Sander was sure, to that "writing" Fanyi boasted she
knew. But the purpose of the box he could not guess. Gingerly he bent over it
to study those knobs. Perhaps this controlled another door; anything was
possible here. He no longer doubted that Fanyi had discovered the end of her
quest. There were certainly marvels gathered in this place unlike any found in
the outer world.
One line of knobs was
red, shading from a very dark crimson to near pink. The second rank displayed
shades of green, the third yellow, the last brown, which ended in one near white.
Sander touched each line very lightly. No heat here. But that this had an
important purpose he did not in the least doubt. And he wondered gloomily how
many combinations of the various colors could be worked out.
Since the compulsion had
released him, he felt very tired, and he was hungry enough to ache with the
emptiness. Unless he could somehow force this box to yield its secret, he might
well be a prisoner here indefinitely. How long did it take a man to starve to
death?
Stubbornly, he refused
to be beaten now. If the way through another wall lay with this machine, then
he was going to find it!
Begin with the first
row—then the second, then combine—pushing the buttons on those two in every
pattern he could think of. After that try the third and the fourth rows. Sander
did not allow himself to be shaken by the thought that what he would try might
take hours of effort.
He seated himself on one
of the stools and leaned forward, exerting strong pressure with his forefinger
on the first button in the red row. He was halfway down the line when there was
a response. But it was not the one he hoped for. No wall slid aside, rose or
sank into the flooring. Instead the button, upon pressure, snapped down level
with the surface of the machine and did not rise again.
Sander looked hopefully
at the walls hemming him in, no longer intent upon the box itself. Therefore,
it was only at the sound of a click that drew his eyes back to it. An opening
appeared in one end, from which slid a brown square, and then another, both
about the length of his little finger. Now the button flashed up again into
line with its fellows while Sander stared questioningly at the two objects
lying on the table.
It was the odor arising
from them that startled him the most. Meat, roasted to a turn over a fire under
the care of a most attentive cook. But why—what—how?
Warily he picked up the
nearest square. It was warm—having the texture of perfectly browned crust. He
could no longer resist the odor and recklessly bit into the biscuit-like offering.
As it crunched between
his teeth, he could not have truly named it. Was it a kind of bread? No, for
the taste was like its scent—that of well-done meat. Yet it was plainly not
the roast both smell and taste proclaimed it.
And though it might be
loaded with some drug or fatal herb, Sander could not have refused to finish it
after that first taste, any more than he could have, in his present state of
dire hunger, thrown a grilled fish from him. He finished the biscuit in two
bites and eagerly bit into the second.
Oddly enough, though the
morsels were small, two of them gave him a feeling of repletion, though they
added to his thirst. Now he eyed the remaining untried buttons, wondering if
this box also had an answer for that need.
He went at the matter methodically.
Another red button gave him a bar, darker brown, but of somewhat the same
consistency of the square, which smelled like baked fish. The green line
produced three different wafers, unlike in shades. These he put aside with the
fish bar. The yellow had only one button in working order. But after pressing
it, the box offered him a small cup of some thin, shiny material that was
filled to the brim with a semi-soft, pale cream substance. A touch of his
tongue informed him that this was sweet. The last row—at the next to the last
button—slid out to his hand a slightly larger shiny cup, a lid of the same
substance creased tightly over it. When he had worked that off, Sander held a
measure, not of water, but of a liquid with an aromatic odor he had never
smelled before. He gulped it down though it was hot. Like the cream stuff, it
was sweet to the taste but it slaked his thirst.
Carefully, he put the
fish bar and the wafers inside his coat. The cream substance, for want of any
spoon, he licked clean of its container.
Would the same knobs
work again, providing him with extra provisions? Once more he tried the same
combination of pressed knobs, but no more supplies appeared. Did it only then
work once? Had there in the beginning been food delivered from each of those
buttons—but now that abundance had failed through the long seasons, so only
these were left—and perhaps he had exhausted the last of what the box had to
offer?
The thing was a machine
of some kind, of course, but how it worked he could not guess. It was certainly
too small to hide, within its interior, supplies to be cooked and offered.
Sander got down on the floor, looking up through the transparent surface of the
table at the box's underside. But it was entirely solid.
He was no longer hungry
or thirsty, but he was still a prisoner. The stool on which he sat—if it were
moved against the wall, would it give him extra height so he might reach the
top of the partition?
When he tried to shove
it, he found that it could only be drawn back from the vicinity of the table
far enough for some one to be seated, no farther.
Sander shrugged. He
suspected there were no short cuts here. It would require patience and all the
wit he possessed to learn the secrets of these rooms. Rhin—if he could win an
answer from the koyot, he would at least know in which direction he must
advance, which of the three walls was the barrier to be crossed.
He whistled, and the
sound seemed doubly loud and strong. Listening, he could hear nothing but his
own faster breathing. Then—from afar—came the yelp. However, it was so echoed
within the area, he could not pinpoint the direction.
Once more he began a
patient and exhaustive search of the wall surface. He knew what to look for
now. Only this combing of the walls was fruitless. No warm spots were to be
found, even though he made that sweep twice.
Finally Sander returned
to the table, flung himself on the stool and rested his elbows on the surface,
which supported the box, holding his head in his hands as he tried
systematically to think the problem through. There were none of those
mysterious handholds on the walls, that he would swear to. He had leaped
several times, trying to catch at the top of the same barriers. But so slick
was the coating there, his hands slipped from any grip he tried to exert.
Then—how did he get out?
For Sander was very
certain that there was a way out of this room, doubtless one as cleverly hidden
as those handholds had been. What was the purpose of this place? It seemed that
whoever had constructed it—unless that mind was either entirely alien or
warped—had intended to make it difficult for any one to travel through. The
situation, Sander decided, looked like some kind of testing.
Testing—he considered
that idea and concluded that such an answer fitted what small facts he knew.
The purpose of the testing, unless it was to gauge the imagination or
intelligence of the captive, he could not now know. But its former purpose was
immaterial, it was how he might confront the problems offered him now that
mattered.
So far, by trial and
error and the use of what he considered good sense, he had solved two problems.
He had found the first door and he had supplied himself with food and drink.
Both of those answers had merely required persistence and patience. Now he was
faced with that one that demanded more in the way of experimentation.
The walls were sealed,
and he believed any attempt to scale them would be useless. So—what did that
leave? The floor!
Again he thought that he
could be better served by his sense of touch than his sight. Sander slipped
from the stool to his hands and knees, and selecting the nearest corner, he
searched that carefully before he started out, sweeping inch by inch across the
pavement which, though not quite as smooth as the walls, was uniformly level.
First he made a circuit around the base of the four walls, hoping to find at
one of them the release he was convinced lay somewhere.
Failing any such
discovery, he launched farther into the middle of the room. It was only when he
realized that he had entirely swept the whole of that surface that he sat down,
with his back to that impenetrable wall, to again consider what he termed the
facts of his case.
He had entered through
that wall, the one now directly opposite to him. But the hidden latch there was
plainly unresponsive to any return. He had searched the three other barriers,
and the floor. Nothing.
Dully he leaned his head
back against the wall at his back and forced himself once more to consider that
room. There were four walls, a floor, high above his head a ceiling that the
walls did not reach. There was the table, the box that had fed him, two stools
that could not be moved far enough to aid in any climbing.
Table—stools—box— He had
explored everything else. Did the secret lie in the center of the chamber after
all? Excited by hope, he got up. Neither stool could be shifted any more than
his first try had proven. And the knobs—surely they were meant for food
delivery, not as he first conceived, for operating some device of the walls. Now—the
table.
Despite his strongest
efforts, he could not shift it even a fraction of an inch. The metal legs,
though they appeared to rest on the surface of the floor, might well be
embedded in it for all the good his pushing and pulling did.
Table, stools, box—
Once more Sander
subsided on the stool to think. The patterned colors of the knobs were before
him—red, green, yellow, brown—Red, since the beginning of time had registered
with his species as a signal of power—of danger. It was the red of a fire that
destroyed if it could not be curbed, of the flush that anger brought to a man's
face.
Green soothed the eyes.
That was the color of growing things—of life. Yellow—yellow was gold, treasure,
sunshine, also a kind of power, but less destructive than red. Brown—brown was
earth—a thing to be worked with, not that would work of itself.
Why was he wasting his
time considering the meaning of colors? He had to find the way out—he had to!
Still, he could not
break his intent stare at the rows—red, green, yellow, brown. They provided
food; they were useless for his other need.
Brown—yellow of the gold
hidden in the earth—green of the things that grew on it—red—of fire that could
lick earth bare of life. Somehow a pattern began to weave in his mind, though
he tried to drive such foolishness out, to think constructively of what he must
do. But were such thoughts foolish? Fanyi would say no, he supposed, her belief
in her Shaman powers being such she was able to accept without doubt strange
vagaries of the mind. Sander had never believed—really believed—in anything he
could not see, touch, taste, hear for himself.
Still, on this journey
he had already met with that which could not be measured by the senses. As a
smith he labored with his hands, but what he so wrought was first a picture in
his mind, so that he followed a pattern no other man might see. Thus he, too,
in a way dealt with the intangible.
Should he after all his
experiences of these past hours now refuse to use imagination when that might
be the one key to defeat the walls? That voice from the air that had addressed
him earlier had used a smith's words. True, they had been intermingled with
others Sander could not understand, but he was certain of those few. He must
take that as an omen of sorts and now trust his guesses, no matter how wild
they might seem.
"Brown," he
spoke aloud, and thumbed the darkest of the buttons on that row.
"Gold." He sought out the brightest there, one that reminded him most
of molten metal as it ran, fiery swift, into a mold. "Green." Not the
dark top one there, but one halfway down the row, which was most akin to the
fresh growth of early spring. "Red." And this one was that shade a
dancing flame might own.
A grating noise sounded.
One wall broke apart as a panel pulled upward, leaving a narrow space open.
Somehow Sander was not even surprised. He had had the feeling as he pressed the
buttons in his chosen order that he had indeed solved another small segment of
a mystery.
Now he walked forward
with some confidence, passing through the opening to face once more the
unknown.
This was not another
room as he had expected, rather a narrow corridor boxed in by blank walls.
Sander strode along with that new confidence his solving of the door code had
given him. Nor was he surprised when, as he approached the far end of the way,
a section of the blank expanse facing him rolled aside without any effort on
his part.
Sound filtered from
beyond. There was a hum, a clicking, other noises. Once more he slowed, trying
to judge what he might have to face. Sander had an idea that whoever used this
strange maze was not one to be easily bested or even menaced by either weapon
he carried. The dart thrower and his long knife were as far removed from the
things he had seen as those weapons in turn were from some unworked stone
snatched up by a primitive being to do battle.
Making his decision, he
fitted the thrower back into its shoulder case to step through that second
portal empty-handed. An increased glare of light made him blink. Nor could he
begin to understand what he saw—webbings of metal, of glass, squat bases from
which those webs grew, the flashing of small lights.
Among all this there was
one familiar sight. Rhin bounded toward him, giving voice to yelps that meant
welcome in such a crescendo of sudden sound that spoke the koyot's vast relief
at Sander's arrival.
The animal's rough
tongue rasped across Sander's cheek. He himself clutched the loose hide across
Rhin's shoulders. In all this strangeness the koyot was a tie with a world
Sander knew well.
At that moment, once
more he heard the voice out of the air. This time he could not understand even
a few words of its gabble. The machines, if these rods sprouting webbing were
machines, stood about the walls, leaving the center of the area free. Sander
advanced into that, one hand still resting on Rhin's back. There was nothing in
this place that was in the least familiar though he was forced to marvel at the
workmanship of the installations.
What was their purpose?
Now that he could see those lines in their entirety, he was also aware that not
all of them glowed. In fact, on a few of the the heavy bases the remains of
webbing lay in broken fragments. From others issued a pitch of sound that made
him flinch and the koyot yelp in protest as they passed them.
But there was no sign of
any living creature. Sander raised his voice to call Fanyi's name. There was no
answer, save the clatter and drone of the machines.
"Who are you?"
For the first time then he dared the Voice to answer. It did not reply.
With Rhin beside him,
glancing quickly from right to left, half expecting a challenger to arise from
behind an installation, Sander crossed the room. There was a second archway,
beyond which he found quite a different scene. Here, the center of a large
chamber was occupied by an oval space surrounded by two similarly curved lines
of cushioned chairs. The oval itself was sunk below the surface of the floor
and filled with what Sander, at first glance, thought was a remarkably still
pool of water. Then he realized that this was also glass or some equally
transparent material.
Leaving Rhin, the smith
pushed between two of the chairs which he found to be firmly fastened in
position. He stood gazing down at that dull glassy surface, dark blue in color.
Sander was sure that, like the food box, it had some highly significant use.
The whole arrangement of this room suggested that people had once gathered here
to sit in these chairs, to look down onto that surface.
It was not a mirror,
for, though he stood at its very edge, it did not reflect his image. Nor were
there any of those knobs along it, which the food box had displayed. Slowly, he
went from chair to chair, until he reached the one at the left-hand curve of the
oval. There, for the first time, he noted a difference. This chair had very
broad arms studded with buttons, each bearing some of those symbols Fanyi had
called letters.
Slowly, Sander lowered
himself into that seat. It was very comfortable, almost as if the chair
instantly adjusted itself to his form. He studied the knobs. They had something
to do with the glass surface just beyond the toes of his worn boots, he was
sure. But what?
There were two rows of
them on each of the wide arms, arranged for the ease of anyone resting his
elbows on those supports and stretching out his hands naturally. There was only
one way to learn—and that was by action. He brought the forefinger of his right
hand down on the nearest button.
There came no response,
to his disappointment. But it was only only one button—perhaps like so much
else, it had ceased to function over the long years. He could hope that enough
remained active to give him some idea of why men had gathered here to watch a
dull-surfaced and non-reflective mirror.
Methodically, he pressed
the next button in line with no better response. But a third gave him an
amazing answer. Points of light appeared on the mirror, lines glowing like
quickly running fire came to life, outlining large patches, irregular in size
and shape. Sander leaned forward eagerly, tried to make some meaning of the
display.
There were four—no
five—large outlined shapes there. Two were united by a narrow, curved string,
the other two larger shapes had a firmer junction. There were also smaller ones
here and there, some near to the larger, others scattered farther away. The
brilliant points of light were, in turn, strewn by no orderly method over the
outlined patches.
Regretfully, though he
studied it hungrily, Sander could deduce no possible meaning. He pressed the
next button and the pattern flashed off. New lines moved, assembled in another
quite different form. Only the bright points of light now totally vanished, and
many of the outlines of the patches were blurred and weak.
"Our world—"
Sander swung around, his
hand already reaching for the hilt of his long knife. He did not need Rhin's
growls to alert him, though for a moment he wondered why the koyot had not
given earlier warning. This voice had not come, disembodied, out of the air. Those
two words had been spoken by a man, a man who hobbled forward, watching Sander
as warily as the smith eyed him.
The stranger was not an
attractive sight. Once tall, he was now stoop-shouldered and bow-backed. His
overthin arms and legs were emphasized, as was his swollen belly, by the fact
that he wore a gray garment made to cling tightly. His head was covered with
stiff, whitish bristle, as if the dome of his skull had been first shaven and
then allowed to sprout hair again for an inch or so. A long upper lip carried a
thin thatch of the same wiry growth, but his seamed face was otherwise free of
beard. What skin showed—only his face and knobby-fingered hands—was so pale a
color as to resemble that of the White Ones, yet it also had a grayish cast.
In one hand he held a
tube that Sander believed was a weapon. He kept it carefully pointed at the
smith in spite of trembling in his hands so severe that at times he had to
strengthen one hand's grip with the aid of the other. And for any armament that
might match the surroundings of this place, the smith already had a hearty
respect.
"Our world,"
the apparition in gray said for the second time, and then coughed rackingly.
Sander heard a whine
from Rhin and glanced in the direction of the koyot. The animal, whom he had
seen charge even a herd bull and keep that formidable beast busy until the
riders of the Mob could rope it, was crouching to the floor as if he had been
beaten. And at the sight of that Sander's temper flared.
"What have you done
to Rhin!"
The stranger grinned.
"The animal has learned a lesson. I am Maxim—no beast shall show teeth to
me. Be warned, boy, be warned! I have"—he made a gesture to embrace
perhaps more than the room they were now in—"such powers at my command as
you poor barbarians outside cannot even dream of! I am Maxim, of the Chosen
Ones. There were those who foresaw, who prepared—We, we alone saved all that
was known to man! We alone!" His voice scaled up thinly with a note in it
that brought another whine out of Rhin and disturbed Sander. The smith thought
that the line between sanity and madness already had been crossed by this
twisted man.
"Yes, yes!"
the other continued. "We preserved, we endured, we are the only
intelligence, the only civilization left. Barbarian—look well at me—I am Maxim!
There is here"—with one knotty finger he tapped the front of his
head—"more knowledge than you could hope to gain in two of your limited
life times. You think to steal that now? There is no way—it is locked
here." Again finger thumped forehead. "You cannot even understand
what you lack—so reduced is your species. You are not human as were the Before
Men—!"
His babble grew more and
more strident. Sander had only to look at Rhin to realize that this madman had
formidable weapons, and he did not doubt that the other was equally ready to
turn them on anyone or thing he might encounter. What had happened to Fanyi and
the fishers? This must be the storage place she had sought, of that Sander was
sure. But had she met this Maxim and paid for it? As his anger had been aroused
by the sight of Rhin cowed by this mockery of a true man, so it was heightened
by a mental picture of Fanyi perhaps meeting death at his hands.
"What want
you?" Maxim demanded now. "What have you come to ask of Maxim? Ways
of killing? I can show you such as will melt your mind with horror. We knew
them, yes, we knew them all! There are diseases one can sow among the
unknowing, so that they die like poisoned insects. We can keep alive a man's
body to serve us, but destroy his will, even his thinking mind. We can blast a
city from the earth by pressing a single button. We are masters. This place, it
is of our planning, for we knew that some must be saved, that our civilization
must live. And it was preserved, and we did live—"
His voice trailed into
silence, the animation faded from his unhealthy face. For a moment he looked
lost and empty as if he himself had been the victim of one of the
mind-destroying weapons he had described.
"We live," he
repeated. "We live longer than any man has done before. And after us our
children live—How old do you think I am, barbarian?" he demanded.
Sander refused to make a
guess that might be wrong, one that would arouse the ill will of this mad
creature.
"Each people,"
he chose his words cautiously, "has its own norm of life span. I cannot
tell yours."
"Of course
not!" The man's head wobbled in a nod. "I am one of the Children. I
have lived near two hundred of the years by which men used to reckon."
Which might even be
true, Sander decided. How many more of these inheritors of what seemed the
worst of the Before Men's knowledge still existed?
"Near two hundred
years," Maxim repeated. "I was wise, you see. I knew better than to
risk my life going out into the dead world, mixing with the barbarians. I told
them they were doing wrong. Lang, I told Lang what would happen." He
laughed. "And I was right. Barbarian, do you know how Lang died? Of a pain
in his belly—of something that a minor operation would have cured. She told me
that—she who said she was Lang's daughter. Of course she lied. No one of us
would mate with a barbarian. She lied, but I could not deal with her for her
lies because she had Lang's own transmitter.
"We were programmed
from the first so there would be no quarrels among us. We were such a small
number then—and it might be that we would be sealed here in this complex for
generations. So there must be no quarrels, no misunderstandings. All of us had
the transmitters for our own protection. You see, barbarian, how everything was
arranged? How there could be no trouble we were not equipped to handle?
"And the children.
Like Lang, they had their transmitters from birth. It was all so carefully
thought out. The Big Brain in the sealed chamber—it knew everything. It knows
everything. It has not made any contact for a time now. There is no need, of
course. I, Maxim, I know all that is necessary."
"This girl who told
you of Lang's death"—Sander had no doubt there was a reference to
Fanyi—"where is she now?"
Maxim laughed. "She
lied to me, you know. No one must lie to Maxim. I can see a man's thoughts if I
wish. I can see your thoughts, barbarian! When she came, I knew there would be
others. I used the—" He stopped again and eyed Sander warily. "I brought
you here, barbarian. It was amusing, very amusing. There were the old testing
rooms, and it was of interest to see you working your way through. She did not
have to do that—not with Lang's transmitter. But you showed a certain cunning,
not human, but amusing, you know. I had to have you here. The rest of your
kind—they want my treasures—but they can be stopped. Since you came through my
barriers, I knew I must get you all the way to be safe."
"I am here,"
Sander pointed out. "But the girl—what did you do with her?"
"Do with her?"
The laugh degenerated into a giggle. "Why, I did nothing, nothing at all.
There was no need to. The Big Brain has its own defenses. I listened to her,
pointed her in the right direction, and let her go. There was no need at all
for me to concern myself farther. She was even grateful to me. I—" That
same tinge of bewilderment crossed his pouched and flabby face. "There was
something about her. But, no, no barbarian can have any trait that Maxim cannot
master! To control beasts—that I can do too. See how this mangy creature of
yours fears me. Now the problem is—how to make you useful. You have no
transmitter, so, of course, you can be mastered."
"But I have!"
Why he claimed that, Sander did not know. But he was certain that he must make
some move of his own to face up to this caricature of a man.
"You cannot!"
The man's tone was petulant as that of a stubborn child. "Lang was the
last to go forth. He left me, in spite of what I told him over and over, he
left me! He was stupid, really. Being the youngest of the children, the
breeding must have worn thin in his generation. And Lang had only one
transmitter. They do not last long—not more than fifty years or so. Then they
have to be recharged. So yours, if you do have one, is inoperable. It would be
that of Robar perhaps. And he went longer ago than Lang. Do not try to trick
me, barbarian! Remember, I am Maxim and the knowledge of the Before Time is all
mine!"
"I will show
you." Carefully Sander reached for the front of his outer coat. He saw
that tube in the other's hand center on him, but he had to take this chance. He
brought out the band of woven wire.
Maxim cackled.
"That is no transmitter, barbarian! You are indeed no more intelligent
than this beast. A transmitter! You do not even know what the word means. She
did not know. She thought it magic—magic such as the superstitious savage plays
with! And now you show me a mass of wire and call it a transmitter!"
Daring to provoke some
action from Maxim, Sander again fitted the band around his head. Perhaps it
would serve his purpose now if this survivor of the Before Men judged him as he
had judged Fanyi—childlike and superstitious.
"It is cold
iron," he said solemnly. "And I am one of those who fashion iron, so
that it obeys me." He began the smith's chant.
A flicker of faint
interest answered him. "That—that is a formula," Maxim observed.
"But it is not right, you know. This is the way it should be." His
voice took on something of a Rememberer's twang as he recited words. "Now
that is the right of it. So you hoard scraps of the old learning after all, do
you, barbarian? But what is cold iron? That expression has no meaning
whatsoever! And—I have wasted enough time. Come, you!"
He pressed one of the
spots along the side of his tube. Instantly Sander swung partly forward, pulled
by the same compulsion that had brought him here. But his hands tightened on
the arms of the chair.
Iron—cold iron. His
smith's belief in the Old Knowledge—belittled as it had been by Maxim—that was
the only weapon he had left.
He concentrated on
holding to the chair, setting his teeth against the pain of the iron heating
about his forehead. No—no—and NO!
Maxim's face contracted,
flushed. His mouth fell open, showing his pale tongue and teeth that were worn
and yellow.
"You will
come!" he screeched.
Sander clung to the
chair arms. The misery of that struggle within him was fast approaching a level
where he could no longer bear it, he would have to surrender. And if he did,
then he would be lost. He did not know why he was sure of that, only that he was.
The air between him and
Maxim was aglow. Sander held on to the chair so fiercely his grip deadened all
feeling in his fingers. His head was afire. He must—
A tawny shape arched
through the air, paws thudding home on Maxim's hunched shoulders. The thin man
was slammed down and back against the pavement to lie still with Rhin's
forepaws planted on him and the koyot's muzzle aiming for the old man's throat.
As the tube spiraled out
of Maxim's grip, the intolerable pressure on Sander winked out. He managed to
croak out an order to Rhin not to kill. He could not allow the koyot to savage
the other in cold blood. After all the man was mad and he was old. And what was
most important now was to find Fanyi and warn her. Into what kind of trap Maxim
had sent the girl, Sander could not guess. But he suspected that the end of it
was death in one form or other.
He used part of his rope
to bind Maxim. Then he raised the skinny body to put it into one of the chairs,
again making fast more binding.
Finished, Sander turned
to Rhin:
"Find Fanyi!"
he ordered.
The koyot still faced
the unconscious Maxim, growls rippling from his throat as if he had no other
wish than to make an end to him. Sander came over, slapped the animal's
shoulder and reached up to tug at an ear.
"Fanyi!" he
repeated.
Even in this place the
girl's scent must lie somewhere, and Rhin was the best tracker he had ever
known. With a last threatening growl, the koyot looked from Maxim to Sander. He
whined and nudged at the smith's shoulder. The animal's puzzlement was clear to
read. Rhin saw no reason to leave Maxim alive; his reasoning was sensible. But
at the same time Sander could not bring himself to kill the now helpless man or
to let Rhin do it for him.
One might kill in
defense of his own life or to protect those he had some kinship with. He would
confront the amphibians, as he had, or the White Ones and feel no qualms as he
watched his darts go home. That abomination they had faced in the forest glade,
or the monster on the once-island—those were such horrors as aroused Sander's
deepest fear. But it was not in him to put an end to this flaccid being roped
into the chair, held in place only by the bonds Sander himself had set.
Sander stooped and
picked up the rod Maxim had dropped. There were five dots along its side. But
he had no idea what forces it controlled nor any desire to experiment with it.
What was important now was time, to find Fanyi before she blundered into full
disaster.
"Fanyi!" For
the third time Sander repeated her name, waving Rhin away from their captive.
The koyot barked once
and came. He rounded the oval and seats and kept straight ahead, Sander
trotting at a brisk pace to match his guide's. Rhin moved with such purpose
Sander believed the koyot knew exactly which way they must go. Perhaps the
animal had even witnessed the girl being set on her way by the malicious,
ancient guardian of this place.
Sander could not accept
that Maxim was the only inhabitant of this hideaway. Though the other had
mentioned only two names, both of the men now dead, that did not mean that all
the colony meant to outlast the Dark Times had entirely vanished. Nor was the
smith sure, after witnessing the confrontation between Rhin and Maxim at their
first meeting, that the koyot would give him any alarm. It was only because
Maxim had been so intent on taking Sander that Rhin had had a chance to rebel.
They threaded a way
through rooms and halls opening one into another. Some were filled with
installations, some were plainly meant for living, with divans and various
pieces of oddly shaped and massive furniture.
Sander paused once when
he came to another chamber where a food machine sat. This was larger than the
one that had occupied the room to the forepart of this maze, with more numerous
rows of buttons. Sander used his fingertips confidently and produced more
rounds, wafers, and cups of water, not only to feed Rhin and himself, but to
carry as extra rations in his food bag and water bottle. How a machine could
produce food apparently from nothing was a mystery, but the results were tasty,
not only for man but for koyot also. And Sander was more satisfied in results
and less interested in means at the moment.
Rhin pattered on until
they passed from a last grouping of rooms into another long hall, one with the same
smooth walling and bars of dim light, though here all those were lit. The air
remained fresh, with a faint current now and then. Sander continued to marvel
at all the knowledge that must have lain behind the building and equipping of
this refuge.
Sometime he would like
to return once more to that room with the pool of glass and see the strange
outlines that could be summoned to appear there. If Maxim had been right that
the second series of pictures showed their world as it now was, then the
earlier series must have been the world of the Before Days.
Sander carried with him
a memory of the vast changes in those lines. But if the alteration had been so
great, then how had this particular series of burrows managed to survive
practically intact. He could understand that the inhabitants, once they had
survived the worst of the world-wide changes, had their own methods of
protecting themselves against the looting of any wandering band that approached
their outer gate. But he could not conceive of a protection strong enough to
stand against the fury of earthquakes, volcanoes, and disrupted seas.
This hall seemed to
continue forever. Now and again Rhin dropped nose to the floor, followed by one
of his small yelps. They were on their way, the right way—to where?
At the end of the
passage, a ramp led downward again. The bars of light were fewer here; thick
patches of shadow lay between each. At first the slope was gradual and then it
grew steeper. It would seem that whatever the Before Men wished to hide here they
had buried deeply to insure that it would not be disturbed by any upheaval of
the earth.
Nor was the air as good.
This supply had an acrid smell leading Sander to cough now and then. He
remembered Maxim's threat—that what Fanyi had come this way to seek had it own
defenses, an idea that made him proceed with added caution. What had Maxim
called it—the Great Brain? Could a machine think? Sander wished he had
paid stricter attention to the Rememberers. Had any of their tales ever hinted
at such?
Just as Sander thought
that they would continue to descend forever, deeper and deeper into the heart
of the world, the ramp straightened out. Here the glow of the wall lights was
dimmed by films of long-deposited dust. Underfoot, he shuffled over a velvety
carpet of the same. However, it was disturbed by prints. Even in this subdued
light Sander caught sight of the fishers' claw-tipped tracks and boot
impressions only Fanyi could have left.
It was colder here. He
drew up his hood, tightened its string. He could see his breath in small frosty
puffs on that too-still air. Rhin fell back, his muzzle on a line now with
Sander's shoulder, no longer ranging ahead. Now and then the koyot uttered
faint whines of uneasiness.
There was movement in
the shadows ahead. Sander came to a halt, freeing his dart thrower, having
thrust the weapon he took from Maxim into his belt. Rhin growled, then gave an
excited warning yelp. The answer was a clanging sound that had no kinship to
anything Sander had ever heard, unless it was the ring of a light hammer
against metal.
The thing that trundled
forward, weaving in and out of those patches of wall light, was not a living
creature. It could not be. It reminded Sander of a round kettle such as the Mob
used for a fall feasting. The thing moved on rollers, set beneath its surface,
at a steady, though slow, pace. But what erupted from the kettle made Sander
wary. For it sprouted a series of waving, jointed arms, all of seemingly
different lengths, and they ended in huge claws with formidable teeth. These
arms were in constant motion, sweeping the floor, or scraping along the walls,
while the claws clashed open and shut. The thing was an opponent no dart could
bring down, no matter how skillful the aim might be.
Rhin uttered a series of
heavy growls, pushed past Sander to snap at the trundling metal thing. But the
koyot kept well beyond the reach of the arms that now swung toward him. The
clatter of the claws grew louder as they opened and shut faster and faster.
The koyot danced just
beyond the extreme limit of the arms, snapping in return, but always
retreating. Sander reached for the rod he had taken from Maxim. If this weapon
had any power, it could be their only chance against a moving machine.
Still holding the more
familiar dart thrower in his left hand, the smith sighted along the tube, which
he now cradled in his right, then he brought his thumb hard against the side.
But not before he whistled Rhin back out of range, for he could not be sure
what was going to happen in that attack.
A beam of light shot out
past the koyot, to catch the kettle shape dead center. For a moment there
seemed to be no effect. Sander began to stumble backwards, Rhin once more
beside him, for those flailing arms with their trap claws clattered in a
snapping whirlwind toward them.
Then, where the beam was
touching that swell of metal, there appeared a spot that grew deeper and deeper
red. The ray appeared to be burning into the thing's body. But the moving
machine showed no discomfort; if anything, its rush toward them speeded up. One
of those clutching set of claws caught on a dusty light pillar, tightened, and
crushed it with the ease of a knife slicing through a meal cake.
Sander whistled again to
the koyot, signaling retreat. He wanted to turn and run, but if this Before
Weapon was to be stopped, he must go slowly and keep the rod steady, eating in
upon the same glowing spot.
A darker heart grew in
that circle now. The force of the focused light must have eaten through the
outer casing of the creature. Sander held the beam steady, backing away, trying
to match his retreat to the pace of the thing's forward roll.
Then—there came a flash
of light so intense and searing that he was blinded. Crying out, he grasped for
Rhin. He could see nothing, but his hold upon the koyot pulled him back until
his heels hit the end of the ramp that had brought them here. Only then was he aware
that the rumble, the clashing sound, which the thing had made, was stilled. It
must at least have been stopped by the ray.
Still Sander retreated
farther, partway up the ramp, blinking his eyes, striving to regain his sight.
The fear that the explosion of light might have indeed blinded him was a terror
that he flinched from facing.
Rhin pulled free from
the smith's hold, padded away in spite of Sander's voice commands. He heard a
clatter and the growling of the koyot. Then Rhin bounded back, nudged Sander
with his shoulder.
Warm metal brushed the
smith's hand. He put his weapon away, groped outward until his hands closed
upon a jointed rod. He felt it with his fingers and found on the end of it a
claw frozen well apart.
He had put the
thing out of action! But his elation at that fact was tempered by his
blindness. What if—if he was never to see again!
Sander put the thought
firmly out of his mind. The crawling thing had been stopped. And there was no
need to retreat again. He had Rhin—the koyot would give him warning if any more
such disputed their road. Better go forward than skulk back into the intricate
complex where he had left Maxim. Let the madman discover that Sander was in any
way helpless and he would have no defenses.
Taking a tight grip on
the lashings of Rhin's harness, he moved forward. His confidence was heightened
as he began to capture, if dimly, a small suggestion of light to one side. He
must be sighting one of the wall lamps.
Rhin paced slowly, then
stopped with a whine. Sander, still keeping his grasp on the koyot's lashings,
used the detached arm Rhin had brought him to sweep the floor before him. Metal
rang against metal with a clatter. They must have reached another destroyed
thing.
Sander knelt and felt
about with both hands. Broken metal, hot to the touch, lay in a mass. Slowly
and carefully he pushed and piled the pieces to one side. His eyes were
watering now, moisture trailing down his dust-powdered cheeks. He could see a
little, enough to clear their way.
Then, once more with Rhin
for his guide, he started on, tapping before him with the iron claw to be sure
nothing lay there to stumble over. His eyes smarted, but he was careful not to
rub them with his dusty hands. Was the machine just destroyed the only one
roaming these ways? At least, unless the weapon had exhausted itself in that
attack, he had a counter for such. But he remembered what Fanyi had warned
about her light; that these tools and weapons of the Before People had limited
lives, and he might have expended the full force of Maxim's tube in that single
action.
Sander sneezed and
coughed. Fumes, which must have come from the destruction of the clawed
sentinel, made his throat hurt, attacked his nose. Rhin wheezed in answer. But
at least the smith could pick out of the general fog ahead new gleams of wall
lights. And the sight of those heartened him. Maxim had said that whatever
Fanyi sought was well protected. Could this machine have been one of those
protections?
The smith fingered the
arm, touched gingerly the teeth in the claw. It was a vicious thing, like
enough to those weapons Maxim had boasted were controlled by those who had
built this place—disease and all the rest. What kind of people had they been?
The White Ones, the Sea Sharks killed. But not at a distance, and not without
risking their own lives in return. There had been that female thing that the
forest men had given them to, the monster on the island. Again, those were
flesh and blood. And so, in a manner, to be understood. But this metal crawler,
those other weapons Maxim had listed with such mad satisfaction—
More than the dust and
the fumes struck at Sander. His own revulsion against those who had fashioned
this lair made him sick. Had they all been mad from the beginning? Was Maxim
merely tainted with a legacy that was his from birth?
The corridor took an
abrupt turn. Herein the air was slightly better, though the lights were still
befogged when Sander looked at them. He swept the arm back and forth, stirring
the dust, his hearing alert to any sound that might come from their own
passing. It was thus that he became conscious of a kind of beat or vibration
that might have been carried by the stale air itself. Where had he felt this
before? The sensation was dimly familiar. In the forest! When they had been snared
by the tree men!
But there were no trees
here, nothing overhead except the walled roof of the corridor.
"Rhin?" He
spoke the koyot's name aloud because that familiar syllable somehow linked him
with another living thing.
The koyot was silent,
save that his nose touched Sander's cheek for an instant. There was the feeling
of awareness, of danger to come, flowing from Rhin to him more strongly than
the man had ever felt such a warning before. Still the koyot was quiet. Not
even the near soundless growl he sometimes used could be felt through Sander's
hold on him. The smith searched within his jacket, brought out the thong with
its knot of wire, and put it once again about Rhin's throat.
They moved on, aware of
what was akin to the beating of a giant heart not quite in rhythm with the pump
of Sander's own blood, but near enough to it. The smith blinked his
dust-assaulted eyes. Finally he stopped, freed the water bottle from its
lashing, wet part of a spare shirt, and held the damp, cool compress on his closed
lids. Three such applications and his sight cleared, showing him details of the
dusty hall.
With the disappearance
of the haze, he could also see a door ahead. It was shut fast, and there was no
sign of a latch or knob or any way of opening it. All that was visible on the
smooth surface fronting them was a hollow at about eye level. Reaching the
barrier, Sander strove to insert his fingers into that hollow, to so exert
pressure that the surface would either slide to one side or lift up. But it
remained stubbornly immovable.
Would the cutting power
of Maxim's rod clear a path for them here?
Sander fingered the
Before Weapon. There was a risk in what it might do. Use of the beam might
trigger some retaliation. Yet he could not just give up and walk away.
Fanyi must have gone
through here—what method had she used? Was it that gift from her father that
had perhaps brought her safely past the guardian he had beamed down? He ran his
fingers about the depression in the door. Though he was only guessing, Sander believed
it was just of a size that Fanyi's pendant might fit into.
Being not so equipped
with any answer to the barrier, he held the rod closer to one of the two wall
lamps that flanked the door and studied it. This was the spot he had pressed on
the rod to bring about the destruction of the sentry. But there were four other
such markings on the part of the rod that formed the hand grip.
There was only one way
to make sure—that was to try. Waving Rhin back so that the koyot might not be
engulfed in any sudden disaster born from the smith's recklessness, Sander set
the firing end of the tube directly into the edge of the door's depression.
He pressed the first
button.
There was nothing at
all! Nothing until Rhin gave a howl and lowered his head to the floor and pawed
at his ears. Quickly Sander released that button. Was this what Maxim had used
to bring the animal to submission?
Rhin shook his head
vigorously; his growls were deep-chested. Now he looked at Sander, baring his
teeth.
The smith was almost
argued out of trying the next of the marks. He had no wish to unleash upon
himself Rhin's full anger. And he did not see how he could make the koyot
understand that he had applied such torment, not by wish but through ignorance
alone.
To go at once to the
full power of the rod—yes. But first make sure he was not temporarily blinded a
second time. Sander draped his head in the dampened shirt, tucking its folds
into the edge of his hood. He sent Rhin back down the corridor, then set the rod
firmly into the depression again. Bearing down hard, he applied the full force
of whatever power it held.
Even through the
improvised shield across his eyes, he caught a flash of white fire. There was a
clank of tortured metal. Then carrying acrid fumes, a blast of damp heated air
hit him full in the face.
He also heard something
else. There was no mistaking that savage hissing. The fishers! And by the
sharpness of the sounds they now faced him.
Sander pawed the shirt
away from his face. The door had split into two, providing a space wide enough
perhaps for both him and Rhin to squeeze through, but still not clearing the
whole of the archway. Light, stronger than that of the corridor, streamed out,
showing very clearly both Kai and Kayi, one on either side, humped and ready to
spring into battle. Beyond them was a confusion of objects, brilliantly
lighted, that he could see clearly.
To harm the fishers was
unthinkable. He raised his voice and called, over the dryness of his throat:
"Fanyi!"
The vibration grew
stronger, beat with greater power, while the hostile sounds made by the fishers
became louder. But the girl did not answer.
Had she been
injured—trapped by one of the protective devices Maxim had hinted at—thus
arousing her companions to battle anger? Or had she purposefully set them here
on guard to ward off any interference with what she would do? Either answer
could serve, but it would not remove Kai and Kayi.
They must know his scent
and that he had been accepted by Fanyi and had traveled with her. Would that
small familiarity aid him now? Behind him he heard the pad of Rhin's feet.
There must be no fighting between the animals.
Sander retreated a few
steps, eyeing the fishers narrowly. They made no move to advance from the other
side of the door he had forced open. He searched in his food bag, brought out
some of those small cakes that tasted so much like fresh meat, the ones Rhin
had gobbled with a visible relish. To each of the fishers he tossed three of
these.
Kayi sniffed first at
her offering. She tongued one of the biscuits and then gulped it whole. A
second one was crunched between her jaws before her mate consented to try his
share. They still watched Sander as they ate, and their hissing continued. But
they licked up each crumb avidly as if they had been long hungry.
Sander could not touch
them as the girl did, that he was wise enough to know. But he squatted down,
bringing out two more cakes, tossing one to each. As they snapped them up, he
spoke in a voice he made purposefully level.
"Fanyi?"
Perhaps he was as stupid
as Maxim thought him to be, to try to communicate with the fishers by voice.
How could his repeating a name mean anything to animals still watching him so
intently that their stare was daunting? But patiently he repeated that name the
second time.
"Fanyi?"
Kai reared on his
haunches, his head now well above that of the squatting smith. From this
position the fisher need only make one pounce to carry Sander down under
rending jaws and claws. Kayi stared, but she did not assume the same upright
position.
"Fanyi—Kai—Kayi—"
This time Sander tried the three names in linkage. What might be passing
through the fishers' alien thinking processes he could not even guess.
Kayi stopped hissing.
She bent her head to lick her right paw. But the bigger male had not changed
what seemed to Sander his challenging posture.
"Fanyi—Kai—"
Now the smith only used two of the names, aiming his voice at the big male,
with a slight turn of his head that cost a special effort of will, because to
let Kayi out of his full sight was a risk.
Kai dropped to four
feet. Though Sander could not read any expression on the fisher's face, somehow
he sensed that the beast was puzzled. And beneath that puzzlement was something
else. Fear? The man could not be sure.
Taking a last risk,
Sander got slowly to his feet and made a movement forward. "Fanyi!"
he repeated for the fourth time with a firmness he was not sure he could
continue.
Kayi backed away. Her
eyes swung to the looming back of her mate and returned to the man. She uttered
a sound that was not a warning. Kai hissed, showed his fangs. But Sander,
taking heart from the attitude of the female, moved a step closer.
The male fisher subsided
to four feet, backing away, still hissing, but yet retreating. Kayi had turned
around and was padding off. Finally the big male surrendered, though he still
eyed Sander suspiciously.
Rhin followed at the
smith's shoulder, crouching a little and making a struggle to win through that
door slit. But the fishers did not threaten now. Together they had turned their
backs on Sander, seemingly satisfied, and were on their way, threading among
incomprehensible masses of glass and metal that seemed to fill this chamber.
Here the lighting was
brilliant, a glare enough to cause Sander trouble with his impaired sight. And
the room was alive. Not alive as he knew life, but with a different form of
energy, one that caused colors, some strident, some richly vivid, to flow along
through tubes and otherwise bathe some of the installations. The warm and humid
heat of the place made him unlace his hood, unfasten his jacket.
He had no desire to
pause to look about him. The play of the colors, the wholly alien atmosphere of
this place, repelled him. Once he found Fanyi they must get out of here! His
flesh tingled and crawled as if some invisible power streamed over him.
Sparks shot from the
band of metal he wore. It was warming up. Still, he would not take it off. Cold
iron had saved him twice, and he clung to what he had learned might work for
him, the more so when he now was surrounded by what he could not understand,
dare not even examine too closely.
The fishers guided him
directly to a very small room on the other side of the place. It was hardly
larger than a good-sized cabinet. Its walls were clear, so that one could look
through them. Seated within, her hands clenched about the pendant still lying
on her breast, was Fanyi.
Though her eyes were
wide open, seemingly staring straight at him, Sander realized she did not see
him. What did she see? He grew chill for a moment in spite of the heat of the
outer room. Expressions passed fleetingly one after the other across her face. There
was fear, a kind of horror, revulsion—
Her bush of hair stood
erect, as if each strand were charged with energy from root to tip. Small beads
of sweat gathered on her upper lip and forehead and rolled down her cheeks as
if she wept without ending. There was a terrible stiffness about her whole
body, which betrayed some tension beyond the ordinary.
Kayi pawed at the front
of the cabinet, but there was no shadow of recognition on Fanyi's distorted
face. She was like one sealed into a nightmare with no means of escape.
Now her body began to
jerk spasmodically. Sander saw her mouth open as if she were screaming. But he
could hear nothing. He ran forward and caught at the bar at waist level on the
door, hoping it was the latch. Against it he exerted all his strength. It did
not budge.
It was as if she were
locked in past any hope of escape. He could see her eyes rolling from side to
side, her head moving back and forth. He grabbed one of the darts from his
case, inserted it between the bar and the door and tried to pry it up.
Now Fanyi's whole body
was jerking steadily as if she had no control over her own muscles. There was
no longer any sign of intelligence in her face, her mouth fell slackly open,
while from her lower lip drooled a thread of spittle.
Sander fought the door.
The dart snapped in his hands, but not before he had forced a small amount of
movement. He snatched a second shaft and this time dug with all his might at
the line of cleavage just beyond the bar. The dart point caught and held; he
pounded it deeper.
There was a splitting
crack as he gave a mighty heave upon the bar, stumbling back nearly off balance
as the whole front of the cabinet yielded at last. Fanyi slumped with it.
Sander was just in time to catch her totally inert body and lower her gently to
the floor.
For one moment of such
fear as he had never before known, he thought her dead. Then he felt the pulse
in one thin brown wrist, saw the rise and fall of her breasts in fast, shallow
breathing. Her eyes were rolled up, so he could see little but white between
the half-closed lids.
Not even getting to his
feet, he crawled and dragged her with him, away from the prison in which he had
found her, seeking temporary shelter in a corner of the room as far from that
cabinet and the rest of these devilish installations as he could get her. There
he settled her head on his folded coat. Her hands were still so fixed about the
pendant that he had to work slowly and with all the gentle force he could exert
to loosen them finger by finger. He was sure that the pendant itself was part
of the danger that had struck at her.
She still breathed with
those quick and shallow breaths, as if she had been running, while her skin
felt cold and damp in spite of the heat that filled the room. The fishers came
to her, Kayi crowding in on the far side, stretching her length beside that of
the girl as if, with the additional warmth of her fur-clad body, she could give
some comfort.
Fanyi muttered and began
to turn her head back and forth on the pillow Sander had provided. Clearly,
unslurred, she began to speak, but he could not understand the words that came
out, save that now and again he thought he caught an echo of the voice that had
addressed him out of the air.
He drew off his second
jerkin and put it over her, then caught her head in a sure grip while he
dribbled a little water between her lips. She choked, coughed, and suddenly
opened her eyes.
"Dead!" her
voice shrilled. "Dead!"
Though she gazed
straight at him, Sander realized that Fanyi saw something else—not his face,
perhaps not even this room.
"I—will—not!"
Fanyi struggled to sit
up until Sander caught her shoulders, pushed her gently down again. He was
afraid. The eyes the girl turned upon him held no recognition. Had her
experience in that prison box made her as mad as Maxim?
"You do not need to
do anything"—he strove to keep his voice under even control—"which
you do not want to—"
Her mouth worked as if
it were nearly past her power to get out word sounds.
"I—will—not—"
and then she added, "Who are you? One of the machines—the
machines—?" Again her tension was rising, her body grew rigid under his
touch. "I will not! You cannot force me—you cannot!"
"Fanyi—" As he
had when greeting the fishers, Sander repeated her name with authority, with
the need to win awareness from her. "I am Sander, you are
Fanyi—Fanyi!"
"Fanyi?" She
made a question of that. And the import of such an inquiry chilled Sander even
more. If she could not remember her own name—! What had this devilish place
done to her? He was filled with a rage so powerful that he wanted to flail out
about him, smash into bits everything in this chamber.
"You are
Fanyi." He spoke as if to a small child, schooling the anger out of his
voice. "I am Sander."
She lay still, looking
up at him. Then, to his relief, a measure of focus came back to her eyes. She
might have been peering through a curtain to seek him out. Her tongue tip moved
across her lips.
"I—am—Fanyi—"
She said slowly, and gave a great sigh. He watched her relax, her head turn on
the pillow he had improvised, her eyes close. She was asleep.
But they must get out of
here! Perhaps if he could lift her up on Rhin—That tingling, skin-crawling
sensation he had felt ever since he had entered this place was growing worse.
There was something else—a kind of—nibbling was the only word Sander could find
to describe the feeling—a nibbling at his mind! He brought both hands up to the
wire circlet. It was warm—hot—he should take it off—much better—better.
The smith snatched his
fingers away. Take that off! That was what this—this presence here wanted! He
looked over his shoulder quickly. So sure was he at that moment that there was
another personality here that he expected to see Maxim, or one like him, coming
down the aisle between the installations.
Cold iron—
Swiftly Sander beckoned
to Rhin, and when the koyot crowded beside him, he lifted Fanyi and fastened
her on the animal's back. Kayi snarled at his first move to disturb the girl,
then apparently saw that Sander meant her no harm. The smith made her slumped
body fast, so she lay with arms dangling on either side of Rhin's neck.
When he was sure she was
secure, Sander started back through this nightmare chamber that was haunted by
the will plucking strongly at him. Could the unknown take over the animals,
turn Rhin and the fishers against him?
That a sensation which
they disliked and feared had reached the animals he knew by their incessant
snarling and the way the fishers swung their heads back and forth as if seeking
an enemy they could identify. Rhin growled, but he did not hang back as Sander
urged him forward.
They passed the
broken-open block in which he had found the girl. With that behind them, Sander
drew a breath of relief. He did not know what he had expected might reach out
of it—he had begun to believe that he could not really trust his own senses or
impulses here.
The outer door was
before them, and the fishers flashed through the crack. However, the opening
was too narrow for Rhin carrying Fanyi. Sander unstrapped his tool bag and, as
he had done in the tunnel out of the city, took up the largest of his hammers.
With all his might he
swung it first against one side of that slit and then the other, dividing his
energy, until, at last, the leaves of the opening yielded with a harsh grating
and Rhin could wedge through successfully. Sander did not return the hammer to
his bag, rather carried it in one hand as they went. Like the iron band he
wore, the feel of its familiar heft in his hand gave him more confidence than
he gained in handling either the dart thrower or the rod weapon from Before.
This was part of his own particular calling, and as a smith he was secure. At
this moment he needed such assurance.
The fishers did not
range well ahead as they were wont to do outside. Rather they paced along, one
on either side of Sander and Rhin. Now and again they uttered soft hisses, not
of anger and warning, but simply communicating with each other.
There had been no sign
of consciousness from Fanyi since she had said her name, claiming her own identity.
That she now lay in an unnatural sleep Sander was certain. He wanted to get her
as far away from the place he had found her as he could.
They passed the scrap
heap of the machine sentry. At another time Sander would have liked to study
the remains of the thing, perhaps appropriate other bits of its arms. Now he
had a feeling that the less he allied himself with anything belonging to this
maze, the more sensible he would be.
Rhin climbed the ramp,
Sander steadying Fanyi with one hand and carrying the hammer in the other. That
climb seemed twice as long as the descent had been. But it was good to emerge
into fresher air, fill his lungs again with that which was not tainted with the
acrid odors so strong below.
In the upper hall Sander
decided to head back to the room where he had found the larger food machine.
Though the fishers had wolfed down all the biscuits he had fed them, he guessed
that they were not yet satisfied. Also perhaps he could coax from that strange
supplier of nourishment something to revive Fanyi.
Rhin went forward
confidently and Sander did not doubt that the koyot was retracing their
journey. The feeling of pressure, of nibbling, was growing less, the further he
withdrew from the chamber below. If the seat of that disturbance lay there,
perhaps there was a limit to its influence, though it had reached out before to
draw him here. He had no intention of taking off his iron protection to test
its strength.
They reached the room he
sought. There he loosed Fanyi and lowered her from the riding pad, once more
stretching her on the floor with his coat under her head, and though she did
not open her eyes or seem conscious, she shivered.
Recklessly, he thumbed
the buttons on the machine, tossing to the three animals the meat-tasting
biscuits that they snapped up eagerly. But at length, one lucky choice provided
him with a capped container that was nearly filled with a hot liquid having the
smell and consistency of a thick soup.
Cradling Fanyi's head
against his shoulder, Sander called her name, roused her so she murmured
fretfully and feebly tried to escape his hold. But he got the container to her
lips, and finally she sipped.
As she drank at his
soft-voiced urging, she appeared to welcome the liquid and finally opened her
eyes as if to look for more. He speedily got a second helping from the machine
and supported her until she finished that also to the last drop.
"Good—" she
whispered. "So good. I—am—cold."
Fanyi still shook,
visible shudders running through her whole body. Sander managed to get his coat
on her, rather than merely laid over her. Then he turned to Rhin, stripping the
koyot of all their gear and pulling over the girl the thick riding pad,
strong-smelling though it was.
Having covered her as
best he could, he called the fishers and they obediently settled down on either
side of her, lending their body heat. Only then did he go to the machine and
feed himself.
He was tired; he could
hardly remember now when he had slept last. And that ordeal in the lower ways
had sapped his strength. Dared they remain here for a space? If Rhin and
Fanyi's fishers would play guard—
In all his journeying
through the rooms of the complex, Sander had come across signs of no other
inhabitants. The rooms that he guessed had been intended for living quarters seemed
empty of any presence save their own as they passed through. Still Sander could
hardly believe that Maxim was the sole remaining inhabitant of the place. And
any such would have weapons and resources past his own knowledge. The sooner
they themselves were out of this underworld, the better. But even as Sander
thought that, his head slumped forward on his chest and he had to fight to keep
his eyes open. There were too many chances of facing disaster still to come,
and he could not meet them worn as he was now. Rest was essential.
He made a further effort
and gave hand signals to Rhin. The koyot trotted to the far door and lay down
across the entrance, head on paws. He would doze, Sander knew, but he would
also rouse at the first stir beyond.
Sander stretched out,
the haft of his hammer lying under his hand, on the other side of Kayi. The
strong smell of the fishers was somehow comforting and normal, part of the
world he knew and trusted, not of these burrows.
"Sander—"
He turned his head.
There was an urgency in the call that woke him out of a dream he could not
remember even as he opened his eyes. Fanyi was sitting up, his coat slipping
from her shoulders, her face drawn and worn as if she had not yet thrown off
the effects of some daunting and debilitating illness.
"Sander!" Now
she stretched forth a hand to shake his shoulder, for Kayi no longer lay
between them.
He sat up groggily and
shook his head.
"What—" he
began.
"We must get
out!" There was a wild look in her eyes. "We must warn them—"
"Them?" Sander
repeated. But her excitement reached him, and he got to his feet.
"The Traders—the
rest—all the rest, Sander. Your people—everyone!" Her words came with such
a rush that he had trouble understanding them. Now it was his turn to lay hands
upon her, steady her so he could look straight into her wide eyes.
"Fanyi—warn them
against what?"
"The—thinker!"
she burst out. "I was wrong—oh, how wrong!" Her hands clutched his
wrists with a grip tight enough to be painful. "The Thinker—he—it—will
take over the world—make it what it wants. We shall all be things, just
things to do its bidding. It has summoned the White Ones—is pulling them
here to learn—learn monstrous things. How to kill, destroy—"
Once more she was
shaking. "It was made by the Before Men, set to store up all their
learning because they foresaw the end of their world. And it did—by the Power,
it did! Then, when it was ready, something twisted it—maybe the Dark Times
altered what the Before Men set it to do. They—they could not have all been so
evil! They could not! If I thought so—" she shook her head. "Sander,
if I thought that in my mind lay such inheritance from them, then I would put a
knife to my own throat and willingly. That—that thing, it remembers the
worst. It wanted me to serve it. And it was taking me—making me into something
like it when you came. We must get out of here! I know that it controls this
place and—"
She paused, looked to
Sander. "But it did not hold you. Was that because you did not have one
like this?" She pointed to the pendant Sander had not taken from her, not
knowing whether if he did he would remove some protection she needed, as Maxim
had suggested.
"It can take over
one's mind, one's will. It—it promised me"—her lips quivered—"all I
wanted, all I sought. I was only to go into its direct communication chamber,
open my mind. But what it poured into me—hate—Sander, I thought that I hated
the Sea Sharks, but I did not know the depths, the black foulness of true hate,
until that taught me. And it wants everything, all of us, to serve it. Some
people it can rule quickly. The Shamans of the White Ones, it has already made
its own servants. Do you understand, it summons them now—to learn.
"There are things
stored here, other things that can be made, easily made with that to
teach. And it shall then loose death. Because in the end it wants no life
left—none at all!"
"You say 'it' and
'that,'" Sander said. "What is 'it' in truth?"
"I think"—she
answered slowly, again shivering, her hands loosing their hold on him to half cover
her mouth as if she hardly dared speak her belief aloud—"that part of it
was once a man—or men. It has a kind of half-life. And through the years it has
grown more and more alien to man, more and more monstrous. Those who stayed
here—while they tended it, it kept to a little of the purpose for which it was
made. But as those grew fewer, feebler, it grew stronger and finally cut all
ties with those who were left. Some—like my father—went out to see what had
happened to the world because they were not influenced by that so much.
"But the ones who
stayed—Have you seen the one who calls himself Maxim?"
Sander nodded.
"He is a thing,
though he knows it not. For a while yet he will serve as eyes and ears for that.
It still needs humans if it would contact the uncorrupted outside, bring in
fresh minds—Sander, it feeds upon men's minds! It strips from them all their
knowledge, all their spirit; then it fills them with what it wants—hate and the
need for dealing death!"
"As it tried to do
to you. And how were you saved?" Sander demanded.
"I am Shaman born,
Shaman trained. Not as the Shamans of the White Ones, who use men's blood and
terror to summon up their power, but working with life and not against it. It
could not reach that part of me it wanted most, the source of my Power. Though
it might have blasted through, had you not come. And you, Sander, why did it
not seek you?"
"Cold iron—it is
smith's power." He was not sure that the band about his forehead had saved
him, but he thought that it had.
"Cold iron?" she
repeated wonderingly. "I do not understand—" Then once more her fear
flared. "Out—Sander—we must get out! It will not let us go willingly, and
I do not know what Power it can command."
He had summoned Rhin
with a snap of his fingers and was repacking the burdens. Then he lifted Fanyi
once more to the riding pad.
"Can this thing of
yours control the animals?" He wondered if their companions might now
prove to be the weak lines in their small company.
"No." She
shook her head. "Their minds are too alien, lie beneath the range of it.
Kai, Kayi tried to stop me from going. I—I used my power to hold them
off." Her face was stricken as she glanced at the fishers.
"Maxim used this on
Rhin." Sander held out the rod. "Press this and Rhin is in
agony." He indicated the stud on the side.
"How did you get
it?"
"From Maxim,"
Sander said with satisfaction. "I left him tied up. He gave me all his
attention, so Rhin brought him down." The smith paid credit where it was
due. "And it was Rhin who traced you."
"Let us get out—quickly!"
Sander agreed with her
urging. He did not know how much to accept of the crazy story she had gabbled.
This business of draining a man's mind and refilling it— But the suspicion,
which had long been his, that the Before Men had far more than the Rememberers
knew, was enough to make him agree they would be much better out of this place.
He had no longer any desire to learn anything connected with this complex.
Fanyi's descent into hysteria, her fear, brought grim warning that there might
be far too high a price to pay for learning what lay on the other side of the
Dark Time. He was willing enough to head out and away with all the speed they
could muster.
The smith was not sure
of the way they had come, but he depended on the koyot to nose out the back
trail for them. As they went, Fanyi appeared to regain her control somewhat.
Sander caught glimpses of things in the rooms through which they passed that
intrigued him a little, that under other circumstances he would have paused to
examine more closely.
But Fanyi looked neither
right nor left. She stared straight ahead as if the very fervor of her desire
to be free was forceful enough to speed their retreat.
"How many people
still live here?" Sander asked, after they had gone some way in silence,
during which he had found himself listening for some hint that they were not
going to escape so easily, that there would be someone or something in ambush.
"I do not know.
Certainly very few. It needs more to serve it. I think there is some service it
cannot itself perform that keeps it alive. Therefore, it wants more empty minds
to control. For the rest—it will kill. It hates—" Tears spilled from her
eyes and she did not try to wipe them away. "It is sick with hate, swelled
with it as a corrupted wound swells with evil matter. It is foul beyond
belief!"
Sander had kept a
careful lookout as they traversed the rooms. Again he was sure he saw nothing
to suggest that any had been recently occupied. Was Maxim perhaps the last
remaining servant the thing had? But Maxim had not considered himself so—he had
spoken of a "Great Brain" that had withdrawn from communication with
man.
Now the smith had a new
cause for worry—this departure was far too easy. He had expected to meet some
opposition before now. Fanyi claimed vast power for the thing she had met;
surely if it controlled the installations here, it must be working to capture
them again.
When nothing moved,
illogically his wariness increased. Fanyi still rode, looking only ahead.
Sander stole glances at the koyot, the fishers. They padded along at what had
increased to a trot, though Sander had not urged that. The animals were alert;
he saw as well as sensed that they were using their own methods of testing what
lay about them. But they gave no warning of any ambush or attack.
Their party came at last
to the chamber where the chairs were lined around the oval, which was not a
pool. Sander pushed ahead here, ready to handle Maxim. But the chair in which
he had tied the madman was now empty; not even cut or broken bonds remained.
Sander swung his hammer, weighing its strength in his hand.
"He's gone. I left
him here."
For the first time since
they had started, Fanyi turned her head a little, her gaze shifting to Sander.
"We must find the
way out," she told him, and there was a new note in her voice, as if some
of the hysteria was again rising in her. "The way—it can be hidden."
Her hand moved toward
the pendant and then away. "This thing—I can use it perhaps. But also—it
is of this place. Through it one can be controlled."
"Then do not try
it!" he answered her. "Leave our passage to Rhin, to Kai and Kayi. I
will depend upon their senses before I will on mine."
The animals pattered on
out of the room of the chairs into that which held the webs. Those that were
intact blazed high with light. Rhin threw up his head to howl with a note
Sander had heard out of him only once before—that time he had touched the wrong
button on the shaft of the rod. To his outburst were added cries from the
fishers. The animals pawed at their ears, slobbered, and foamed. Sander felt a
strange pain in his own head. Fanyi held both ears, her face twisted in agony.
To this, Sander could
see only one answer. Though his body was suddenly awkward and his coordination
faulty, he tottered to the nearest of those flaming filaments. Raising the
hammer despite an involuntary twitching of muscles he had to fight to control,
he brought it down to smash the webbing.
Sparks burst; there was
a throat- and nose-rasping odor in the air, but Sander staggered on to the next
web and demolished it with a blow, then the next and the next.
He moved through a world
that had narrowed to hold just those alien creations, his only thought that
they must be destroyed. Sometimes his aim was faulty, and he did not bring the
object he fronted into fragments with one blow or two, but had to stand
wavering and pounding for three or four misdirected and weakened swings until
he had shattered it. He had cleared one row; he was aiming now for the first
installation of the second. Around his head the band was a searing brand of
fire that dimmed his thoughts. Only instinct kept him going. Three—another—
Then, as it had come, so
was the outside pressure gone. Sander sank to his knees, panting heavily. His
head felt light; he was dazed. But the light that had hurt his eyes had ebbed.
"Sander!"
That shriek aroused his
half-conscious mind, jerked him around.
Maxim was there, raising
a rod. His face was contracted; there was nothing human remaining in his
bulging eyes. He was going to—
Sander made the greatest
effort of his life, lifting the hammer—Maxim was too far away to pound. There
was no time to try for a dart or even the rod tucked in the smith's belt. He
whirled the hammer once around his head and threw it, despairingly, sure that
he was already Maxim's victim.
A furred fury burst past
Sander, Kai's shoulder striking his as the animal leaped. That touch, light as
it was, knocked the smith off balance. He fell against the base of one of the machines,
but not before he saw the hammer strike, not with the head but with the edge of
the shaft against Maxim's chest.
The man staggered.
Sander felt a searing heat lick his own upper arm. Then Kai made a final leap,
carrying Maxim down, the rod whirling out of his grasp. Maxim screamed, a sound
that was cut off with shocking suddenness as Sander clawed his way once more
erect, drawing himself up by pulling on the base of a shattered installation.
Sander groped for words
to make clear to himself the nature of what filled the air and weighed so
heavily upon him he could hardly move. It throbbed in waves of raging hate as
if the very walls were the living tissue of some vast creature. The fisher drew
back, his muzzle foully stained. He reared, snarling, hissing, striking out in
the air with extended claws, though there was nothing visible to threaten him.
Sander swayed back and
forth. Only his grip upon the base of the shattered installation kept him
upright, for that mighty rage sent impulses of force through the chamber to
beat at him like physical blows. The wire around his head was hot agony, but
Sander fought back. His teeth were bared like the animals'. He voiced, hoarsely
and defiantly, the smith's chant.
He was not a thing,
he was a man! And a man he would remain. Step by wavering step, he clawed his
way along the base that was his support. His attention was fixed on the hammer,
which lay a little distance from the body he willed himself not to look at. Kai
might have brought Maxim down, but his own blow had opened the way for the
fisher.
Sander stooped, his hand
closed upon the haft of the heavy tool. And once his fingers were around that
familiar grip, he felt a small sense of victory.
He was a man!
With care he turned
around to see the fishers drawn close to Fanyi and Rhin. Their fangs were
visible. The koyot snapped at the air, white bits of froth gathering at the
corners of his lips. The fishers were battle-ready, yet saw no foe to attack.
Fanyi sat erect on the
riding pad. Her face was drawn, haggard with strain and pain. With head thrown
back, she too mouthed words, words he could not understand. As he tottered
toward them, seeming to breast some hostile current as he moved, she met his
gaze.
"It will not
let us go," she said simply.
"I know the
doors—"
"There will be no
doors now, not unless it wishes."
He did not want to
accept her certainty. But before he could speak again, she grasped the pendant.
"It will let
me come to it—with this I can reach it—"
It seemed that when she
spoke there was a lessening of the pressure about them, that the rage, which
was almost a tangible cloud to wall them in, ebbed a fraction.
"No!" Sander
raised the hammer.
"If I go, I can
perhaps make terms—"
He could read the truth
in her eyes. She knew that if she went she would be lost—as lost as that husk
of a man Kai had killed to save them all.
"I am half of the
blood of those who have always been its servants. It will listen—"
"To no one,"
Sander returned. "The thing is mad, you have read that for yourself in its
thoughts. You will save nothing, you will accomplish nothing."
"To get me it will
bargain." She refused to accept his refusal. "I can get it to let you
go forth, you and these—" With a gesture she indicated the animals.
"If you are free, you can carry a warning. The White Ones must not be
allowed to reach here, the Traders must be prepared."
"If this thing is
all-seeing, all-knowing," Sander replied stubbornly, "then it will
never let anyone free to carry such a warning. Why should it?"
"There is a
difference," Fanyi said slowly. "If I go to it willingly and without
any barriers raised, it will gain more of what it wishes than if it must wrest
my strength from me. It wants me whole, not maimed. To it you are of no value,
save that you have disturbed it by violence. It would be willing to let you
go—thinking that would be only for a short space of time until it can muster
into its forces those others whom it has summoned. Do you not see—I can buy you
time!"
Sander shook his head.
"There is no way you can trust any bargain. Listen—" His mind was
working faster now, like a runner who has gained his second wind. "Can you
find where this thing is?"
She must have had an
instant flash of his intentions. "You cannot! Its defenses are complete,
there is no way to reach it save by its will."
"But you can
go—"
"Yes, if I
surrender my will. It will have gained a victory—and you can profit by
that."
"Yes, in my
way." Sander swung the hammer a fraction. "Can it overhear us?"
He glanced from one line of the shattered machines to the other.
"I do not think so.
Or else it does not care what we say. It can strive to control us through its
own will, and it deems itself invulnerable." A little color had returned
to her wan cheeks.
Sander once more swung
the hammer. With it in hand he felt himself, somehow apart from the fear of
things he could not touch. This "thing" thought itself invulnerable,
yet it had not been able to defend the outer part of its own domain without
Maxim. And Maxim had died as perhaps none of his kind had done for generations,
by the fighting fury of an animal.
The smith had no plans,
only a determination. Fanyi's offer to surrender to the thing—that could even
be dictated by a residue of its attack upon her when she was imprisoned in the
box. Sander was sure of one thing—no trust could be put in any bargain with
this enemy. To even try to bargain was a defeat, for the Presence that ruled
this complex would consider that to be an admission of weakness. It could promise
anything and break the oath as it pleased.
But he did believe that
Fanyi might be the key to reach it. He raised a hand, ran a thumb along the
band on his forehead. There was no "reason" in the working of the old
superstition, yet work it did. If he could take the force of the pain that had
struck at him before, they would have a bare chance—a small one, but still it
was there.
"You have a
plan." Fanyi did not ask a question, she made a statement. Leaning forward
on the riding pad, she gazed at him intently.
"No plan,"
Sander shook his head. "We do not know enough to plan. We can only go—and
hope to find a chance—"
"We? But you
cannot! It will not let you!"
Once more Sander touched
that band. "We cannot be sure of that until we try. You say it cannot deal
with the animals?"
"It could not with
the fishers. They tried to keep me from it before. Though what it can send
against us when aroused—that I do not know."
He remembered the
many-armed metal creature. But he now knew how to handle one of them. And he
would have two rods, the one he had taken earlier from Maxim and the new one
the man had wielded here. Sander went to the crumpled body to reclaim it.
When he returned, he
pushed the first of his trophies into Fanyi's hands. With a few words he made
plain how it was used.
"You will do this,
you are determined?" the girl asked, when he had done.
"Is there any other
way? A man holds to life while he can. I believe that we are dead unless we can
best this Power."
"I tell you—I think
it would let you go if I went to it willingly."
"You will go to it
willing, if you agree," he told her. "But I shall go with you.
Perhaps it will know that I am with you—but this we shall do—if you go ahead it
may believe that you have eluded me, that I once more am hunting. Not too far
apart—we must be close enough so that it cannot take you and perhaps shut me
out."
Fanyi sat silent for a
moment. Then she slipped from Rhin's back.
"This is an action
that will bring you to your death, smith. But be sure of one thing. Though I
seem willing, it shall not use me for its purposes. I have this." She
weighed the rod in her hand. "It can be turned one way as well as the
other. And that cannot use a body blasted beyond repair. What of our
companions?"
"They, too, can
play a part," Sander said. He pulled the gear from Rhin's back. "This
we shall leave." He did not add that they might well never need any of
those supplies again. On top of the pile he placed his dart thrower, though he
kept his long knife, principally because he had worn it so long he was hardly
aware that it still hung at his belt.
The smith's hammer that
was his heritage, from which he now drew inner strength, that stood for all
that was normal and right in the world he knew and the rod that was a part of
this—those were his weapons. No, rather his tools, for he did not altogether
look upon what faced them as a battle, but rather a need to deal with something
that was badly flawed.
"This is your free
will?" Fanyi looked now as might a chief about to bind someone by blood
oath.
"My will,"
Sander agreed.
She turned from him to
the animals. The fishers came to her and she rested a hand on each head. They
stood so for a moment, then they rose to lick at her cheeks. Rhin had watched
them. Now the koyot also moved, but he came to Sander, nudging the smith's
shoulder with his nose—their old signal that it was well they move on.
"Their will
also," Fanyi said.
As Sander had suggested,
she took the lead. He allowed her and the fishers perhaps the length of an
aisle, then he and Rhin followed. Fanyi once more clasped her pendant in her
hands. She had not retraced her path to the doorway through which they had
come. She went to the right, down another short way between the stumps of the
installations Sander had smashed.
Within moments she
fronted what looked like a blank stone wall. But, reaching up, she held the
pendant between her flattened palm and one block of that barrier. A section
pivoted to give them a door.
The way was narrow. Rhin
could barely scrape through. And there were no lights. The door shut with an
intimidating snap when they were all inside. Sander could only trace those
ahead by the faint sounds of their passing.
There were curves and
corners, some of which he struck with bruising force as he moved blindly. But
there was only one passage and no choice of side ways, so he advanced with what
confidence he could maintain, sure that Fanyi was ahead.
Finally, there came a
burst of light, and he believed she had opened a second door. He hurried
forward, lest that close and leave him and Rhin caught in the dark. The room
they came into was unlike any he had seen elsewhere.
Fronting him was a wall
with a glassy surface, much like that on the oval in the floor, the one Maxim
said had shown the outlines of the world—the Before World and theirs. But here
was only one chair and that was placed with its back directly to the slick
surface. Fanyi sat in that chair, the fishers crouched before her, growling.
Her hands rested on the
arms of the chair, but there were no buttons to be touched. As Sander came to
face her, she raised one hand and pulled the loop of chain supporting the
pendant from about her neck, throwing it from her as if she so removed all that
might keep her from the domination of the thing holding rule here.
Sander caught it in the
air by the chain. He could not wear the device himself, but there was a hope
that it somehow might still provide a weapon. Now the girl drew the rod from
her belt and tossed that away as well. In the chair she sat defenseless and
alone. And then—it was not Fanyi who sat there.
Her features seemed to
writhe, to grimace, twist, to partly assume the countenance of someone else.
"Come to me!"
There was nothing
enticing in that command, for it was a command, baldly uttered, with the
arrogance of one who expected no refusal. And such was the power of that order
that Sander took one stride toward Fanyi-who-was-no-longer-Fanyi.
Rhin was beside him in
an instant, the koyot's mouth closed upon the man's shoulder with force enough
to awaken pain. That pain in turn broke the spell.
Fanyi smiled, but the
smile was none that Sander had ever seen on any human face.
"Barbarian—"
Now she laughed. "Your straggle of people—you—" Now her tone changed,
became cold and remote. "You pollute the earth. You are nothing, unfit to
walk where true men once walked."
Sander heard the words,
let the thing that had possessed Fanyi talk without dispute. The clue to its
hiding place must be here somewhere—he needed that. But would he be able to
gain it in time?
"Give me your
weapons, barbarian," Fanyi said with icy contempt. "Do you think any
such can be used against me? Fool, I have the means to blast you into
nothingness a thousand times over. I let you live only because you can be of
some small service to me—for a while. Even as this female serves me—"
Rhin swung a little
before Sander, edging him away from Fanyi. But the koyot's head was pointed
toward the wall behind the chair. The smith saw that slight prick of ear.
Though Rhin appeared to be facing Fanyi, herding Sander away from the girl, the
animal's attention was rather on the wall behind the chair.
Sander gripped the haft
of the hammer more tightly.
"You are mine, barbarian—"
There was a timbre in
that voice which rang in Sander's ears. Was a mist curling up about the chair
on which Fanyi was seated, or were his own eyes in some manner failing him? The
metal on his forehead was heating, too. He found it hard to breathe.
He was no one's
property! He was himself. By cold iron, which only a smith could fashion—he was
himself!
"Barbarian, I can
suck the life from you by will alone. Thus—"
Sander fought for
breath. This was the time he must move—he had no longer any choice.
Cold iron. He fought
against the pressure the other had set upon him, seeking to batter him to the
ground, to make him crawl as no man should ever humble himself.
"Cold iron,"
he cried aloud.
There was a slight
change in the pressure, as if the thing he confronted was surprised.
Sander moved—not toward
Fanyi, where the thing that ruled here had meant him to grovel, but rather to
the wall. Exerting all his strength, with an effort even mightier than that
which he had used against Maxim, he brought the hammer crashing against the
smooth surface.
There was a splintering,
a radiation of cracks running out from where the hammer head had met the wall.
In his mind, gathering
about him—such a force, a pressure meant to crush him.
No! He denied that will
bent now to stop him. His body swayed. Rhin and the fishers, he could feel them
close, supporting him. For the second time he struck, and the blow fell true on
the same spot.
There was a crackling, a
tinkling as of falling glass. A hole slightly smaller than his fist opened. In
return Sander was slammed nearly to his knees by a wave of force that he could
never afterwards describe.
But he crawled closer,
fighting that pressure with all his will, with his belief that if he
surrendered, all that made him what he was would be lost, he reached the wall.
He inched his hand up
and up, having dropped the hammer. Now he hooked fingers into the hole, though
the jagged edges cut into his flesh. When he was sure his hold was complete, he
swung the weight of his whole body on that hand.
For a moment of agony
and fear, he was afraid his effort was not enough. Then the glass, or what was
like glass, broke, to shower his head and shoulders with splinters. A gust of
air blew over him that had the same taint as had been in the lower reaches when
he had shattered the cabinet holding Fanyi.
Sander groped for the
hammer. His right hand was slippery with his own blood. He was afraid that he
could not keep his grip upon the tool. But with his left hand—yes!
He brought up his hand,
holding the hammer awkwardly and ill-balanced. Even so a blow fell again, to
break the edge farther. This was the door to the thing, even though he could
pass through it only on his hands and knees, near crushed with the pressure.
Sander pulled himself
over the high threshold formed by the frame. He fell forward into another
chamber. There was no one here. He blinked in dull surprise. Though Fanyi had
referred to the ruler of these ways as "it" or "the thing"
or "that," he had somehow pictured it with at least some kind of a
body—maybe like the metal traveler with the claws. But what he saw were only
tall cases, rows of them. On the faces of some, lights flashed or rippled.
There was one relief. As
he had fallen through the aperture beyond the feeling of pressure had vanished.
If this was the lair of Fanyi's enemy, then here its defenses were singularly
lacking—maybe it never expected to be found.
"Unregistered and
unlawful entrance—"
That was not the voice
that had issued from Fanyi's lips. It sounded more like the one that had
gabbled at him earlier during his journey through these burrows. Where was
what he sought? Hidden in one of these cases—?
"Mark one
protection—"
He did not know the
meaning of all those words. It was enough that they must be a threat. Not
attempting to get to his feet, Sander took from the front of his belt the rod
that had armed Maxim. He thumbed the highest button on its length and aimed it
at the tall box that showed the most lights. The beam struck full, ate into the
metal. At the same time Sander was aware of a trundling noise. Coming toward
him out of the shadow was a mobile metal thing.
"Seize for
interrogation—" yammered the voice, as the metal creature scuttled toward
Sander.
He was backed tight to
the broken wall. Dare he turn the rod on that thing moving toward him? If it
were controlled elsewhere, what—
There was a flare of
light. The box he had attacked spurted small tongues of flame. He did not wait,
but swung the beam to the next one that showed activity. Something closed about
his ankle. A line had snaked forth from the running machine, had locked about
his flesh. Another was whipping toward his body. Then a furred form flashed
between. There was a growl as the line wrapped around Kai, imprisoning the
fisher.
Sander continued to play
the beam on target. The second panel blew. Kayi had joined her mate, only to be
caught, yet keeping the lines spun by the sentry away from Sander.
Pulling away as far as his
trapped ankle allowed, the smith sprayed the beam down the line. Four, five,
six—suddenly the line that held him uncurled, fell limp to the floor. Sander
scrambled up, moved to destroy more of the panels. When he reached them, the
beam no longer responded. But then neither did any more lights show. The burnt
odor was stifling. He attempted to close his cut hand. If that would serve him,
he would try to finish off the rest by hammer. Was this the lair of the
Presence? If it was not—
Sander choked and coughed,
his eyes smarted, his throat was painfully dry. The air here hurt deep into his
nose and throat as he breathed. He must get back—out, even if he had not
completed the job—
Through a haze, Sander
pulled his way back, holding onto one half-melted panel and then the next,
seeking the entrance hole. When he pulled through, he saw Fanyi—not sitting
now, but lying in a small heap on the floor, as if she had slid helplessly from
the chair. He lurched to her, but the fishers were ahead of him, Kayi licking the
girl's face, pawing at her body, uttering small whimpers.
Sander went cold.
Had—had he killed Fanyi? Was she— He stumbled to her. Kayi growled warningly,
but let him lay hands on the girl, his cut one leaving bloody prints on her
shoulders and her arms.
Her eyes were closed,
her face empty of expression—but she was alive!
He rested there, her
head resting in his lap, his wounded hand stretched along the seat of the
chair. Then he remembered the pendant he had tucked into his belt. One-handedly
he drew it forth and laid it on her breast where she had always worn it.
Fanyi's eyelids moved.
She gazed up at him in an unfocused way that again awoke his fears. Then her
gaze cleared. It was plain she knew him.
"It
is—crippled!" she said.
He gave a sigh. So he
had not won completely after all.
"How badly?"
he asked.
There was a long moment
before she replied. "It—it is part gone—those who know how might still use
some of it."
"No!" He
remembered what had brought him here. The thing he had destroyed might make any
man master of this riven world. But there was no man strong enough, wise
enough, no man left to use such knowledge.
"No," she
echoed him.
"Your weapons to
save your people—" he said.
"Your smith's
knowledge—" She matched him.
"It is of
another world," she said slowly. "Even though that which made it
our enemy has gone out of it, let it be. It is not ours."
He thought of the
Traders, of the White Ones whom this thing had summoned.
"It must be no
one's."
She nodded, pulling
herself up. Then with a cry of concern she caught his hand.
Later they sat on the
floor by their worn trail gear. He had dragged Maxim's body out of sight. Fanyi
treated his hand with her salves, but it would be days before he could use his
hammer again.
There was a coldness in
this place, a sense of life gone, that was akin to the terror they had felt
earlier on those storm-battered heights. The girl fingered Maxim's first rod,
which she had thrown away in the chamber of the Presence.
"It cannot
repair itself. And I do not think it has anyone to serve it here now. Maxim
must have been the last, but there might be those who would try."
"There is still
some power in that," Sander nodded at the rod. "Perhaps enough to
seal the outer entrance."
Fanyi touched the
pendant that still hung around her neck. "I do not think there is another
one of these. If we can do that—seal the entrance—no one will find it. The
White Ones, they do not know exactly what they seek. Their Shamans are
dreamers—of dreams sent by that thing."
"Machine—or
man?" Sander wondered.
Fanyi shivered.
"Both. But how the Before Men could do that—! It may still live, though
you have destroyed that which gave it power. If so—what a horror faces it—life
locked into a prison without end."
"What of your
people?" he asked.
"What of
yours?" she countered.
Sander answered first.
"Mine do well enough. They have a smith, not as good as my father, but one
they trust. I—they are kin. Still I find it hard now to remember any face among
them that I long greatly to see again."
"I am yet
bound." Fanyi held the pendant. "We may be able to seal one danger in
the earth. There are others without. What I can do to aid my clan, that I
shall, though I bring no greater strength with me. I failed Padford, therefore
the debt is mine."
"And how will you
repay?"
"There are ways to
travel south. If any of my people live captive there, then they still have
claim on me."
Sander stirred, his hand
hurt when he moved it, in spite of the dressing she had put on the cuts.
Traveling one-handed for a while would be awkward.
"South it is then.
Once we have made secure what lies here."
She frowned. "This
is no duty of yours, smith!"
He smiled. "Perhaps
so. But I have chosen the out trail. Does it matter where one wanders when one
is kinless by will? There is this thought in mind, Shaman. We came here seeking
knowledge. We have found it, though not as we expected."
"What's your
meaning, smith?"
"Just this: we have
tried long to live upon the remnants of the Before Time, ever looking backward.
But why should we? There is no night without stars, and the blackness of our
night can be lighted by our own efforts. We are ourselves, not the Before Ones.
Therefore, we must learn for ourselves, not try to revive what was known by
those we might not even want to call kin were we to meet them. I am no kin of
Maxim!"
"No kin—" she
repeated. "Yes, that rings true, smith! Neither am I kin to those who
stored such knowledge as that thing strove to make me use. We begin again,
light our night stars, and hope to do better."
"We begin
again," Sander agreed and then added, "to the south, Fanyi, since you
are duty-bound. Let us see if the Sea Sharks can be defied by our own means.
After all, have we not bested here something far worse than any peril we knew?"
"Smith, you are a
man who believes in his own worth."
Sander, nursing his torn
hand, rose to his feet. He put out his sound one to rest on Rhin's shoulder.
"It never harms a
man to value himself," he returned mildly. "And if he has good
companions and a trade, what more does he want?"
Fanyi laughed now.
"Well, perhaps one or two things more, Sander. But those shall doubtless
also come in their own season. No night lasts forever."